Budapest, 2016
CEC_konyv.indd 1
2016.06.13. 9:48:15
Rabbi Israel Miller Fund for Shoah Education, Research and Documentation
CEC_konyv.indd 2
2016.06.13. 9:48:38
Preface
There is no excuse and we cannot explain what
happened, but we can acknowledge and recount (Sndor Mrai)
The CEC has been engaged in an international comparative research since 2013
on the role played by the historical churches in the anti-Semitism of the interwar
period and the Holocaust with particular attention to the increase of nationalism and
the revival of the denial of the Holocaust in the region.
Following our successful application to the Claims Conference, we launched
our research in 2015 under the title A study of the part played by the churches in
the growth of anti-Semitism in Czechoslovakia, Hungary and Romania in the interwar period based on the contemporary press and archive documents.
The assumption we used in the research as our starting point was that the
countries of Central-Eastern Europe of the post-war period have failed to acknowledge what happened, and as a result, the accumulating wounds of the society have
kept hidden the responsibility of the actors of the age including that of the churches.
Still, it is not enough to remember the inhuman Nazi regime itself; it also belongs to the full picture how the majority of the society operated at that time. Was it
with a sigh of relief if you were not affected? Or fishing for small benefits at the expense of those persecuted? Or simply looking aside so that looking for absolution
you could blame the political leaders for everything? Is it possible that others had
had no part in the things degenerating so much?, said Chancellor Angela Merkel
in Dachau in August 2013.
Let us quickly add that in addition to politics the churches were the actors shaping and influencing the operation of the majority society in the countries
of Central-Eastern Europe in the period investigated. So our research was trying
to find an answer to the question how and to what extent the churches could and
wanted to influence the society and politics in the interwar period, and whether or
not the Christian churches were responsible for and what part they played in the
spread of anti-Semitism in the society. And did all historical churches take part in
the processes leading up the Holocaust to the same extent? What was the part of
clerical anti-Judaism in the deprivation of the Jews of their rights, in the misinforma-
CEC_konyv.indd 3
2016.06.10. 8:36:27
Churches Holocaust
tion of the population and at times in stirring up their meanest instincts? What
were the arguments used by the members of the clergy regarded by many followers as the purest in character and with the greatest influence to grant acquittal and
legitimise the political fury of the age? One of them was Lszl Ravasz, an outstanding personality, one of the most famous and most erudite figures of the Hungarian
Reformed Church.
Let me quote here the arguments used by Reformed Bishop Lszl Ravasz in
his address to the Upper House of the Parliament given after the submission of the
so termed first anti-Jewish law by Count Pl Teleki,:
That 1938 law restricted the labour and subsistence rights of Hungarian citizens qualified as Jews to 20% in the fields of the economy, culture and civil service
on a racial basis notwithstanding their religious commitment. Therefore I have to
warn the Jewry not to present either active or passive resistance displaying the
behaviour that would provide arguments for the movement they intend to be protected from. I wish they had noticed much earlier that a minority could not be in a
position in the order of a state to exercise the rights and interests of the majority.
It is an ancient law that the good will suffer instead of the evil. That is also true for
the Jewry. What Ive said on Jews in general, might be painfully unjust for the Jewish individual. He should carry his misery with his head bowed not because he is
responsible or party to the fault, but just think of this what a blessing it is to have
innocent sufferers among us! What would happen if there were not any? Innocent
suffering has a power to expiate and improve. We have passed a law that will cause
pain to many people of Jewish descent whether they are Christians or Israelites - the
greatest pain to the noblest and best people of such descent. We, Christians must
never forget this! We must think of them with love and we must feel gentleness and
love towards them without boasting or hurting them by offering it! We must win over
the Jewry as individuals so that they should fight together with us against the fate of
the Jewry, the Jewish complex of mankind! Let this old fate, this old issue, this old
curse be resolved! It is in their interest and in our interest as well. I accept the bill.
Analysing the clerical press and the archive documents in the interwar period you
can get a clear view of the state of the societies in the different countries, the position of
and the part played by the different religions, and as state borders kept shifting the
response given by the clergy to the processes and political changes of the era.
We included in the scope of our research the Catholic, Reformed, Lutheran
churches and the Catholic monastic orders in Hungary, the Catholic, Reformed,
Greek Catholic and Unitarian churches in Romania and the Catholic, Reformed and
Lutheran churches in Slovakia.
CEC_konyv.indd 4
2016.06.10. 8:36:27
Preface
CEC_konyv.indd 5
2016.06.10. 8:36:27
Churches Holocaust
The actors today have started to behave eerily like those in the interwar period.
The churches in our region are silent in the best of cases. Pope Franciss words arrive here in a much dampened form.
So we believe our research is more and more topical with every day. Looking
into the eye of the phenomena revealed may help to provide a humane answer to
the challenges of the present time.
Erika Trzsk
Foundation Civitas Europica Centralis
chairperson
CEC_konyv.indd 6
2016.06.10. 8:36:27
Attila Jakab
1 See e.g., M. Bloch, The historians craft. Histography studies, Osiris, Budapest, 1996; Gbor Gyni, Historian discourses. (On the path of the past, 3), LHarmattan, Budapest, 2002; Idem., A trtnetrs fogalmi
alapjairl [The theoretic foundations of history writing], in Zsombor Bdy - Jzsef . Kovcs (editor), Bevezets
a trsadalomtrtnetbe [Introduction to social history]. Hagyomnyok, irnyzatok, mdszerek [Traditions,
trends, methodologies], Osiris, Budapest, 2003, pp. 11-53; Idem., Trtnetrs jragondolsa [Re-thinking
of history writing], Trtnelmi Szemle 2006/34, pp. 261274; Lszl Lajtai L. (editor), A trtnetrs mint
tudomny [History writing as science]. Evolution of the historian in the 19th century France, Atelier Knyvtr,
Budapest, 2007.
2 However, the historians freedom to create is not unlimited and this is in my view the fundamental difference
between a historian and a novelist. Contrary to the novelist, the historian can never write about fictitious
events or fictive dialogues. He must know all previous interpretations directly concerning his topic relevant for
his subject matter and if he considers himself an expert, he must also reflect to these either in agreement
or critically. He must attempt to textually support his statements thereby making such statements credible and
acceptable for his readers as well. He cannot be driven by external political expectations nor any other manipulative intentions. A historian can never be told what, how and when to do the limits of his activity are defined by
his own character and his selection of topic and the selected sources. If he takes account of these consideration
and does not comply with the various conventions told in the professional workshops of the profession and of
course, at various levels , he may write a successful book but he cannot call himself a historian. Ignc Romsics,
About the myth of the objectivity of history writing and the unacceptability of making history a myth, in Idem.,
Mltrl a mnak [About the past to the present]. Tanulmnyok s esszk a magyar trtnelemrl [Studies
and essays about the Hungarian history]. (Osiris Knyvtr. History), Osiris Kiad, Budapest, 2004, p. 426.
CEC_konyv.indd 7
2016.06.10. 8:36:27
Churches Holocaust
tion of events, the individual motivations of the players determining the developments,
and the processes that the developments create in the longer term. The following
formulation is to the point: The most historians can do is to establish relationship with
the past, thereby casting light on todays problems and on future alternatives.3
In this context, when it comes to the clerical aspects in Hungary during the first
half of the 20th century, press analyses occupy an important position.4 This is where
the perception of the Jewish community, the sentiment and the approach that defined the readers of the clerical press and the public opinion linked to the given historical church that defined between the two World Wars becomes clearly tangible.
We can say that here, we can witness the daily ecclesiastic anti-Semitism and its
routes and motivations, which practically never came in the limelight of Hungarian
history writing dealing with the 20th century. A flagrant example for this is Ignc Romsics, who wrote the history of the 20th century Hungary and therein the history of
the Horthy era5 while not mentioning a single word about the churches. Although in
this period the Catholic Church was practically one of the Horthy rgimes legitimation bases,6 in return for which it enjoyed privileges and financial benefits. As the
unknown reformed author very suggestively formulated in 1935 in respect of Budapest: While the capital city of Budapest covers all burdens of the Roman Catholic
Church from the taxes we pay to the capital, our church must support itself entirely
from the sacrifices of our believers.7
3 J. Appleby L. Hunt M. Jacob, Telling the Truth about History, New York, 1995, p. 9.; quoted by: Ivn T.
Berend, Kisiklott trtnelem [Derailed history]. Central and Eastern Europe during the long 19th century,
MTA Trtnettudomnyi Intzet, Budapest, 2003.
4 In that respect, see Tibor Klestenitz, A katolikus sajtmozgalom trtnetnek forrsai [Historic sources of the
Catholic press movement] in Margit Balogh (editor), Alattad a fld, fltted az g... Forrsok, mdszerek
s tkeressek a trtnetrsban [The earth below, the sky above.... Sources, methods and directions in
history writing], ELTE BTK Trtnelemtudomnyok Doktori Iskola, Budapest, 2010, pp. 141-159.
5 Ignc Romsics (editor): Magyarorszg trtnete [History of Hungary] Akadmiai Kiad, Budapest, 20102, pp.
773-958.
6 Mt Grdonyi: ldztets s felelssg. A magyar Holokausztrl egyhzi szemmel [Persecution and
responsibility. The Hungarian Holocaust with the eye of the church] in Marcell Mrtonffy va Petrs (editor):
Sztosztott teljessg. A hetvent ves Bor Jnos kszntse, [Split wholeness. Celebrating the 75 year-old
Jnos Bor], Ht Hrs Mrleg, Budapest, 2007, p. 269.
7 Roman Catholic invasion, Clerical life. Official paper of the buda Reformed Church, Vol. 7, issue 8, October 1935, p. 3.
CEC_konyv.indd 8
2016.06.10. 8:36:28
by Attila Jakab
economic position of the Jewish people.8 This endeavour - which can be observed
nationwide - was formulated by the official paper of the Czegld City Christian National Association Party as follows:
we want to break the Jewish rule, but not through pogroms or persecution, but through institutions that will prevent the Jewish people from determining
our rules, from that the Jews define our curriculum in our schools, that the Jews
invade our literature, newspapers, theatres with their intellectual products, that the
Jews grant us loans at usurer interest, that the Jews inflate the price of our food and
industrial goods. And while they live from income without any work, they occupy
leading positions and live a comfortable and wealthy life, the hard working Christian
Hungarian is condemned to live in an unheated room, often suffering from hunger,
wearing shabby clothes, forced to increase the thousands of poor people. The 5%
Jewry must step aside, they must finally learn how to work, they must grab the hammer and must hand over the leadership to those who, due to their weight in terms of
their numbers and historic past and their Christian honesty, really deserve it. This is
what we want in the country, in our town.
We are fighting for fair public life, for improving the life of the working class, for
the development of fair industry and trade, which should be really Hungarian and
Christian; we will fight for alleviating the miserable fate of civil servants, for strengthening small farmers so that the laws protect them so that their houses and a certain
minimum land can never be taken away from them; overall, we are protecting the
thousands of hard working people so that everyone can have a decent livelihood.9
In respect of the press, the period starting in August 1919 can be regarded as a new beginning, because the period of the Republic of Councils10, with its
drastically restrictive measures, brought about a breaking point in the history of
the clerical press. Overall the period between 1919 and 1921 represents an era
of institutional reorganisation between the new state borders created by the Paris
8 dr. Ferenc Frisch, A zsidsg igazi vra [The true castle of the Jews], Nemzeti Ujsg Vol. 1, issue 65, 12 December 1919, p. 1; dr. Ferenc Frisch, A zsidsg igazi vra (Msodik kzlemny), [The true castle of the Jews]
(Second announcement), Nemzeti Ujsg Vol. 1, issue 73, 21 December 1919, pp. 1-2.; dr. Ferenc Frisch, A
zsidsg igazi vra [The true castle of the Jews]. III, Nemzeti Ujsg Vol. 2, issue 35, 10 February 1920, p. 1.;
Interpellcik a zsid trfoglalsrl [Interpellations about the Jewish conquest], Nemzeti Ujsg Vol. 2, issue
76, 28 March 1920, pp. 3-4.; Antal Mller, A keresztny iparossg kvetelsei. State public works are given to
the Jews even today], Nemzeti Ujsg Vol. 2, issue 88, 11 April 1920, p. 12.; A tisztvisel-krds s a zsidsg
gazdasgi trfoglalsa. Az Orszgos Gazdasgi Tancs terve a nemzetgyls eltt [The issue of public officers
and the economic position of the Jewry. Plan of the National Economic Council submitted to the Parliament],
Nemzeti Ujsg Vol. 2, issue 139, 11 June 1920, pp. 1-2.
9 Lapunk tvtele [Takeover of our paper], Cegldi Keresztny jsg, Vol. 1, issue 2, 04 January 1921, p. 2.
10 See Istvn Kollega Tarsoly (chief editor), Magyarorszg a XX szzadban [Hungary in the 20th century]. Volume II: The relevant chapters of the publication Termszeti krnyezet, npessg s trsadalom, egyhzak
s felekezetek, gazdasg [Natural environment, population and society, churches and denominations,
economy] (Babits Kiad, Szekszrd, 1997) (http://mek.niif.hu/02100/02185/html/235.html);
CEC_konyv.indd 9
2016.06.10. 8:36:28
Churches Holocaust
Peace Treaties and a period of recovery. This is also true for the press. However,
the difference is significant.
The number of Roman Catholic press publications that appeared during the
Horthy rgime is in excess of 700.11 This is supplemented by the 17 publications of
the Greek Catholic Church. Both the contents and the appearance of these publications are rather uneven. However, it is a fact that the Roman Catholic press had
practically national coverage, but mainly through its publications of political nature
it played a rather serious public opinion forming role because it was also in debate
with the non-ecclesiastic political press. Behind this nationwide coverage stands
mainly the Kzponti Sajtvllalat Rszvnytrsasg [Central Press Company Limited
by Shares]12, in the foundation of which Bla SJ Bangha had a lions share.
The importance of the Catholic press and the attention paid by the church
leaders is clearly observable in the fact that:
Between 1919 and 1944, there was not a single meeting, where the topic of
the press had not been discussed in one way or another. This also indicates that the
majority of the bishops were aware of the significance of the then most important tool
of mass communication. Accordingly, although not willingly, several of them made
substantial sacrifice to maintain the Catholic press and contributed to the utilisation of
the funds to this end. But from the meetings, it clearly transpires that subsidies were
needed because the Catholic press was otherwise not only uncompetitive but also
unviable. Fragmentation and law efficiency prevailed just as in the case of the associations. The Catholic press was not competitive - not only because of its conservatism
and denominational nature compared with liberal papers or government papers - but
also because it tried to serve several interests at the same time. It had to represent
the interests of the church, but in a way that also pleased the government. It was supposed to be colourful but without hurting the taste of the clergy. It was supposed to
discuss social issues without jeopardising the funds provided by capitalists.13
11 See Dr. Jnos Viczin, Katolikus sajt [Catholic press ] (http://www.kiss.szalez.ofm.hu/pdf/pdf/katolikus_
sajto__dr_viczian_janos.pdf).
12 See Tibor Klestenitz, Mdiahbor 1919-ben: a Dli Hrlap gye [Media war in 1919: the case of the Dli
Hrlap], Mdiakutat, spring 2008, pp. 69-80; Idem., Sajt, felekezet, politika. A Kzponti Sajtvllalat els
vei (1919-1922) [Press, denominations and politics. The first years of the Central Press Company (19191922)], Mltunk Vol. 1, issue 2009/3, pp. 171-201. (http://epa.oszk.hu/00900/00995/00019/pdf/klestenitzt09-3.pdf); Idem., A trdfs s az jsgrk. [The stab and the journalists] Sajtellenessg a keresztnynemzeti kurzus veiben, 1919-1922 [Anti-press sentiments during the years of the Christian national course,
1919-1922], Mdiakutat summer 2010, pp. 85-99; Idem., A katolikus sajtmozgalom Magyarorszgon,
[The Catholic press movement in Hungary] 1892-1932, Complex, Budapest, 2013.
13 Jen Gergely (edited and selected, and wrote the introductory study and the notes and compiled the annexes),
A pspki kar tancskozsai [Conclave of Catholic bishops]. A magyar katolikus pspkk konferenciinak jegyzknyveibl [From the conference minutes of the Hungarian Catholic bishops], 19191944, Gondolat, Budapest, 1984, p. 27.
10
CEC_konyv.indd 10
2016.06.10. 8:36:28
by Attila Jakab
The mentioned unevenness of the publications means that they were mainly
published subject to the available human and material14 resources. For this reason,
the vast majority of the Catholic and Reformed printed press were congregational
or association bulletins or youth, spiritual or cultural publications which hardly dealt
with public, political or social issues or not at all. Not to mention that many publications were published only for a certain (shorter or longer) period of time. The
number of those denominational publications that appeared continuously during the
Horthy era was rather limited. In that respect, the comprehensive review of e.g., the
Greek Catholic press publications is very instructive because these publications
provide a clear picture of the problems present in both the Roman Catholic and the
Reformed churches: Chrysostomos. Grg katolikus lelkipsztori folyirat [Greek
Catholic pastoral paper] (Nyrcsszri, 19271929); Dlmagyarorszgi Grgkatolikus let [Greek Catholic Life of South Hungary]. Grgkatolikus egyhzi tudst
[Greek Catholic clerical bulletin] (Szeged, May 1937 May 1942); Egyhzi Hrad.
A debreceni g(rg) kath(olikus) egyhzkzsg havi rtestje [Greek Catholic parish monthly bulletin] (Debrecen, November 1929 - December 1931); Grg Katholikus Tudst. Egyhzkzsgi lap (Miskolc, April-December 1921); Grgkatolikus
let. Hitbuzgalmi folyirat (Nyregyhza, January 1937 - April 1940; Szeged, May
- December 1940); Grgkatolikus Lelkipsztor. Lelkipsztorok lapja (Nyrcsszri,
19271931); Grgkatolikus Npiskola [Greek Catholic Public School]. A magyar
Grgkatolikus Tantk Orszgos Egyesletnek hivatalos kzlnye [Official bulletin
of the National Association of Hungarian Greek Catholic Praetors] (Nyregyhza,
January 1921 - December 1923); Grgkatolikus Tant. A Grgkatolikus Tantk
Orszgos Egyesletnek hivatalos kzlnye [Official bulletin of the National Association of Hungarian Greek Catholic Praetors] (Srospatak, 19251928); Grgkatolikus Tudst. A Magyar Grgkatolikusok Orszgos Szvetsge hivatalos kzlnye
[Official bulletin of the National Association of Hungarian Greek Catholic Praetors]
(Nyregyhza, 19211926); Hajddorogi Katholikus breds. Grgkatolikus lap
[Greek Catholic paper] (Hajddorog, September-December 1932); Jvnk [Our future] . Grgkatolikus ifjsgi lap [Greek Catholic Couth paper] (Nyregyhza, April
1923 - May 1924); Kelet [East]. Grg katolikus hitbuzgalmi lap [Greek Catholic
Religious paper] (Miskolc, January - March 1935); Keleti Egyhz [Eastern Church.
Tudomnyos s egyhzpolitikai unis szemle [Scientific and church policy union
bulletin] (Miskolc, 19341943); Keleti Fny [Eastern light]. A nyregyhzi kirlyi
katolikus gimnzium grg katolikus nvendkeinek Szent Jozeft Egyesletnek
lapja [Saint Josef Associations paper of the Greek Catholic students of the Nyregyhza Royal Catholic high school] (Nyregyhza, 19391944); Mriapcsi Virgos
14 A permanently recurring theme of these press publications was the issues and the difficulties due to the decreasing number of subscribers. Not to mention that the Hungarian Catholic press e.g., was not at all a factor
that it should have been given the demographic and social political weight of the church. See Baron Dr Istvn
Kray, Katolikus sajt-apostolkods [Catholic press apostolate] , Budapesti RK. Egyhzkzsgek Tudstja
1935, issue 4, pp. 9-10.
CEC_konyv.indd 11
11
2016.06.10. 8:36:29
Churches Holocaust
Kert. A Szent Bazil rend hitbuzgalmi folyirata lelkszek s laikus hvk szmra
[Devotional paper of the Saint Bazil order for pastors and lay believers] (Nyregyhza, September 1925 - March 1932); Szegedi Grgkatolikus let [Szeged Greek
Catholic Life] . G. k. egyhzi tudst [Greek Catholic Church bulletin] (Szeged,
November 1936 - April 1937). The Grgkatolikus Szemle [Greek Catholic Bulletin]
can be regarded as an exception. The official bulletin of the National Association of
Hungarian Greek Catholics, social and devotional paper] (Budapest, March 1929 December 1941; Nyregyhza, January 1942 - March 1944), which appeared for a
fairly long period of time almost continuously.
Within the Roman Catholic context, the Uj Nemzedk [New Generation] (1919
1944) political daily and its peer paper the Nemzeti jsg, [National Paper] a Christian
political daily (19191944), and the Magyar Sion, a Catholic social weekly deserve special attention (19341944). From the regional papers, the Dunntli Hrlap [Dunntl
News] (Gyr, 19191945) considered to be first a political daily then a political weekly
and the Fejrmegyei Napl [Fejr County Digest] published in Szkesfehrvr which
defined itself a political, social and economic gazette have been analysed.
In terms of the Reformed press publications, there were around 220 such
publications during the Horthy era.15 Just as in the case of Catholic press publications, the above mentioned ones also mainly mentioned the current problems: for
financial reasons and due to moderate interest, the mainly local and regional publications were published only for a short period of time. E.g., Abaji Egyhzmegyei
rtest [Abaj diocesan bulletin] (Gnc, January 1935 - March 1940); Bethesda.
Reformtus hitbreszt egyhztrsadalmi munkk lapja [Paper of the Reformed devotional clerical social works]. A vrosi s vidki evangelizci (misszi) s a diakonia
(szegnygondozs, betegpols, stb.) lapja [Paper of the urban and rural evangelisation (mission) and diaconia (caring for the poor and the ill, etc.)] (Budapest, January
1922 - January/February 1927); A Budapest-Budahegyvidki Reformtus Egyhzkzsg rtestje [Bulletin of the Budapest-Buda Hills Reformed Parish] (Budapest,
19351936); Budahegyvidki Reformtusok Lapja [Paper of the Buda Hill Reformed
Community] . Gylekezeti lap [Congregation paper] (Budapest, October 1938 - February 1940); Debreceni Reformtus Szemle [Debrecen Reformed Bulletin] (Debrecen,
November 1925 - December 1926); Az let tja [The path of life] . Reformtus vallsos lap (Ppa, March 1937 - September 1939); Hit s szolglat [Faith and service]
. A Hit s Szolglat Mozgalmnak idszakonkint megjelen kzlnye [The temporary
gazette of the Movement of Faith and Service] (Pcel, Tahittfalu, May 1926 - January
1927); Kbnyai reformtus egyhzi rtest [Kbnya Reformed Church bulletin] .
15 The list of the reformed press publications can be compiled based on the following publication: Ldia Wendelin Ferenczyn, A magyarorszgi hrlapok s folyiratok bibliogrfija, [Bibliography of Hungarian newspapers and magazines] 19211944, Vol. I-II (AL & MZs), Orszgos Szchnyi Knyvtr, Budapest, 2010.
12
CEC_konyv.indd 12
2016.06.10. 8:36:29
by Attila Jakab
A Kbnyai Reformtus Egyhz havi tudstja [Monthly bulletin of the Kbnya Reformed Church] (Budapest, April 1930 - October 1939); Magyar klvinizmus [Hungarian Calvinism] . Reformed clerical, social and ideological magazine (Budapest, February 19341938); Magyar rll. Politikai s trsadalmi hetilap. [Political and social
weekly.] A Protestns Munks Szvetsg reformtus gazatnak hivatalos lapja [The
official paper of the reformed branch of the Protestant Workers Association] (Kispest, April 1932 - July 1932); Olajg. A Magyar Keresztyn Lenyegyesletek Nemzeti
Szvetsgnek lapja [Paper of the National Association of the Hungarian Christian
Girls Association] (Budapest, 19211927/1928); Psztortz. Az szakkeleti reforntus rtelmisg lapja [Paper of the north-eastern reformed intellectuals] (Mtszalka,
September 1926 - December 1927); Reformci. Reformtus lelkszek, tantk,
presbiterek s gylekezeti munksok lapja [Paper of the reformed pastors, praetors,
presbyters and congregational workers] (Pcel, Tahittfalu, Srospatak, 19211931);
Reformtus Kzlet. A gyakorlati egyhzi let folyirata [Magazine of the practical clerical life] (Vszt, October 1934 - August 1939); Szentesi klvinista lobog (Szentes,
May 1944 - August 1944); Tolnai magvet. A Tolnai Reformtus Egyhzmegye evanglizcis s egyhztrsadalmi lapja [Evangelisation and clerical social paper of the
Tolna Reformed Diocese] (Szekszrd, December 1937 May 1939), Zugli reformtus
egyhzi rtest. A Budapest-Zugli Ref. Egyhzkzsg hivatalos lapja [Official paper
of the Budapest-Zugl Reformed diocese ] (Budapest, October 1930 - May 1931).
But even within the Reformed community, there were papers with a broader
audience and a more determining opinion-shaping capacity that were published
regularly and during a longer period of time. Such as the Debreczeni (Debreceni)
protestns lap [The Debrecen Protestant paper]. Egyhzi s iskolai heti kzlny
[Weekly bulletin of the church and school] (Debrecen, 19191944); Dunntli protestns lap. A Dunntli Protestns Egyhzkerlet hivatalos kzlnye [The official
gazette of the Dunntl Protestant Diocese] (Ppa, 19201944).
Overall, we can say that both the history of the church and the conditions
thereof during the Horthy era remain unprocessed until today,16 therefore, the analysis of the Catholic and Reformed press regarding the Jewish community also helps
to better understand and clarify the era itself.
16 A PhD. paper unpublished to date discussed a bit more in detail the church conditions of the era. Zsolt Giczi, A
katolikus-protestns egyhzi kapcsolatok f vonsai a Horthy-korszakban Magyarorszgon [Main features
of the Catholic-Protestant ecclesiastic relations during the Horthy era in Hungary] (http://doktori.btk.elte.
hu/hist/giczizsolt/diss.pdf. ELTE BTK, Trtnelemtudomnyok Doktori Iskola, 2009. Dr. Jen Gergely, theme
leader DSc) attempted to give a comprehensive analysis about the connection that existed between the Christian churches in his paper .. The central topic of his studies was mixed marriages and the reversals closely
related to them and the financial support provided by the state for the churches and the debates around the
possibilities of citizens of a different faith. The issue of the reversals poisoned the connection between the denominations throughout the entire Horthy era. See e.g., Tams Esze: Az igazi reverzlis krds [The true reversal issue], Magyar t. Vilgnzeti s trsadalompolitikai hetilap Vol. 4, issue 19, 1 October 1935, pp. 4-6.
CEC_konyv.indd 13
13
2016.06.10. 8:36:30
Churches Holocaust
14
CEC_konyv.indd 14
2016.06.10. 8:36:30
by Attila Jakab
liberal Jew friend in the entire country. The Christian Party supported by us brought
the only racial law, the numerus clausus, bearing all of the horrible consequences
up till today.22
In the fall of 1919, Bla Tri, editor in charge of the Catholic Nemzeti jsg
clearly formulated that Hungarian people want to become once again a Christian
nation in their soul and state order because our Christian nature he writes has anyway been attacked by a foreign spirit de-routing us from our Hungarianness
and Christian culture, which foreign spirit is now ruling. The readers knew exactly
that this spirit was meant to be understood as the Jewish community!23 In his view,
however, now the will is demonstrated through the magnificence of the racial instinct and the vitality of the national life: discard everything from our national life that
threatens our Christian national existence and create all that yields the conditions of
a new national life. In the light of the above, he points out:
With obsolete liberal slogans, the nation cannot be misled any longer. And
it cannot be. Through its terrible fate, the Hungarian people have painfully experienced that liberalism does not lead to freedom or well-being but to the breakup of
the nation and to decadence. Liberalism as an economic principle has also failed.
The unequal competition ruined equality. It became obvious that social development cannot be ensured by liberal catch words. The political and legal organisation
of the state is not enough. The society itself must be re-organised. That is the historic task of socialism. ()
Christian Socialism does not want to destroy but it wants to re-build keeping an
eye on a social approach and the truth of social thinking. It does not want to scare
us with the fire of class hatred but instead it wants to get rid of the outrageous class
conflicts by creating more harmonious life conditions. It wants real democracy where
the will of the Christian nation prevails and the well-being of the people increases. ()
In this Christian-Social construction work, all those living in this country should
partake embracing a Christian world view and the evangelic morality in this country.
Recognising the threat to our Christian Hungarianness entails the responsibility to
protect the nation and calls for creative work by all those who claim to be Christian
and Hungarian. In this new home-conquering endeavour, the cross is the concurring sword now in the hands of the Christian Hungarians. By saying so we are not
22 Catholic clergy for social reforms. It dealt with the problems of the era at the national meeting and sent a
memorandum to the competent person, Nemzeti Ujsg, Vol. 20, Issue 101, 6 May 1938, p. 5 See also A papsg llsfoglalsa a nemzeti, szocilis s keresztny irny mellett [Position of the clergy to support the national,
social and Christian directions], Dunntli Hrlap Vol. 46, issue 19, 8 May 1938, p. 2.
23 With regard to this, see e.g., Pter Sfr, Munks, bredj ntudatra! [Worker wake up to your awareness],
Csepeli rszem Vol. 2, issue 21, 20 May 1944, p. 1.
CEC_konyv.indd 15
15
2016.06.10. 8:36:30
Churches Holocaust
proclaiming a crusade, but we become aware that only those things will remain Hungarian that remain in Christian hands. This is why our land, our culture, our press,
our wealth, our industry and our economic life should all be in Christian hands. This
is about the national Genius who came to life so that our entire public life shows a
Christian face and reflects the Christian spirit. We want a new Christian country along
the Duna and Tisza rivers, where each of us can find a home and can make a living.
This is the Christian-Social national programme of the Nemzeti Ujsg.24
In this definition and approach, Christian clearly meant non-Jewish. Here, we
can no longer talk about religious category, but a lot more about a racial category.25
Racial life which is not merely a question of physiology, so not simply the
question of physical origin, but rather the result of deep spiritual processes and
traditional experiences, making up reality. This is not an anti-Jewish substance produced during the era of anti-Semitism but the wonderful reality. It comes from the
great secrets of God and nature. And in terms of the race itself, it is an internal force
in the highest form of life: glory stemming from the national life.26
Along this racial thinking, the right of Jewish people to exist was being questioned:
If it is true that the life of humanity materialises in the context of national life,
then among humanity grouped into nations, the Jew, cosmopolite due to racial nature, does not and should not have any right to exist.27
In 1919, the Catholic church press practically announced that the Jews (the
non-Christians, that is mainly the Jews) do not belong into the Hungarian nation.28
Mainly because a fairly large part of the Jewish people proved to be unreliable from
the aspect of our national interests:
24 Bla Tri, Programmunk [Our programme], Nemzeti Ujsg vol. 1, issue 1, 28 September 1919, p. 1.
25 A magyar faj visszaszoritsa gazdasgi tren [Confinement of the Hungarian race in the economy], Fejrmegyei Napl Vol. 28., issue 241, 23 October 241, p. 1. The anonymous author did not even write down
the world Jewish!
26 (tb.): A zsidkrds krl... [Around the Jewish issue], Nemzeti Ujsg Vol. 2, issue 158, 04 July 1920, p. 2.
27 In the Trca [Portfolio] section, Dr. H. ., Az llam s a zsidsg [The state and the Jewry], Fejrmegyei
Napl Vol. 26, issue 119, 12 October 1919, p. 2.
28 A magyar faj megmentse [Salvation of the Hungarian race], Nemzeti Ujsg Vol. 1, issue 18, 18 October
1919, p. 2; Bla Tri, A zsidkrds [The Jewish issue], Nemzeti Ujsg Vol. 1, issue 37, 9 November 1919,
pp. 1-2; x., Keresztny Magyarorszg? [Christian Hungary?], Fejrmegyei Napl Vol. 26, issue 147, 15
November 1919, pp. 1-3; Bla Tri A zsidsg lelki alkata [The psychological constitution of Jews], Nemzeti
Ujsg Vol. 1, issue 61, 7 December 1919, pp. 1-3; kos Mihlyfi dr.: Sorsdnt idk [Historic times], Katholikus Szemle Vol. 33, 1919, pp. 289-295; Bla Tri Az egyetlen lehetsg [The only option], Nemzeti Ujsg
Vol. 2, issue 55, 4 March 1920, p. 1.
16
CEC_konyv.indd 16
2016.06.10. 8:36:31
by Attila Jakab
Who were the ones who proclaimed Hungarian chauvinism and the hate
speech against the ethnic population the loudest and who were the ones who
shouted the loudest? The Jews! Who were the ones rejoicing with the superiority of
neutrality when Hungarian companies and Hungarian estates failed and fell victim
to the secret nets of the ethnic credit institutions? The Jewish capital! Who laid an
ambush for the national front of Hungarian politics, who were the ones feeding the
counter-arguments and fierce agitation Scotus Viators and the various irredentists?
From the books of Jewish writers and journalists who were the ones who injected
the poisonous ferment of dissolution and defeatism into the rows of the Hungarian
army? The Jews! Who sneaked the Trojan horse of pacifism into the castle of national defence? The Jews! Who had weakened our soldiers, who took advantage
of their efforts, who had undermined our national resistance? The Jews! Who had
been the tradesmen and agents of Central Europe? The Jews! Who started the rats
uprising to avoid the bitter consequences of the battlefield? The Jews! Who gave in
to every invader, be it Prussian or Romanian? Who were the ones who could always
escape to some safe refuge to protect themselves from the angry crowd? The Jews!
Who are the ones who are able to give alarm signals through the secret channels of
racial solidarity to the Jewish communities of the 5 continents, when there is trouble
in Lodz or Budapest, in Moscow or Beijing? Them, every time and everywhere.29
The other accusation against Jewish people was the dissimilation in the annexed
territories,30 which was deemed as the betrayal of the nation as seen from Hungary,
while after the Paris Peace Treaty Hungary attempted to adopt a law about restricting
the number of young Jews that can be accepted to the university (numerus clausus).31
29 Megbzhatatlannak mutatkozott... [Proved to be unreliable], Nemzeti Ujsg Vol. 1, issue 67, 14 December
1919, p. 1. Regarding the same course of discussion also see: Szzezer zsid memorandumban hvja vissza
a romnokat Budapestre [A hundred thousand Jews recall the Romanians to Budapest in a memorandum],
Dunntli Hrlap Vol. 28, issue 44, 24 February 1920, p. 2.
30 A magyarok nyomora Erdlyben. ...A zsidk asszimilldnak a romnokhoz... [The misery of the Hungarians
in Transylvania. .... The Jews are assimilating to the Romanians], Nemzeti Ujsg Vol. 2, issue 46, 22 February 1920, p. 4; A nagyvradi zsidk az olh megszlls alatt [The Jews from Nagyvrad during the Romanian
occupation], Nemzeti Ujsg Vol. 2, issue 56, 5 March 1920, p. 5; Blint Albay, Zsid beismers a zsid rulsrl. Az erdlyi zsidsg internacionlis. A Felvidken mr csak szlovenszki zsidsg van [Jews acknowledge their betrayal. The Transylvanian Jews are internationals. There are only Slovensky Jews in Upper Hungary]. The Unified Jewish Parties request the abolishment of the Sunday rest day. Rabbis are organising based
on racial nationalism. Review in the Zsid Szemle, Nemzeti Ujsg Vol. 2, issue 64, 14 March 1920, p. 6;
A lugosi frabbi hazarulsa. Msfl millit gyjtttek a temesvri zsidk az olh hadsereg javra [High treason
of the Lugos chief rabbi. He quickly offers his services to the Romanians. The Jews from Temesvr collected one
and half million in favour of the Romanian army], Nemzeti Ujsg Vol. 2, issue 103, 29 April 1920, p. 2; Az erdlyi,
bnti s mramarosi zsidk behdolsa a romn uralomnak. Cionista konferencia Kolozsvrott, [Submission of
the Transylvanian, Banat and Maramaros Jews to Romanian rule. Zionist conference at Kolozsvr] Nemzeti Ujsg
Vol. 2, issue 277, 24 November 1920, p. 3; Az erdlyi cionista kongresszus a magyarsg ellen. Van zsid
nemzeti kultra s faji trekvs [The Transylvanian Ziomist conference against Hungarians. - The Jewish national
culture and racial endeavour existst], Nemzeti Ujsg Vol. 2, issue 291, 11 December 1920, p. 2.
31 Ismt bezrtk az egyetemet. Az ifjusg gylse a numerus claususrt, [Reunion of the youth for the numerus
clausus], Nemzeti Ujsg Vol. 2, issue 56, 4 March 1920, p. 4; A fiskolai ifjusg tntetse. Memorandum a numerus claususrl [Memorandum for the numerus clausus], Nemzeti Ujsg Vol. 2. issue 57, March 1920, Vol. 62,
CEC_konyv.indd 17
17
2016.06.10. 8:36:31
Churches Holocaust
Bishop Ottokr Prohszka clearly regarded this law as the weapon of racial self-defence.32 Practically no one really noticed the contradiction between the accusations
and expectations towards the Jewish communities living in the annexed territories and
the anti-Semitism and legal restrictions present in Hungary after the Paris Peace Treaty.
While the Jews have been proclaimed the scapegoats and made collectively responsible for the Republic of Councils,33 naturally other voices could also be
heard. Several have raised their voices claiming that a real realistic Christian renewal would be needed in Hungary for the country to rise and be able to demonstrate a
different type of social quality.34 But what were the tone and the style of those urging
the Christian renewal?
On 14 September 1919, on Sunday, on the holiday of the Glorification of the
Saint Cross the author of the Fejrmegyei Napl put the following question to the
readers: Shall we hit the Jews? The answer was clearly yes.
Do we need that the scums of a tenacious race that obtained rights only 50
years earlier grab the power to themselves in Hungary and outrageously beat us to
blood with Christian support. Do we need that these beasts profane our God, violate
our churches, eradicate religiosity, patriotism and enthusiasm towards all that is good
from our childrens soul and implant godlessness and the imbecility of internationality and the rotten flowers of Devils cult. Without this hard lesson we would not have
woken up from the lethargic dream of negligence because although we knew, saw and
understood that the Jews are the rulers in Hungary, we failed to act and instead we
were patiently waiting with our hands folded in our lap for the flood to take us away. ()
So our Jewish neighbours do not have to continuously paint the phantom of
pogrom on the wall and now in the days of waking up, the slogan crosses the country as a storm: hit the Jew! ()
p. 3; The numerus clausus has been voted. Jews can access university based on a racial quota. Minister Haller
closed the debate with a grandiose speech, Nemzeti Ujsg Vol. 2, issue 224, 22 September 1920, pp. 1-3.
32 Ottokr Prohszkas grand speech about the protection of Hungarians. Numerus clausus as the weapon in
the racial self-protection war. The Jewish influence falsifies the Hungarian genius. The national assembly enthusiastically demonstrated in support of Prohszka, Nemzeti Ujsg Vol. 2, issue 220, 17 September 1920,
pp. 1-3. (see also Dunntli Hrlap Vol 28, issue 211, 17 September 1920, p. 1.); while previously he was
discoursing about the derailing of the Christian course in connection with the employment of the Jews: Ottokr
Prohszka A keresztny kurzus kisiklsa [Derailing of the Christian course], Uj Nemzedk Vol. 2, issue 147
(225), 20 June 1920, p. 1.
33 Hajs: Az ifj tancskztrsasg [The young Republic of Councils], Fejrmegyei Napl Vol. 26, issue 70,
12 April 1919, p. 1.
34 The fraud committed in the name of Christianity is a clear refutation of the above. See Mikls Diszeghy, How
56000 people have been cheated? The Akarat cooperative is fooling the people with Christian catchwords.
The country has been enmashed with unfulfillable promises. They promised houses that they could not build
up. Sndor Giesswein left the chairmanship due to the irregularities. Baron Zsigmond Pernyi about the scandal of Akarat, Uj Nemzedk Vol. 2, issue 299 (377), 21 December 1920, pp. 1-2.
18
CEC_konyv.indd 18
2016.06.10. 8:36:31
by Attila Jakab
But if we want to take the rein out of the Jews hands - and we must do this
because Hungary cannot be anything but Christian - we must hit the Jew, hard and
hell-bent, but not with a stick but with their own weapon. We will beat them if the
now ongoing Christian organisation will not be a flash in the pan, and will be able
to merge the entire Christianity into one strong unity if we do not dispute, and if we
displace them from their dominant positions step-by-step working selflessly, if we
carve into our childrens soul this outrage committed on us, this memento filled with
horror influencing all ages and properly educate them and direct them to professions which the Jews are occupying today.
Let us educate craftsmen, traders, farmers, financial experts, doctors, lawyers, engineers, etc. give them support in every area possible and a Christian
should befriend only a Christian and let us hit the Jews in this way to make their
soul hurt! Then once we have achieved that, there will not be any more illiterates
throughout Hungary, and the poorest peasant child will not write down the title in the
way I did at the beginning of this article, then we will have given the first hard blow
which will destroy the Semitic rule and the not so Christian call Hit the Jew!35 will
become unnecessary.
Overall we can say that in the period between 1919 and 1921, the national
Catholic and regional Catholic press dealt a lot more with the Jewish community,
gave news about it and declared their position and opinion than the Reformed press
which had by default a lot more limited press instruments. That naturally also included that mainly the national and regional Roman Catholic papers covered the
news related to the Jewish community,36 including the news concerning Palestine.37
35 Fejrmegyei Napl Vol. 26, issue 96, 14 September 1919, pp. 1-2.
36 See e.g., the motion of the Austrian member of Parliament Kunschak on a Christian socialist gathering, where
he proposed the deportation of Jews who immigrated since August 1914, and to declare the Jews to be a
separate nation and exclude the Jews from holding offices and take part in education. Bcsiek a zsidk ellen [People of Vienna against the Jews], Nemzeti Ujsg Vol. 1, issue 12, 11 October 1919, p. 4; Antiszemita
tntetsek Bcsben [Anti-Semitic demonstration in Vienna], Uj Nemzedk Vol. 2, issue 102 (180), 28 April
1920, p. 2; Antiszemita beszdek az osztrk nemzetgylsben [Anti-Semitic speeches in the Austrian national
assembly], Dunntli Hrlap Vol. 28, issue 100, 1 May 1920, p. 1; Zsidk hoztk a bolsevizmust zsidk javra.
Francia r a Magyar antiszemitizmusrl. [Jews have brought Boshevism for the benefit of Jews. A French writer
about Hungarian anti-Semitism.], Nemzeti Ujsg Vol. 2, issue 170, 18 July 1920, p. 3; Titkos utastsok a
zsidk rdekben. A zsidk a vrs hadseregben is csak a front mgtt teljestenek szolglatot [Secret orders
in the interest of the Jews. Jews in the Red army remain behind the frontlines] Nemzeti Ujsg Vol. 2, issue 213,
8 September 1920, p. 1; A zsidsg a vilg veszedelme. Az angol sztrjkokat zsidk kezdemnyeztk. [The
Jewry are the a threat to the world. The British strikes have been started by the Jews], Nemzeti Ujsg Vol. 2, issue 247, 19 October 1920, p. 1; Anti-Semitism Bund Congress in Vienna. What do we owe to the Awakened?
Anti-Semitism is spreading, Dunntli Hrlap Vol. 29, issue 58, 12 March 1921, p. 1.
37 Jewish governor in Palestine. Britain throws away the majority principle, Nemzeti Ujsg Vol. 2, issue 169,
17 July 1920, p. 2; The Jews also invade the Christian Palestine. The Jews greedy conquest. British officers
are helpless, Nemzeti Ujsg Volt. 2, issue 214, 10 September 1920, p. 3.; Palestines Christian Muslim
population against the Jewish state. The indigenous Jews are also opposing the immigration of foreigners, Uj
Nemzedk Vol. 2, issue 222 (300), 19 September 1920, p. 5; Gyula Murakzy in the Klfldi Szemle [International review] section, A cionistk Palesztinban [Zionists in Palestine], Protestns Szemle Vol. 33, issue 7,
CEC_konyv.indd 19
19
2016.06.10. 8:36:32
Churches Holocaust
20
CEC_konyv.indd 20
2016.06.10. 8:36:32
by Attila Jakab
product of the Genius of the Jewish race and thereby want to stigmatise it. Are you
Gentlemen aware as to what you are achieving with this? You take out the greatest
living authority from humanitys hands. This book, which is the book of life on the
Tierra del Fuego just as in Central Africa, Greenland or the Great Hungarian Plains
and in New York and China. The only book from which history has erased any racial
or temporal stigma, the book which belongs to the entire humanity and therefore,
can be the book of the awakening Hungarians. I kindly ask you to avoid believing
such catchwords. Those who erode the prestige of the Bible, I repeat, either favour
the atheists or become the unaware tool of the clerical propaganda.40
Lajos Tth dealt with this topic in more detail in his 3-part article series titled
The religious value and meaning of the Old testament from the aspect of the Christian Church.41 Later on, during the era of the anti-Jewish laws and the Holocaust,
the issue became timely again,42 but the Roman Catholics did not devote any special attention to it.
When it comes to the Roman Catholic and Reformed churches of the Horthy
era it is interesting and worth noting how their approach to the Jewish conversions
changed. This is practically hardly a topic in the Catholic press, while in terms of the
Reformed press the Jewish mission is part of the more general missionary strategy and
activity within the country and especially outside the borders. The external missionary
paper titled Hajnal consistently deals with the relationship of the Jews and of the Christians from 1921 all the way until 1937 and with the issues of the Jewish mission. In that
respect, it is crucial to mention Gyula Forgcs, priest of the Scottish Mission who was
very active in that area. After Hitler gained power in Germany, bishop Ravasz himself
gave a speech about the Jewish issue, which appears rather contradictory seen from
todays perspective. In his speech he emphasised that the solution of Jesus to resolve
the Jewish issue is the mission but he differentiated the Jews of the Old Testament and
the contemporary Jews,43 and he also explained that:
Any endeavour that urges the establishment of a Jewish state must be supported from the Christian perspective as this is everyones birth right. I would say
40 Dr. Ravasz Lszl pspk az testamentumrl [Bishop Dr. Lszl Ravasz about the Old Testament], Egyhzi
Hrad (Szeged) 2 May 1925, pp. 2-3. Originally published in issue 14 of the Klvinista Szemle.
41 Dunntli protestns lap Vol. 37, issue 42, 17 October 1926, pp. 181-182.; issue 43, 24 October 1926,
pp. 185-186.; issue 44, 31 October 1926, p. 190.
42 See e.g., Dr. Sndor Czegldy: Aki az testamentumot elveti, az nem keresztyn. A Msodik Helvt Hitvalls [Those who reject the Old Testament are not Christians. (367.), 15 March 1944, pp. 3-5.; Jnos Tussay,
Mirt tantjuk az szvetsget iskolinkban? [Why are we teaching the Old Testament in our schools?],
Protestns Szemle Vol. 53, issue 8, August 1944, pp. 209-215.
43 We can find this distinction also among the Greek Catholics. There, however, the author distinguish between
the Judaism before and after Christ, Euthymos: Keresztnysg s zsidsg (Christianity and Judaism), Grgkatolikus let (Greek Catholic Life) Vol. 2, issue 10, October 1938, p. 153.
CEC_konyv.indd 21
21
2016.06.10. 8:36:32
Churches Holocaust
that the Jews who want to retain their racial and national nature even when dispersed all over the world should hit the road and go to a place where they can find
all the attributes of their own race, language and state life and all of the merits of
their race starts flourishing. Those Jews, however, who have sworn community in
their soul with the people of the accepting state which considers it to be Spanish,
Dutch or Hungarian, those Jews should strive to merge as much as possible with
the soul of that accepting nation, also share their beliefs, be with them and unite
with them both spiritually, physically and mentally. But this is only possible if a better
Christianity, a more conquering, a stronger missionary and evangelical life exists.44
Bishop Ravasz emphasised the relevance of this mission already in connection
with the voting of the first anti-Jewish law but obviously not without any conditions
and not without restrictions:
It must be emphasised that against any trendy ideologies, the Christian
Church can never give up its missionary vocation and missionary order for the Jews.
Nowhere in the Bible does it say to make your disciples every people but the Jews.
The Christian Church will never give up on its missionary order for the sake of any
racial theory. But at the same time, the Christian Church emphasises that when trying to gain the souls, it is not driven by the assimilation laws but the eternal holy one
Gospel. We do not baptise a soul for it to be assimilated to the club but because we
want that soul to assimilate to Christ.
Christian churches committed a grave omission when without exercising any
criticism, they took over the people of Jewish religion applying for conversion without
examining the motive of the conversion and they said: the case of your assimilation
is settled. By doing so, we enabled many people to come to the Christian church not
for Christ but for other reasons. When Lord Christ established its church it did not
promise any type of advantage nor reception nor assimilation but he said to take up
his cross and empty the glass that he had emptied. He promised suffering. What he
promised he gives. He gives soul but with the soul he often gives martyrdom.
The Christian churches should exercise wise moderation when taking over
the Jews. We already have enough bad Christians among our own members, why
should we import a large number from among our Jewish compatriots?45
44 Ravasz pspk a zsidkrdsrl [Bishop Ravasz on the Jewish issue], Ujpesti Reformtus Egyhzi rtest
Vol. 9, issue 5, 1934, pp. 2-3.
45 Victorious Hungarians. The Christian Church did not give up its missionary task towards the Jewish community. Excerpt from dr. Lszl Ravaszs presentation given at the Mtszalka Conference and his speech in the
Parliament, Egyhzi Hrad (Szeged) Vol. 17, issue 22-23, 4 June 1938, p. 3; From the Parliament speech
of Dr. Lszl Ravasz: The Christian Church cannot give up its missionary task towards the Jewish community, Reformtus let Vol. 5, issue 22, 28 May 1938, p. 219.
22
CEC_konyv.indd 22
2016.06.10. 8:36:33
by Attila Jakab
CEC_konyv.indd 23
23
2016.06.10. 8:36:33
Churches Holocaust
the very local press publications we can say that they did not deal with the Jewish
community and they did not even raise Jewish topics not only during the period
extending from 1919/1920 to 1937 but even during the war and the time of the
Holocaust nothing referring to what was happening in the country and in the public
life appeared in these publications. The local/congregation news, spiritual writings,
publications and draft sermons do not give room to dealing with public, social issues. An interesting exception is the Egyhzi let considered to be the official paper of the buda Reformed Church (between March 1930 and December 1939),
where despite the obvious anti-Semitism of Aladr Kontra, pastor and member
of Parliament Jew-bashing gains room in this paper only after the appearance of
the new editor-in-chief, Endre Dek (October 1932) and continuously thereafter in
the monthly publication. In that respect, we can say that the person or the personality of the editor of the given press publication is very determining when it comes
to the Jewish issue. In Catholic circles, this seems to be confirmed in the case of
the Csepeli rszem published as a political weekly (1 March 1941 - 22 December
1944), whose editor-in-chief and publisher was initially Jzsef Follth chaplain; then
as from 21 May 1943, Jnos Rbl, canon. This publication regularly featured articles dealing with the Jews.
However, during that era, some contradictory writings also appeared. For example, the writing of Emil Doumergue (1844-1937), a French writer, historian and
theologian titled About the Jewish pogrom. According to him:
any persecution starts based on Satans impulse. But there is one, a single
one persecution that the Jews and only they have no right to blame.
And this is Jewish persecution itself!
We know that when Pilate was reluctant to give Jesus over to the Jews - because he knew that he was innocent - then the official representatives of the Jews
started to shout: Crucify him! Crucify him! His blood on us and on our children! And
with other words this meant: We take the responsibility for Jesus death on us because we know that he is guilty and he deserves death. And should he be innocent
- which is impossible - then God should seek punishment for letting the blood of the
innocent on us and on our children and not on you, Pilate!
In this way, the Jews concluded an official contract with God about Jesus
death.
And now what they themselves wanted is happening. The blood of the innocent
falls back onto the Jews and their children as they have solemnly asked it from God.
24
CEC_konyv.indd 24
2016.06.10. 8:36:34
by Attila Jakab
Then why are they complaining? And why should Jewish persecutions be
claimed unjust?
There is only one way: the Jews should stop to be Jews and should convert to
Christ. ()
If the Jews are not right when they are complaining about being persecuted,
then is the world right when the world is blaming the Jews. No. We saw that here we
are talking about a contract between the Jews and God. Therefore, those who do
not believe in God have no right to intervene in this affair.
The Russian pagans have no right to persecute the Jews. But the new pagans
of Germany, those who completely reject both the Old and the New Testament,
have no right to do so either.
Therefore, only the Christians have the right to persecute the Jews.
But do they really have the right to do so?
How would they have such right when the Christians are those people for whom
it is forbidden to persecute? The benign are happy because they own the land according to their inheritance. The merciful are happy because they gain mercy.
We should not try to be the tool of Gods justice. He can do justice without us.
We should never and nowhere persecute anyone.49
CEC_konyv.indd 25
25
2016.06.10. 8:36:34
Churches Holocaust
instinctive business greed. He declared that this issue had to be resolved and the
government would deal with it.50 This speech seems to have broken a dam and the
repercussions of this breaking are clearly visible in the clerical press51:
It seems that since Klmn Darnyi Prime Minister clearly said in his speech in
Szeged that we do have a Jewish issue, since then serious and authoritative politicians have been dealing with this issue more and more frequently. They may think
that if the Prime Minister had the right to touch this sensitive topic, then they will not
be blamed with anti-Semitism or incitement against the religious community race.52
However, the unknown author of the Christian political weekly of Gyr saw the
issue and mainly the issue of responsibility with a bit more subtlety:
But lets look at it: who or what is the reason for the fact that trade has been
practically completely monopolised [naturally by the Jews]? Those who did not like
the profession of merchants and considered the work of an agent as a downgrading
profession. Those Christians who did not help the Christian retailers to get back on
their feet and from among the Christian tradesmen those who discouraged the
Christian buyers from going to their stores. For this we cannot blame the Jewish community. Once our youth becomes more alert and business wise and have more Christian and national consciousness and the Christian population holds together stronger,
then we will have no more reason to complain about this issue. This issue cannot be
resolved simply by phrases coloured with national slogans and loud threats. To mention only one: how dare such a Christian complain who never even read a Christian
paper, for whom the tabloid press is their favourite paper and who are not satisfied
with the Christian press? Many of the weeping and race protecting Hungarians should
be blamed for this. Let us be honest: the reason why in the country and also in Gyr
we must talk about the Jewish issue, the reason for this is the old liberal thinking and
todays opportunistic Christian Hungarians or at least 50% of them.53
The author of the Reformtus let expresses similar thoughts. In his view:
the Hungarian society cannot resolve the Jewish issue because it has been
corrupted with the Jewish soul. Even the leader proclaiming the most anti-Semitic
50 A miniszterelnk szegedi beszde [The speech of the Prime Minister in Szeged], Dunntli Hrlap Vol. 45,
issue 17, 25 April 1937, p. 1.
51 A good example of this is e.g., the Magyar t. A ideological and social political weekly which immediately
published an article although previously it did not publish any article covering the Jewish issue: Bla Pap, A
Galiciai... [The Galician], Magyar t Vol6, issue 17, 22 April 1937, p. 1.
52 rg. [assumably Gyula Reiner, parish priest, editor-in-chief], A zsidkrdsrl [About the Jewish issue,
Dunntli Hrlap Vol. 45, issue 37, 12 September 1937, p. 1.
53 Op.cit.
26
CEC_konyv.indd 26
2016.06.10. 8:36:34
by Attila Jakab
catchwords shows a doubtful spirituality in his morality, in his public activities, in the
upbringing of his children, in fulfilling his responsibilities and fails to question the materialist, utilitarian and transcendent truth. A Christian society with a Jewish soul is
not able to pursue a mission against a spirituality that inherited a peculiar spirit after
thousand years of oppression, dealing with money and not respecting the Bible. How
strange is it that even during the era of the bloodiest fights, Hungarian politicians
failed to say out loud what the Prime Minister now simply announced: it is not in the
interest of the Hungarian Jewish community either that people who have no roots in
this land sneaked in from Galicia for profit, make business and gain citizenship. The
Jews who have settled down here and share the same faith as the Hungarians are
also welcoming this reform. How peculiar is it that we have failed to take over for
19 years - the simplest measure approved by all, one that would be the most efficient
help. We kept knocking on a closed door, until we lost the key to the solution.54
In the light of all of the above, we can justifiably state that the Christianity of
the Horthy era was very self-conscious not so much in terms of its religion but a lot
more in terms of its national and racial aspect. However, this content was unable to
provide a spiritual and intellectual strength for the contemporary Christianity; it was
indeed made into a form without content, empty catchword55 which became the
most obvious in the appearances of the Eucharistic World Congress held in Budapest parallel to the voting of the first anti-Jewish laws.56
But the position of Jzsef Grsz, Bishop of Szombathely supports the same:
I do not have an issue with the Nyilas [Arrow Cross] movement nor in general
with the national socialists as long as they do not turn against Christ and his Bible.
() The arrow can go together with the cross as long as it is next to it and not against
it: as long as the Arrow Cross movement adores Christ and its members are believers going to church, we have no problem with them and we do not fight against
them. ()
We are not enemies of the national idea or of social reforms. We are not encouraging anyone to hit the Jew, but we do propagate that you should love and
support your race.57
54 A galiciaiak [The Galicians], Reformtus let Vol. 4, issue 17, 24 April 1937, p. 169.
55 Dr. Jnos Mszros Budapest archiepiscopal general governor, Reform!... Reform!..., Budapest RK. Egyhzkzsgek Tudstja 1935, issue 2, p. 1.
56 See Attila Jakab, Megszentelt antiszemitizmus. Eucharistic World Congress and the first anti-Jewish law in
Hungary in 1938.], Eszmlet. Social political and cultural magazine issue 104, winter 2014, pp. 111-122.
57 Speech of Bishop Jzsef Grsz on social reforms and the support of the Est papers, Dunntli Hrlap Vol.
46, issue 14, 3 April 1938, p. 2. We should re-think the role of Bishop Grsz in state socialism in the light of
this. This is a telling example of a career across several regimes.
CEC_konyv.indd 27
27
2016.06.10. 8:36:34
Churches Holocaust
The national secretary of Actio Catholica, dr. Jzsef Kzi-Horvth offers a clear
example for the racial/national consciousness. He formulated this explicitly:
Over the past decades, the Hungarian blood, the Hungarian line and the Hungarian national values were terribly wasted. They tolerated without any action that
half a million Hungarians emigrate and in their place four hundred thousand Galician
Jews filter in the country. With blatant guilty improvidence they let these parasites
occupy the country and tolerated without any action that this foreign community
grabs the manufacturing industry, the banks, the trade, a good part of the land, the
theatre, the press and the leadership of the working class. There are false Hungarians who, out of fear or financial interest, were willing to accept the rule of these
newcomers. The Hungarian Christian society will not accept this. The awakening
consciousness of the Hungarian people is not shouting nor threatening, only declares with grave seriousness that it will not give up until it manages to clean this
country from the sneaked in strangers, as long as the Jewrys sickening economic
and moral rule is not broken, until it can ensure the rule of the Hungarians in the entire country starting from the small village grocery stores all the way up to the largest
banks, factories, department stores, theatres and press palaces.58
Contrary to public belief and expectations, the pushing out of the Jews from
the economic life implemented through legislation did not bring at all the assumed
quality improvement and Christianisation. It turned out that
there are some Christian entrepreneurs and businessmen who are unwilling to
accept Christian morality, traditional business fairness or the most fundamental human righteousness as the basic rule of business ethics. These believe that this new
system made the entire Christian Hungarian population a free prey to the toll man of
the economic life who may be Christian in their names and their race but who are
pagan in their soul.59
The fact that in the debate of the first anti-Jewish law the clearest Christian position was formulated by the founder and owner of the Korunk Szava Catholic paper,
Count Gyrgy Szchnyi says everything about the leaders of the contemporary
Christian Church.
58 Jzsef Kzi-Horvth, Harc a nemzeti, szocilis s keresztny Nagy-Magyarorszgrt! [Fight for the national,
social and Christian Great Hungary!], Dunntli Hrlap Vol. 46, issue 15, 10 April 1938, p. 1.
59 Dr. . Szm: J keresztny zletembereket! [Good Christian businessmen], Dunntli Hrlap Vol. 51, issue
22, 29 May 1943, p. 1.
28
CEC_konyv.indd 28
2016.06.10. 8:36:35
by Attila Jakab
From this proposal, I see the spirit of the National Socialism reflected - he
claimed - and this is the main reason I turn against it. 60
According to his opinion also formulated in the paper titled Korunk Szava:
It is clear that the proposed bill concerns and not only concerns but attacks
such questions that affect the very core of our Catholic belief, that are irreconcilable with our whole ideology and therefore, a Catholic person cannot accept this
proposal with a clear consciousness.61
It was parallel to the deprivation measures affecting the Jewish community that
the attacks against the Old Testament developed. The Reformed party seemed to
be a lot more sensitive to this issue than the Catholics. Imre Barth already formulated in May 1938 that:
The Bible is a sacred book. We, Hungarian Reformed believers especially love it.
Among our memories coming from our ancestors, many of us keep the sweet
old Bible on the back pages of which maybe our tenth grandfather noted: My son
Gyurka was born last year.
In our childhood we grew up in the spirit of the Bible.
Therefore, we love the Bible until the last hours of our life. ()
if we become pastors () We read it, explain it all the time. We quote its
words on the occasion of baptism, weddings and funerals.
And one day we realise one big truth. Namely that the two components of the
Bible, the Old and the New Testament both serve two huge saint ideas, that of the
truth and that of love.
The Old Testament is the book of truth and rules. The New Testament is the
book of love, mercy and charity.
60 The meeting of the Parliament: Proposal for the memorial of Szent Istvn about the Parliamentary meeting to
be held in Szkesfehrvr - Count Gyrgy Szchnyi: No single position accumulation should have been left
prior to submitting the Jewish proposal, Nemzeti Ujsg Vol. 20, issue 106, 12 May 1938, p. 5
61 Count Gyrgy Szchnyi: About a more efficient insurance of the balance between social and economic
life, Korunk Szava Vol. 8, issue 9, 1 May 1938, p. 278.
CEC_konyv.indd 29
29
2016.06.10. 8:36:36
Churches Holocaust
And so slowly two angels appear on the horizon of our soul; the angel of
truth and the angel of love. And these two angels will drive our ideas and thoughts
throughout our life. Their wings leave traces everywhere we look. ()
A certain percentage of our domestic Israelite brothers gained huge material
power under the lead of the angel of the Old Testament. But we, Hungarians of the
New Testament became very poor here and there. So today the national voice is
loudly claiming the brotherly distribution of the material wealth accumulated under
the leadership of the Old Testament spirit.
This is a difficult and tough debate, for us Hungarian Reformed believers. It is
a hard and difficult debate because we know the Bible and life.
True enough it is a painful debate but one with many lessons. Instructive because our own life experience drives us to the thought, to the truth that the Bible is
an eternal holy creation, holy book.
The world famous creation of the many presumptuous great geniuses can become trash and can get annihilated; the Bible, our ancestors favourite book, will
remain the holy book in all times.
It is based on this book that the human society can be re-built again and again
in all times.62
The above quotation clearly shows that they assessed and interpreted the deprivation of the Jewish people practically as a fair re-distribution. The protection of
the Old Testament as being the holy book and divine revelation did not entail any
verbal contribution in any form whatsoever in the interest of the Jewish community.
Not least because Istvn Szintai Reformed theology student e.g., connected the
prophetic anti-Semitism with the anti-Semitism of the contemporary Hungarian Reformed circle:
A follower of the Reformed Church - seeing that the Jewish spirit is against
his church and the truth of God cannot be but anti-Semitic. The defence of Truth
is our obligation. Not the extremities but the facts can make a person anti-Semitic.
The Jews themselves! Read the Old Testament to the end and you will see their own
prophets had been the greatest anti-Semites.63
62 Imre Barth, testamentom jtestamentom [Old Testament - New Testament], Debreczeni protestns lap
Vol. 58, issue 5, 15 May 1938, p. 109.
63 Szintai Istvn, Reformtus antiszemitizmus [Reformed anti-semitisme], Egyhzi let Vol. 10, issue 5, May
1938, p. 2.
30
CEC_konyv.indd 30
2016.06.10. 8:36:36
by Attila Jakab
In 1938, the Greek Catholic author also protected the Old Testament; and he
even contested that the Old Testament belonged to the Jews:
The Jews were the involuntary carrier of Gods will and therefore, they were
not the ones who produced the holy book. On the contrary, the majestic ideas of
those holy books - which are also the foundations of Christianity - are very far away
from the spirit of the Jews. Or did the Old Testament Jews not prove sufficiently that
these writings are not originating from their soul when they were ready to oppose
even God for these ideas. We must know that the Bible of the Old Testament is not a
Jewish product, but the creation of God. And that Christ is originating from the Jews
by blood - there is no reason for us to say: if he was a Jew we have nothing to do
with him, we do not want to hear about him! Because wasnt Christ the living God at
the same time? And God is above races and especially the bad qualities of races. In
Christianity, blood relation does not count anyway. (Luke. 8, 20.)
After Christ, the role of the Jews ceases in connection with Christianity. Only
a handful of them are left for the New Testament, the group of apostles and disciples who were cleaned from the real Jewish spirit and filled by Gods soul. The rest
spread all over the world and no longer guided by Gods hands followed their own
path corresponding to their true nature.64
Sndor Czegldy (1883-1944) Reformed pastor expressed similar opinions:
the Old Testament belongs to those believing in Christ. This already happened after
the deportation of the countryside Jewish communities!
instead of being the creation of the soul of the Jewish race, the Old Testament gives evidence from start to end for how God and the people are fighting
against natural racial morality and racially determined religion; how God wins over
human thoughts and concepts so that the advice and the judgement of that God
finally achieves triumph, () From certain aspects, we can boldly say that the
Old Testament is one of the most anti-Semitic books of the world because what
it contains is the very contrary to what the racial spirit of the Jews ( or the racial
spirit of any nation ) could produce from itself. The Old Testament is neither the
book of the Jews nor that of Hungarians - because the Old Testament is the book
of God. ()
The post-Christ Jewry retained the Old Testament but it is a dead book for
them, a closed book, a truth covered with a veil. () Lets not make the Old Testament the Bible of the Jews! Because the Old Testament is ours, the possession of
64 Euthymos: Keresztnysg s zsidsg [Christianity and the Jewry], Grgkatolikus let Vol. 2, issue 10,
October 1938, p. 153.
CEC_konyv.indd 31
31
2016.06.10. 8:36:37
Churches Holocaust
the spiritual Israel, it belongs to those who sing the psalm of David together with
their spiritual fathers, with the galley-slaves, with the reformers and those who still
believe and embrace that Jesus of Nazareth is the Christ, the Messiah of the Old
Testament even during these anti-Christian times.65
With the progress of time, the clerical press also placed emphasis on strengthening the influence of the church over the working class at the expense of the Social Democratic Party and the trade unions.66 Within the Catholic community, it tried
to attain this by propagating the order by vocation and by claiming the necessity to
radically exclude the exploiter Jews from the economy as much as possible and as
soon as possible. The titles of the articles published in the papers clearly reflected
the anti-Jewish uproar. For example:
Hungarian goal: Resolve the Jewish issue. The sins of the Jews. The
Jewish spirit must be eradicated! The only solution: order by vocation;67
The industry must be freed from the Jewish rule!;68
Enough of the Jewish capitalism which only threw the leftover to the
working class. Great speech of Jzsef Kzi-Horvth on the cultural evening of the peoples movement in Magdolnavros;69
The life of the working class in an industrial city, where Jewish tradesmen
and pub owners pocket the money of the workers. Commerce of Csepel
in Jewish hands;70
Fischer provides work for the Jews but not for the Hungarians;71
A city where you cannot even buy a pin on the occasion of Jewish
holidays;72
A Jewish woman from jpest makes young girls work in her workshop
from 7 in the morning till 8 at night;73
Why and how did the turn-of-the-century Hungarian workers become international? Who is responsible for letting the Jews grab the developing
trade union life?;74
65 Dr. Sndor Czegldy: Fight against the Old Testament. We should not make the Old testament the Bible of
the Jews because it is ours, it belongs to those who believe that Jesus is the promised Messiah, Reformed
Future, Vol. 5, issue 35, 30 August 1944, p. 1.
66 See e.g., In the section Munksszemmel [With the eye of a worker] Jzef rvai leather industry worker:
A zsidkrdsrl [About the Jewish issue], Magyar t Vol. 11, issue 37, October 1942, p. 84.
67 j Rend vol. 2, issue 3, 18 January 1941, p. 3.
68 j Rend vol. 2 issue 4, 25 January 1941, p. 1.
69 j Rend, vol. 2 issue 7, 15 February 1941, p. 5.
70 j Rend, vol. 2, issue 10, 8 March 1941, pp. 1-2.
71 j Rend, vol. 2 issue 18, 3 May 1941, p. 7.
72 j Rend, vol. 2, issue 21, 24 May 1941, p. 5. This city is Ungvr.
73 j Rend, vol. 2, issue 25, 21 June 1941, p. 6.
74 j Rend , vol. 2, issue 32, 9 August 1941, p. 5.
32
CEC_konyv.indd 32
2016.06.10. 8:36:37
by Attila Jakab
Bla Lng: So be it! The Jews manager dont like the [journal] New
Order;75
The Jewish Pestvidk Gztglagyr [brick factory] employs children under the age of 14;76
The Jewish brick factory of Vsrosnamny owes its workers nearly
6,000 Peng. Continuous infringements under the rule of the Jewish
Katz factory manager who declared that he is the ruler within the factory.
Why did workers not receive any family wage allowance?;77
Reversed selection at the expense of the Hungarian workers and industry officials. The faith of Hungarian workers and officers should not depend on Jewish and semi-Jewish bosses;78
Development of the Hungarian workers (The honest story of 60 years of
battle, disappointments and results of the working class). Who is responsible for the breaking away of the working class from Christianity? When
the parish priest depended on the Jewish alderman;79
Istvn Csurgai: Kulcsr and Huppert, a Jewish dyer, is reluctant to provide paid holidays for their workers after one year in the job;80
Jnos Ndasi: How Jewish property owners want to divest the Debrecen-based Vocational Organisation from its home?;81
Viktor Vajna from Pva, executive chairman of the Industrial Section of the
Baross Association talked about the pressing urgency to abolish Jewish
capitalism;82
Hiding the Jews and Christian liberalism. Reflektorfnyben a szappanos,
vasas, rongyos zsidk s gyszmagyarok.83
But when preparing the balance of the anti-Jewish laws era we can draw the
sad conclusion that lower strata of the population and mainly the workers did not
gain anything whatsoever with the anti-Jewish laws. They tried to explain in vain
ideologically that the materialistic Jewish spirit had disappeared from the economic life but the facts and everyday experiences simply contradicted that statement.
There was nothing surprising or extraordinary in this because this is exactly what
happened already in the 1920s.84
75
76
77
78
79
80
81
82
83
84
CEC_konyv.indd 33
33
2016.06.10. 8:36:37
Churches Holocaust
All the more so as the anti-Jewish laws had some unforeseen consequences as
well. Such is for example the evolution of the Strawman system. Here we are talking
about Christians, who for various (e.g., financial) considerations provided help for
the Jews and, in the assessment of the contemporary press, who circumvented the
endeavours serving Christian interests of the anti-Jewish laws, and acted against it
or played it out. So the Strawman is the person, who:
In spite of the spirit of the law, he promotes the Jewish endeavours to remain
in the economic life even if only in the background, and to survive the <non-permanent conditions. The Jews try every possible way not to give up their business and
not to lose their connections and opportunities. It is very natural that all this could
happen only at the expense of Christian Hungarians: and the Strawman - who gives
his name but the Jew works in the background - is supporting this. ()
Whether the Strawman helps the Jew for financial advantages or simply out
of favour, is not relevant! He anyway commits a crime against his own Christian
brothers because it hinders or averts their livelihood and prosperity. They are fake
Christians because for Judas money, they give a hand for the Jews so that they can
continue to oppose the re-setting of the economic life. The Strawmen linked their
fate to that of the Jews, so when we call them Strawmen it is very lightly put. In reality - they are traitors!
Therefore, it is in the interest of the nation to act against the Strawman without
mercy. The best would be to give them the same treatment as the race they serve
- the Jews.85
We can say that mainly the period between 1938 and 1942 can be regarded
as the period of complete moral failure and loss of credibility of the Hungarian
Christian churches; for which one of the most apparent phenomenon was the silence of Christians.86 We can discover a very marking appearance of this silence
for example in the Debreczen Protestant paper or in the Lelkszegyeslet, the
official bulletin of the National Reformed Pastors Association or in the Dunntli
Protestant Paper , which papers, following the passing of the first anti-Jewish law,
did not publish a single article on the Jewish topic. One of the major problems
during the period until 1944 for the paper of the Debrecen diocese was the case
85 Ki a strman?[Who is the strawman],j Rend, Vol. 3, issue 21, 23 May 1942, p. 6. Also see: Az anyagelosztsi krdsek s a strohmann rendszer a debreceni briparosok nagygylse eltt [Material distribution issues and the Strawman system before the general meeting of the Debrecen leather manufacturers],
Tiszntl, Vol. 1, issue 1, 4 February 1941, p. 5.; (): Strman[strawman], Magyar t , Vol. 10, issue 12,
20 March 1941, p. 2.:
86 Lszl Gaudy: A megflemltett keresztynsg [The threatened Christianity], Protestns Szemle Vol. 48,
issue 11, November 1939, pp. 521-523; here: p. 521.
34
CEC_konyv.indd 34
2016.06.10. 8:36:38
by Attila Jakab
of the reversals87; for this paper, the Jewish issue did not exist. From the Catholic
aspect, we can similarly mention e.g., the Egri Egyhzmegyei Kzlny, the semiofficial paper of the diocese (Eger, 1919 October 1944.), which was edited by
theology teachers or the Jelenkor, a social, political and cultural paper.
All of this, however, is not valid for the Roman Catholic press publications which
had a larger reading audience. When analysing these publications, it becomes clear
that the failure and loss of credibility mainly happened because the restrictive measures
and deprivations affecting the Jewish community did not result in any resistance on
behalf of the churches; they more or less agreed with these measures and, willingly or
not, they contributed to the Hungarian society becoming fine-tuned to the Holocaust.
Not to mention that the Roman Catholic national media continuously kept the Jewish
issue on their agenda and reported the Parliamentary debates of the anti-Jewish laws
(especially the first two ones) to the readers,88 mainly voicing negative opinions thereby
significantly contributing to an anti-Jewish (we could say anti-Semitic) social feeling.89
A very tangible example of this provocation is an excerpt from the Parliament
speech of Ferenc Rajniss given in April 1942, which suggests e.g., for the Roman
Catholic workers of Csepel that despite any restrictions and deprivation, the Jews
are still better of:
87 Debreceni rszem, Reverzlisgy [The case of the reversal], Debreczeni protestns lap Vol. 58, issue
10, 15 September 1938, p. 234; A debreceni reformtus egyhz reverzlis mrlege [The reversal balance
of the Debrecen reformed church], Debreczeni protestns lap Vol. 59, issue 2, 15 January 1939, pp. 1-2;
A debreceni reverzlis-gy [The reversal case in debrecen], Debreczeni protestns lap Vol. 60, issue 11,
1 June 1940, pp. 89-90; A reverzlis-gyrl (Hozzszls) [About the reversal case (Comment)], Debreczeni
protestns lap Vol. 60, issue 14, 15 July 1940, p. 115; Dr. Tth Dezs, tvenves a reverzlis-trvny [The
reversal law is 50 years old], Debreczeni protestns lap Vol. 64., issue 5, 30 January 1944, pp. 36-37. The
same is valid for the Egyhzi Hrad of Szeged.
88 See e.g., The anti-Jewish law. The speech of bishop Lszl Ravasz in the Parliamentary debate, Keresztyn
csald Vol. 19, issue 17, 23 April 1939, pp. 1-4; Serdi hercegprims, Glattfelder pspk s Imrdy miniszterelnk beszltek a Felshz egyestett bizottsgban [Serdi hercegprms, bishop Glattfelder and Imrdy
Prime Minister talked in the joint committee of the Parliament], Nemzeti jsg Vol. 20, issue 114, 21 May
1938, pp. 1-4; A zsidkrds. [The Jewish issue.] Dr. Ravasz Lszl pspk felshzi beszde [The speech
of Bishop Dr. Lszl Ravasz in the Upper House], Reformtus let Vol. 5, issue 23, 4 June 1938, pp. 236239; Dr. Ravasz Lszl pspk a zsidtrvnyrl [Bishop Dr. Lszl Ravasz on the anti-Jewish law], Reformtus let Vol. 6, issue 4, 22 January 1939, p. 35; Nagy vita a felshz egyestett bizottsgaiban a zsidjavaslatrl. [Big debate in the Parliaments unified committees about the proposed anti-Jewish law.] ltalnossgban
elfogadtk a javaslatot, de a rszletekre kln szvegez albizottsgot kldttek ki [The MPs accepted the
proposal in general but a wording sub-committee was dominated to work out the details], Nemzeti jsg Vol.
21, issue 75, 1 April 1939, pp. 1-5; A zsidjavaslat a felshz eltt. [The Jewish Bill before the Parliament.]
A hercegprims s a miniszterelnk beszltek a vita els napjn. [The Cardinal and the Prime Minister talked on
the first day of the debate.] A javaslat trtnelmi szksgessg mondotta Teleki Pl [The proposal is a historic
must said Pl Teleki], Nemzeti jsg Vol. 21, issue 86, 16 April 1939, pp. 3-5; A zsidkrds. [The Jewish
issue.] Details from the Parliament speech of Bishop dr. Lszl Ravasz given on 17 April, Reformtus let Vol.
6, issue 17, 23 April 1939, pp. 174-175; The Cardinal Primate explained the Churchs position concerning the
marriage proposal. The Parliament has accepted the proposal in general. Chapter 9 was voted with the modifications of the sub-committee, Nemzeti jsg Vol. 23, issue 163, 19 July 1941, pp. 3-4 and p. 6.
89 See e.g., Lszl Tth, Antiszemitizmus? [Anti-Semitism?], Dunntli Hrlap Vol. 50, issue 13, 28 March
1942, p. 1.
CEC_konyv.indd 35
35
2016.06.10. 8:36:38
Churches Holocaust
If a Jewish company must lay off its agent based on the anti-Jewish law, then
the Jewish HR boss of the agent tells him: Dear Mr. Rzsa, we have to fire you so
you have no other choice but to get to other companies for which you can act as
agent because in this case we can continue employing you. Namely a Jewish agent
who is employed by three companies and not one, has no reporting obligation according to the anti-Jewish law. Therefore, we force the Jew to earn 3,600 or 3,800
peng instead of 1,300 peng per month.90
36
CEC_konyv.indd 36
2016.06.10. 8:36:38
by Attila Jakab
to pay a high price for this in order to protect them from terror and brutality whenever
and wherever the Church can do so within its own, exclusively spiritual possibilities.
And the Hungarian Reformed conscience must protest in the name of Christ against the
perpetration of any injustic and inhuman actions that are unjust (in reality these actions
are against God) if such terrible actions are being committed against the members of
Jewish families who did not convert to Christ but otherwise they decently keep the Ten
Commandments of God and have rendered useful services for the nation and who have
been trying benevolently to assimilate to the Hungarian nation for several generations.94
In the Reformed context, an interesting phenomenon is that in addition to helping
the baptised Jews, the Church looked at the hardship of the Jews as a kind of missionary
opportunity which was in no way in harmony with the main stream of the contemporary
political jurisdiction. The Roman Catholics did not even try this and did not even really
deal with the issue. It is telling that in order to protect Catholics affected by the anti-Jewish laws, it was not the Catholic senior clergy, but the converted Baron Mric Kornfeld
who established the Hungarian Saint Cross Association, first patron of which was the
Achbishop of Kalocsa, Count Gyula Zichy ( May 1942), then the Bishop of Gyr, Vilmos
Apor. However, Zichy had to bitterly experience that his efforts were met with indifference, and resistance from all sides and by the cynical attitude of state power. 95
The issue of providing spiritual care for the converted Jews also came up in the
Reformed circles.96 However, in 1941, the Reformed Church failed to respond and
did not take any steps either.
All in all we can say that the Hungarian early Christians 97 practically expected
the Christian Jews to prove their Hungarianness by silently tolerating their deprivation; and only be baptised if they are willing to take on suffering and even martyrdom for Christ.98 After the first anti-Jewish law, this was clearly formulated in the
Reformed circles:
94 Nhny testvri sz az j esztendre. [A few brotherly words for the new year.] From Bishop Dr. Imre Rvsz,
Egyhzi Hrad (Szeged) Vol. 18, issue 2, 14 January 1939, p. 5.
95 Jen Gergely, The Hungarian Catholic Church and Fascism (with special regard to the period between 1930
until 1944), Szzadok 1987/1, p. 44.
96 A Presbyter: Zsidk kztt egy munksszzadban. Alakuljon egyeslet az ttrt zsidk tovbbi gondozsra
[Among the Jews in one workers camp. An association should be founded for the further care of the converted
Jews.], Reformtus Jv Vol. 2, issue 2, 11 January 1941, pp. 1-2; Sndor Uray: Vlasz a Zsidk kztt egy
munksszzadban. Alakuljon egyeslet az ttrt zsidk tovbbi gondozsra [Response to the article Among
the Jews in one workers camp. An association should be founded for the further care of the converted Jews.],
Reformtus Jv Vol. 2, issue 4, 25 January 1941, p. 1.
97 In todays usage, this were simply means a person whose grandfather or grandmother was never Jewish or at
least noone recalls it - or: it cannot be proved. J. T.: Ki az skeresztny?, Protestns Szemle Vol. 48, issue
3, March 1939, p. 162.
98 See Bla Pap, Levl egy reformtus zsidhoz [Letter to a reformed Jew], Magyar t Vol. 7, issue 17, 28
April 1938, p. 1.
CEC_konyv.indd 37
37
2016.06.10. 8:36:38
Churches Holocaust
The mission cannot be stopped but the Church cannot be a simple shelter
used by those escaping the storm for some time and then leaving it once the
storm has passed. From among those who were converted in 1919, many returned to Judaism in later years. () The Church of Christ cannot play around
with its sacred missionary task. It cannot promise social advantages to anyone.
There is only one possibility for anyone to join the community which is to seek
the living Christ. The Reformed Church of Christ has already had enough bad
reformed and indifferent members, we should not increase their number. ()
The Church must prepare the joining souls with prayers and serious service
that enable them to find the route leading to Golgotha. All the more because the
catechism and the spiritual preparation of todays Jews show the most deplorable picture. From the wonderful treasures of the Old Testament, it gives almost
nothing to its people. The soil of those converted to our religion displays empty
forms and a spiritual draught.99
We can say that for the expressed expectations, Dr. Mikls Halsz gave a response in his writing titled Those who believe and those who are loyal will stop. Letter to the Reformed Jews100 which writing practically calls the people to assume
the expected sufferings.
In the fall of 1943, the Reformed Church issued a circular (5772/1943) on
the topic of providing care for the people converted from Judaism. According to this
circular:
As the organisation of the missionary committee of our universal convent, a
sub-committee titled J Psztor [good pastor] has been operating independently for
over a year now primarily responsible for providing spiritual care for the Jews converted from Judaism to our Reformed Church. To provide information about this blessed
work, we hereby want to emphasise that the work of this committee does not only
involve the spiritual caretaking of the converted but also their social assistance.
The J Psztor sub-committee performs evangelisation work in Budapest to
educate the converted souls in the context of congregations where it holds regular
meetings in the Reformed parish of Szabadsg Place.
In addition to this, its main duty is to take care of the connection with the people serving in labour camps in Hungary and across the border, to care for their fate
99 In the Figyel section: A zsid ttrk krdse, Reformtus let Vol. 5, issue 48, 26 November 1938,
p. 465.
100 Keresztyn csald, 29 January 1939; Magyar t, 28 January 1939; Egyhzi Hrad (Szeged) Vol. 18, issue
5, 4 February 1939, pp. 3-4.
38
CEC_konyv.indd 38
2016.06.10. 8:36:39
by Attila Jakab
and help them in all of their needs. The committee provides advice for their current
issues, proceeds on their behalf to protect their interest and provides financial aid.
The funds for the financial aid are provided by the donations of church members. Donations must be sent to the account of the sub-committee kept at the National Mortgage Institution.101
101 Dunamellki Egyhzkerleti Kzlny Vol. 21, issue 11, 1 November 1943, pp. 83-84.
102 See e.g., the Egyhzi Hrad of Szeged, Reformtus let, which was published in 50 thousand issues, the
Protestns Szemle.
103 j Nemzedk Vol. 26, issue 72, 30 March 1944, p. 1.
104 j Nemzedk Vol. 26, issue 73, 31 March 1944, p. 3.
105 j Nemzedk Vol. 26, issue 78, 6 April 1944, p. 5.
106 j Nemzedk Vol. 26, issue 79, 8 April 1944, p. 4.
CEC_konyv.indd 39
39
2016.06.10. 8:36:39
Churches Holocaust
107
108
109
110
111
112
113
114
115
116
117
118
119
40
CEC_konyv.indd 40
2016.06.10. 8:36:39
by Attila Jakab
120
121
122
123
124
125
126
127
128
129
CEC_konyv.indd 41
41
2016.06.10. 8:36:39
Churches Holocaust
130
131
132
133
134
135
136
137
138
139
140
141
142
42
CEC_konyv.indd 42
Nearly half a million Peng was found in the office of the Jewish synagogue of Kolozsvr;130
What type of official licences will be taken away from the Jews?;131
Deletion of the Jews from the countryside law chambers; Jews cannot
be patent representatives;132
In Ujpest, the relocation of Jews starts as of Monday; He set fire to his
factory then committed suicide (Ede Grnfeld, brick factory owner);133
Jews are not allowed to visit night clubs, and are only allowed to eat in
restaurant in segregated places; The licences issued for photographical
activities, advertising and press publication businesses issued for Jews
are being cancelled; Decree on the obligation to report and place into
custody the assets of Jews who lost their exemption;134
In which industries are the activities of Jews restricted;135
The reassignment of Jewish homes will start in Kolozsvr on Friday;136
6,000 people submitted requests to obtain clothes taken away from
the Jews in Szatmr; The Jews of Sopron surrendered their bicycles;
31 Jewish lawyers and 10 Jewish lawyer trainees were deleted from the
Law Chamber of Komrom; What licences shall be taken away from the
Jews?; Jews expelled from the stock exchanges;137
Decree on the inventory taking, identification and professional caretaking
of the locked up works of art of Jews;138
Until 4 of July, the tobacco production licence granted to Jews must be
withdrawn; 54 Jewish lawyers deleted from the Kaposvr Chamber;139
Decree on the withdrawal of police authority licences from Jews;140
The Minister of Finance ordered the inventory taking of the strongboxes
held by Jews;141
The Eger Law Chamber deleted 52 lawyers, while the Law Chamber of
Szeged deleted 160 Jewish lawyers from their name list;142
2016.06.10. 8:36:39
by Attila Jakab
143
144
145
146
147
148
149
150
151
152
153
154
CEC_konyv.indd 43
43
2016.06.10. 8:36:39
Churches Holocaust
Until 4 July, the official business permits of the Jews will be revoked;
Distribution of the shoe inventories of Jewish shoe tradesmen;155
Jewish doctors must mark their name plate with a yellow star;156
The fur items owned by Christians and stored by Jews must be reported.
Appeal of the leather material management government commissioner;
Today the inventory taking of the movables found in Jewish apartments
must be finished; A library containing several thousand books was found
at the rabbi of Ungvr; The synagogue and the Jewish school must submit
their registers; In Ujpest, the Jews without the yellow star will be listed;157
The second list of Jewish writers has been published;158
Takeover of the goods inventory of Jewish food retailers;159
What will happen to the closed Jewish stores;160
Important decrees and government measures: Jewish army pensioners
will be reviewed. Jews living in mixed marriages must report themselves.
Jews baptised before 1 August 1941 must also report themselves;161
The distribution of Jewish textile stores and inventories is starting;162
In the greater Budapest area, 196,241 Jewish people exchanged their
food vouchers;163
Apartments can be claimed in the following order: between 14 and 20
July: families of frontline soldiers, between 21 and 25 July: army pensioners, between 26 and 28 July: homeless people and between 29 July and
3 August: the sub-tenants of Jews164
Resolve the Jewish issue;165
We have the same problem and the same fate: The Jewish issue;166
Following the deportation of Jews living in the countryside, as from the summer of 1944, the Hungarian newspaper readers could definitely deduct that Hungary is not expecting the deported Jewish citizens to return to Hungary. This became
obvious mainly from those titles that provided information about the liquidation of
155
156
157
158
159
160
161
162
163
164
44
CEC_konyv.indd 44
2016.06.10. 8:36:39
by Attila Jakab
So far the goods inventory of 600 Jewish textile stores has been handed
over into Christian hands;167
The sales of the goods inventory and equipment of Jewish wood, wood
product, furniture and building materials traders;168
The distribution of the locked up Jewish furriers and fur inventories is
starting;169
The sales of the good stock of the locked up Jewish food and mixed
household product stores ;170
The goods stock of the Jewish stores in Gyr are being sold to Christian
tradesman171
Banner headline: The inventory of assets of Jewish stores is taken until
30 September and in the section Report of the Csepeli Tvirati Iroda:
The goods and material stocks of locked Jewish stores are being sold172
Christians can reclaim their belongings stored in the locked up Jewish
leather and shoe stores;173
Decree aimed at facilitating the land registration of Jewish estates used
for estate policy purposes;174
The implementation of the decree issued in connection with the evacuation of the Jews has been suspended; Jews are being used for home
defence works;175
The review and suspension of Jewish exemptions 176
The Arrow Cross Party is in charge of transporting the movable assets
from the Jewish apartments177
At the very beginning of September 1944, Gza Lakatos, Prime Minister practically made it clear that the practical measures aimed at the final resolution of the
Jewish issue are only temporarily suspended but the political leadership did not give
up the intention to implement the final solution.
167
168
169
170
171
172
173
174
175
176
177
CEC_konyv.indd 45
45
2016.06.10. 8:36:40
Churches Holocaust
I know full well - said the Prime Minister that the expulsion from the public
life of Hungarian speaking elements of an alien race, threatening the public and
especially our just fight has not yet been finally settled. Let me reassure the public
that we intend to ensure using any means possible the intellectual and economic
supremacy of the Hungarian race but in line with the gallant Hungarian mentality, we
want to do that in a human way such as required by our higher goal in line with our
agreement concluded in that respect.178
Parallel to the deportations, Christian churches were faced with an increasing
number of Jews who wanted to be baptised. Because this created fears, both the
Roman Catholic and the Reformed churches wanted the conditions of baptism to
be made stricter, although in reality there were no mass applications179:
The Synodic Council already regulated the admission of those converting into
the Reformed Church in May of last year. According to the decree, it is not the
parish priest but the Presbytery which decides whether to approve or decline the
admission request of the converting person. If the Presbytery decides to accept
the candidate, it will then send the person wishing to be converted for a preparatory training. Such training has to be conducted at least for one hour each week
for at least 6 months if the person to be converted comes from another church or
from another Christian denomination. If the convert comes to our church not from
a Christian religion, then this training shall last twelve months. Those converts who
violated the moral norms (e.g., they live in civil partnership) cannot be accepted for
conversion until they discontinue the immoral situation. The converting person shall
receive a conversion certificate only after the baptism, conversion, that is, after his/
her solemn admission to the denomination.
Lately, huge numbers of people not belonging to the Christian denomination
requested their admission to the Reformed Church claiming that at the Evangelical Church their request to be baptised may be accepted already after 20 hours
of preparatory education and they are even baptised and they are asking that the
Reformed Church should also proceed similarly. In respect of the conversions, the
Reformed Church and the local Roman Catholic Church strictly comply with the
178 We must do everything in our power to survive. In his radio speech, Prime Minister Vitz Gza Lakatos used
strong words against defeatism and announced strong measures for the collaboration of the internal forces.
We want to continue ensuring the intellectual and economic supremacy of the Hungarian race by any means
possible, j Nemzedk Vol. 26, issue 199, 2 September 1944, p. 2.
179 See in the section Szerkeszti zenetek [Editors messages]: Zsidinvzi [Jewish invasion], Gyngysi
Katolikus Tudst Vol. 16, issue 4, April 1944, p. 8. According to the report: In 1943, there was 1 baptised Jew, in 1942, there were 2, in 1940, there were 2, in 1939 there were 2 and in 1938 there were 3
baptised Jews in the Szent Bertalan parish. Over the last two decades, the data confirm 125,781 religious
conversions and of these, only 30,774 were Jews who left Judaism In the section Jelek s magyarzatok
[Signs and explanations], Protestns Szemle Vol. 49, issue 1, January 1940, p. 23.
46
CEC_konyv.indd 46
2016.06.10. 8:36:40
by Attila Jakab
legal regulations prescribed by their own clerical authorities and can only consider
accepting the large number of people wishing to change their religion if these people prove to be immaculate in every respect and take part in the required education.
A very interesting phenomenon is that every candidate wishing to be converted to
our religion considered the time required for the preparatory education too long and
left by saying that together with their family they will convert into the church where
they are taken over in a shorter period of time because in their new situation it is very
urgent that they obtain the baptism certificate.
Until today, 8 Reformed brothers who live together with a non-Christian person
in a mixed marriage reported their leaving of the Reformed Church and their intention to convert to the Evangelical religion. They think that they can simply avert the
consequences of the existing government decrees and can gain certain benefits for
their spouses. Because switching religion and denomination without any conviction
may represent the evasion of existing laws, the Hungarian Reformed Church shall
not provide any assistance for this. For this very reason, it is the duty of our Church
to thoroughly examine every conversion case and to verify that this is not only a fictitious conversion and that the applicant to be converted wants to enter the church of
Jesus Christ for a real spiritual need.180
Due to the news spread about the massive conversion intention of Jews during
the last days of July 1944, the Magyar Kurir, a semi-official Catholic paper raised the
question with the Budapest Archiepiscopal Municipality as to what is the situation
in that respect? To this question, the Municipality issued the following statement:
Christianity is a sacrament and it can only be provided for adults after proper
preparation and the recognition of a serious intention expressed by the person to
be baptised. However, fulfilling the two above requirements takes a longer time.
Considering the large number of candidates, those who are waiting to be baptised
will have to wait a lot more than 3 months, after attending proper education and
after having assessed their serious intention. For that very reason, no functionaries or private persons should turn to the Budapest Archiepiscopal Municipality
for receiving authorisation to be baptised urgently because after the relocation
decree (23 June 1944) it cannot issue any such authorisation for those who applied in the parish office, with the exception of some special cases e.g., serious
illness). The request to be baptised of those who did not apply in the parish office
and claim to have received the education by private individuals may not be taken
into account.181
180 Ujpesti Reformtus Egyhzi rtest Vol. 19, issue 5, May 1944, pp. 2-3.
181 A budapesti rseki helytartsg ujabb nyilatkozata a megkeresztelkedsrl [Another declaration of the Budapest Archiepiscopal Municipality about baptism], j Nemzedk Vol. 26, issue 167, 26 July 1944, p. 3.
CEC_konyv.indd 47
47
2016.06.10. 8:36:40
Churches Holocaust
A few days later, the j Nemzedk Catholic daily publishes the following:
Esztergom, 29 July.
The Magyar Kurir reports:
The office of Hungarys Prince Primate mandated the semi-official Catholic
press agency, the Magyar Kurir to publish the following:
The priests and pastors of parishes and ministries are hereby warned by the
competent ecclesiastical authority in connection with the recent and frequent baptism requests that the position of the Church must be strictly complied with in the most
conscious way in that respect. Therefore, those who apply to take on the holiness
of Christianity should be treated with sufficient prudence in terms of keeping the required duration of their education. The required term of the catechism - which is even
more necessary in view of the current number of applicants - must be extended until
the parish priest competent to carry out the baptism or his authorised representative
ascertains that the applicant does not only have the necessary religious knowledge
but also has a serious intention and desire to join the Church of Christ.
Therefore, the Sacrament of Christianity can only be given after the conscious
maintenance of appropriate trial period, for those who are not simply hoping to receive a certificate of baptism, but the mercy of Christ bringing peace to their soul; so
as not to increase the number of the so-called birth certificate Christians and those
who do not want to share community with the Church of Christ. It is also natural that
due to the education of the applicants, neither the holiness of the church nor the
piety of Christian believers can suffer any harm.182
Conclusion
In the light of the Roman Catholic and Reformed press, we can say that the Jewish issue present throughout the Horthy era served in reality a single purpose: it
attempted to create a national cohesion against the Jews playing the role of the
scapegoat and enemy thereby diverting attention from the social problems that the
political elite was unable - and in reality unwilling - to solve (e.g., poverty, scarcity of
land). Not to mention that the national Christian ideology qualified everything as un182 A hercegprimsi iroda kzlemnye a plbnosokhoz s a helyi lelkszsgekhez a megkeresztelkedsekre
vonatkozan [Announcement of the Prince Primates Office to parish priests and pastors regarding baptism],
j Nemzedk Vol. 26, issue 170, 29 July 1944, p. 5.
48
CEC_konyv.indd 48
2016.06.10. 8:36:40
by Attila Jakab
national and un-Christian, everything that had to do with left wing, liberal or democratic ideas this - in the view of the contemporary church - was mainly represented
by the Jews or the atheists of Jewish origin. We want to quote Jen Gergely:
The subjective factors for the Christian national ideology to conquer so many
people include the low level of political education of the people, the lack of democratic traditions and practices and mainly the ideological instability of certain groups
of intellectuals and the fact that they could easily be influenced.183
We can say that the leading strata of Hungarian society in the post-Paris Treaty Hungary, affected by traumas, suffering from existential uncertainty and going
through a national identity crisis found the ideal cause and explanation of all their
problems in the Jewish community; at the same time, the society released itself
from all responsibilities. Christian churches in Hungary did not act against this, on
the contrary: they supported and underpinned this trend in every respect.184
The socially radical and national Christian Hungarian extreme right coming into
being in the social and mental environment successfully linked the hate of capital with
anti-Semitism thanks to the international economic crisis erupting in the 1930s. The
social conquest of this political direction led to the so-called rsgvlts [change of
guard] forced by laws which could only be achieved by the lawful185 exclusion of the
Jews from the economic and cultural life. The positions freed up in this way could
be legitimately occupied by the members of the Christian national middle-class186
with popular roots, exclusively based on their origins. This meant that the true Hungarian could obtain positions he could never hope for before, independently from
his knowledge or performance and later on - in 1944 - they could legitimately (practically without any penalty) dispossess the properties of the (annihilated) Jews.187
And the Christian ecclesiastical leaders were approving all of this and assisted the
events with tacit passivity.
This certainly explains that after the end of World War II, Christian churches
were the first ones who refused to face the past; they rejected all responsibility and
183 Jen Gergely, Katolikus egyhz, magyar trsadalom 18901986 [The Catholic Church and Hungarian society 1890-1986], Tanknyvkiad, Budapest, 1989, p. 100.
184 See e.g., In the rtoronyban section: The jewish issue (Rszlet Rvsz Imre pspk jvi nyilatkozatbl)
[The Jewish issue, excerpt from bishop Imre Rvszs New Year declaration], Lelkszegyeslet Vol. 32, issue 2, 14 January 1939, pp. 10-11; Lszl Ravasz: A zsidtrvny [The anti-Jewish law], Lelkszegyeslet
Vol. 32, issue 5, 4 February 1939, pp. 33-34.
185 This the the key and miracle word of Hungarian legal reasoning!
186 Keresztny magyar kzposztly [Christian Hungarian middle-class], Nemzeti jsg, Vol. 20, issue 85, 15
April 1938, pp. 1-2.
187 See Gbor Kdr - Zoltn Vgi, Hullarabls. A magyar zsidk gazdasgi megsemmistse [The economic
annihilation of Hungarian Jews], Hannah Arendt Egyeslet Jaffa Kiad, Budapest, 2005.
CEC_konyv.indd 49
49
2016.06.10. 8:36:40
Churches Holocaust
instead of reviewing their behaviour displayed during the era of Jewish persecution,
they immediately placed the saving of Jews in the forefront.188 Already at the very
beginning of 1946, Jzsef Mindszenty, Prince Primate clearly separated himself
from everything that happened prior to 1945 (anti-Jewish laws), and especially in
1944 (deportations and massacres).189
According to the statement of George Santayana those nations who do not
learn from the lessons of the past are condemned to repeat every mistake of the
past.190 But to learn this lesson we must first explore our past and we must then
face it. When it comes to the attitude of Hungarian Christian churches towards the
Jewish communities between the two World Wars, this exploration is not even in the
initial stage, it is merely in the preparatory stage.
188 See Dnes Sndor, Az egyhz s az ldzttek [The church and the persecuted], j Ember Vol. 1, issue 4,
2 September 1945. Also see Az egyhz s a zsidldzs [The church and Jewish persecution], j Ember
Vol. 3, issue 17, 27 April 1947, p. 6. We should also mention Albert Bereczky, A magyar protestantizmus a
zsidldzsek ellen [Hungarian Protestantism opposing Jewish persecution], Trakttus Reformtus Kiad
Vllalat, Budapest, 1945.
189 For details please, refer to Katolikus Magyarorszg:. A Bboros-Hercegprms szilveszteri rdibeszde:
The New Years radio speech of Cardinal Prince Primate], j Ember Vol. 2, issue 2, 13 January 1946, p. 2.
190 Quotes Randolph L. Braham: Gondolatok a magyarorszgi holokausztrl hatvan v utn [Ideas abut the
Hungarian Holocaust after 60 years], in Judit Molnr (ed.), A Holokauszt Magyarorszgon eurpai perspektvban [Holocaust in Hungary in the European perspective], Balassi Kiad, Budapest, 2005, p. 32.
50
CEC_konyv.indd 50
2016.06.10. 8:36:40
Overview
According to a Lutheran source1 from the middle of the period analysed, the number of dailies, weeklies, monthly magazines and ad hoc but registered newspapers
published in Hungary in 1936 was 1,897. This is a rather hefty figure, of which the
number of clerical magazines was about 258. Out of these 258, the shares of major
churches were as follows: 126 publications were Roman Catholic, 56 were for the
Reformed Church, 26 were Lutheran, 13 were published by the Reformed and the
Lutheran churches together, and 19 were Jewish.
One of the most important weeklies of the Hungarian Lutheran church was
Evanglikus let (Lutheran Life), a weekly published by Orszgos Luther Szvetsg (National Luther Society) of Budapest since 1933 on clerical social, internal
mission, cultural and political topics.
It is important to mention the religious peoples paper entitled Harangsz (Tolling) founded by Bla Kapi bishop of the Transdanubian Lutheran Diocese in
1 Evanglikus let: 1936/50. dec. 20., pp. 378-80, Dr. H. Gaudi, Lszl: Az egyhzi sajt (The clerical press)
CEC_konyv.indd 51
51
2016.06.10. 8:36:41
Churches Holocaust
2 In the framework of research, the first item to be completed was the list of national and local clerical dailies,
weeklies, magazines and periodicals produced in the Lutheran spirit or by the Lutheran church in Hungary between 1920 and 1945; this was followed by a bibliography of articles dealing with or concerning Jews in some
way. The bibliography data contain the title of the periodical, the year of publication, the year of issue, the date,
the column (if found), the authors name or initials (if found), the title or lead and the page number. This way, some
three hundred and twenty (320) articles were found, on which this paper is based.
52
CEC_konyv.indd 52
2016.06.10. 8:36:41
What is relevant for the topic of this paper, however, is limited to the few magazines available nationwide, referred to above. Actually, the core of the analysis
is based on articles in those magazines. They contain relatively distinct writings of
different genres.
CEC_konyv.indd 53
53
2016.06.10. 8:36:41
Churches Holocaust
54
CEC_konyv.indd 54
2016.06.10. 8:36:41
CEC_konyv.indd 55
55
2016.06.10. 8:36:41
Churches Holocaust
Signs of the churchs internal renewal include the publication of the new Agenda (Raffays handbook for ministers, 1932), and the new service procedure introduced on the Advent of 1936. Over the centuries, the characteristic Lutheran
liturgy of service has lost features and became similar to the puritan procedure of
the Reformed Church. This was particularly true for Hungarian-speaking congregations, because Slovak- and German-speaking congregations conserved traditions
better. The new reform in liturgy aimed to bring back the original Lutheran elements
of service in practice. Initially, the reform encountered resistance in several places,
though the movement was conjoined with the effort to make church service uniform
throughout all of Hungary.
It is important to mention the adult education centres organised on the basis
of mostly Finnish and Danish examples, which set the goal of educating young farmers. The youth mission institute that became known to the public under the name
Tessedik Smuel Npfiskola (Tessedik Smuel Adult Education Centre) as the first
Lutheran institute of this kind, combined with a dormitory, was opened in Nagytarcsa in 1938 under the control of minister Gbor Sztehlo as a youth mission institute.
Afterwards, five-month winter adult education courses were offered to young farmers in Oroshza (1940) and Gyenesdis (1942), while the Phoebe society organised similar courses for girls.
Many of the people who saw working class life from close up or from the inside
turned towards worker groups. Writings on the social contradictions of the age were
published in Lutheran clerical press as well.
On the eve of World War II, the First Vienna Award adopted by an arbitration court
composed of Germany and Italy awarded areas populated by Hungarians in Czechoslovakia to Hungary; two years later, the Second Vienna Award was adopted in a dispute
between Hungary and Romania, which reassigned Northern Transylvania along with
Sekler Land, Oradea and Cluj Napoca, to Hungary. At the same time, Hungary and
Germany concluded a minority agreement under which the German ethnic group was
given special rights, and Volksbund became its only organisation. Hungarys army joined in the attack launched by the German army when it invaded Yugoslavia in 1941. The
Hungarian army occupied Backa, the Baranya triangle and Prekmurje. The Southern
Territory was again under Hungarian administration. The Lutheran church encountered
the ethnicity issue once again. In the Volksbund spirit, the German congregations of
the Backa wanted a separate organisation and intended to have a self-government,
with the help of the Hungarian ministry of culture. They addressed a memorandum to
the church leadership in which they distanced themselves from Germanys Confessor
of the Faith Church, although they addressed some criticism to German Christians (Deutsche Christen) as well. The German minority in the Backa region consisted of nearly
56
CEC_konyv.indd 56
2016.06.10. 8:36:42
half a million people, a goodly portion of whom were Lutherans. The church leadership
and bishops went about addressing the problem very prudently. Having experienced
this, minister of Kelenfld Lajos Wolf (or, by his Hungarianised name, Lajos Ordass)
published a contrary opinion under the title Vlasz (Answer), but the matter kept getting
postponed, and became obsolete after the war.
As anti-Semitism grew increasingly fierce, thousands of Jews converted to various Christian churches, and the Lutheran church also had to take steps to prepare people for conversion. Many called for theoretical theological clarifications,
and practical steps were also taken. Gisle Johnson, the missionary of the Jewish
mission of Norwegian Lutherans delegated to Budapest, worked particularly hard
in this field. Hungarys Lutheran church has a lot to thank him for. His outstanding
achievement is the holding of the International Hebrew-Christian Alliance assembly
in Budapest in 1937; the Association of Jews Who Believe in Christ of Hungary was
a member of the Alliance at that time.
One year later, in 1938, the Upper House of Hungarian Parliament adopted the
first, and then, the second act on Jews to prevent the dissemination of Jews in
public life and the economy. Bishops Bla Kapi and Sndor Raffay first protested,
but later accepted the act. Different statements were published in the press, but
both ministers and secular authors distanced themselves from extremities. Many tried to find ways to help the people threatened. They agreed to hide those who were
persecuted, sometimes even the church buildings were used as hiding places.
When news on deportations spread, Bishop Raffay raised his voice in the interest of the persecuted, but this protest failed to become louder and more universal.
Minister of Kelenfld Lajos Wolf had very good personal relations with the Swedish
embassy and its officer for the Red Cross, Valdemar Langlet. They provided the
minister with safe conducts for the persecuted, which he used to save a lot of
lives. On assignment from the Protestant bishops, Lajos Wolf intended to persuade
Prince Primate Jusztinin Serdi to issue a common pastoral letter, but his visit to
Esztergom bore no fruit in this respect. Eventually, universal supervisor Baron Albert Radvnszky and Bishop Bla Kapi submitted a memorandum drafted together
with representatives of the Reformed Church to Prime Minister Dme Sztjay. On
25 June 1944, a common Protestant pastoral letter was compiled and signed,
but the government prohibited it from being read out loud from lecterns. In the
letter, the signatories explained that the inhumane deportations, the innocent
blood shed will bring a horrible judgement on our peoples head () We call upon
the congregations to exercise penitence, and all Hungarian people to be meek under Gods mighty hand and to pray to Him, and ask God to show his merciful and
heartening grace to the Hungarian nation.
CEC_konyv.indd 57
57
2016.06.10. 8:36:42
Churches Holocaust
58
CEC_konyv.indd 58
2016.06.10. 8:36:42
tion that set out to Moscow to sign a treaty on truce on 28 December was headed
by Minister of Foreign Affairs Jnos Gyngysi, also a Lutheran.
Writings on Jewry
News on Jews
Jewish-Christian topics
Positions
Clerical and political events related to Germany
Short writings to create an ambience
Book reviews
While it is possible to distinguish several sub-genres within each of the categories, a decision was made to keep their number manageable to facilitate an
overview. Naturally, many articles, writings, reportages or studies fit more than one
category. In case of the examples cited, focus was on the main message, which
helped to classify publications.
1. Writing on Jewry
This, rather broad, category can be broken down into sub-classes. They include:
1.1.
1.2.
1.3.
1.4.
CEC_konyv.indd 59
59
2016.06.10. 8:36:42
Churches Holocaust
60
CEC_konyv.indd 60
2016.06.10. 8:36:42
judgement on their own heads only by Christians who actually believe. There is no
innate force that could secure us against the growing of evil in Christians with no
faith. The presumed good characteristics of the Nordic race or the mystical power
of inherited blood that is supposed to determine character help the German new
heathens just as little as we are helped by the version of these concepts wrapped in
Hungarian national colours. In other words, Karner believes this religious problem
will not be resolved either by anti-Semitism or by Zionism. Christians should start
working on their own, by becoming increasingly Christian.
In a later article8Karner underlines that the sources of crisis in Hungarys life:
the land issue, banking capitalism and the issue of ethnic minorities cannot be regarded as being subject to the Jewish issue. He elaborates on the roots of anti-Semitism, and states that one of its reasons is that Jewish refugees amassed in the
north-western counties of Hungary as a consequence of the persecution of Jews in
Russia in the 1880s, which also contributed to the Tiszaeszlr case9. Afterwards,
the experience of World War I and the proletariats dictatorship and the anti-Semitic
ideology of the Third Reich greatly encouraged its dissemination. As regards the
religious approach to the Jewish issue, Karner emphasises that the Hungarian or
Russian soul and people are no exceptions to this when they lose their religion. Rejection of Christ brings about the same social problems everywhere, and the purity
or strength of blood or race offers no protection against the deterioration of social
conditions. He declares that the fatal mistake in National Socialisms anti-Semitic
thinking lies in the myth of blood, the statement that the supremacy of a race is
sufficient protection against straying. On the other hand, this is where Christianitys
responsibility comes to light. If National Socialism opts to solve the Jewish issue
this way, it is also an anti-Christian solution, e.g. by virtue of the attack on the Old
Testament. However, this will turn it into what it wants to avoid. Ultimately, he draws
the conclusion that rather than liberal humanism, philo-Semitism, hatred of racial
ideology or street anti-Semitism, the church should voice the word of the Gospels.
In contrast, it should demand the healthy solution: suppressing the Jewish lifestyle
in public life, elimination of irresponsible mixing with Jews (because mixing is an
ever-present opportunity for the infiltration of Jewish lifestyle), cleaning the business
and intellectual career paths and, the absence of which makes all efforts worthless:
the enforcement of a Christian lifestyle rooted in faith in all domains.
8 Karner, Kroly: A zsidkrds veszedelmei (Threats of the Jewish issue), Keresztny igazsg, 1938/6. June,
pp. 163-168
9 The Tiszaeszlr case was a criminal law case that took place in Tiszaeszlr and later in Nyiregyhaza in 1882
1883, in which the Jews of Tiszaeszlr were accused of having ritually murdered a Christian girl. The case soon
became a battleground for Hungarian political forces, attracted great attention throughout Europe, and had a
great impact on the future of anti-Semitism in Hungary.
CEC_konyv.indd 61
61
2016.06.10. 8:36:42
Churches Holocaust
10 Hamvas, Jzsef: A zsidsg vlsga (The crisis of the Jewry), Evanglikus let, 1938/8. 19 February, pp.
8-9
11 Dezsry, Lszl: A mi szocializmusunk (Our Socialism), Evanglikus let, 1944/25. 17 June, pp. 5-7
12 Harangsz: 1924/20. 11 May., A cionizmus (Zionism), p. 157
13 Harangsz: 1935/52. 22 December, Hatrokon tl: Palesztina (Beyond borders: Palestine),p. 433
14 Harangsz: 1925/51. 20 December., Klfldi hrek. Palesztina(Foreign news. Palestine),p. 407
62
CEC_konyv.indd 62
2016.06.10. 8:36:42
2. News on Jews
This is a rather broad category, mostly with brief news and reports. They are often
a couple of sentences long in the foreign news column of the papers. They can be
classified into two important groups:
2.1. News on Jews
This group contains shorter or longer writings taken over from the Jewish magazine Egyenlsg (Equality). An example for this is the article in Harangsz on
Jewish esprit de corps, by presenting the amounts collected to support college students in the Israelite community of Bksgyula.19 They also include short news on
Jewish criminals.20 Reports on conferences also fall in this category.21Publication
of figures on the number of Jews, or of an item according to which in Germany, 29
of the 18,000 Lutheran ministers are of Jewish extraction, may also be classified
here.22
2.2. News on the persecution of Jews
The papers analysed contain many news articles on the persecution of Jews
abroad. These are brief items of one or two lines, from highly diverse locations such
15 Harangsz: 1923/31. 29 July, Korkpek: A miskolci zsid trsadalom (Images of the age: The society of
Jews in Miskolc) p. 245
16 Harangsz: 1927/19. 8 May, Ujdonsgok: Knyrg ima (New: Prayer), p. 162
17 Rcz, Sndor: A zsidk mhszete (Beekeeping by the Jews), Harangsz, 1932/32. 7 August, pp. 259-260
18 Sz. J.: A bolyg zsid (The wandering Jew), Harangsz, 1935/2. 6 January, pp. 9-10
19 Harangsz: 1924/25. 15 June, Krkpek: Kicsiny, alig 200(Diagnoses: Small, barely 200), p. 197
20 Harangsz: 1925/8. 22 February, Ujdonsgok: Mg a hitkzsgi adt is elsikkasztjk(New: Even parish
tax is embezzled), p. 63
21 Harangsz: 1929/30-31. 28 July, Ujdonsgok: A nemzetkzi orthodox zsidkonferencit(New: The international orthodox Jewish conference), p. 239
22 Harangsz: 1933/48. 26 November, Hatrokon tl: Zsid szrmazs lelkszek(Beyond the borders:
Ministers of Jewish extraction), p. 393
CEC_konyv.indd 63
63
2016.06.10. 8:36:43
Churches Holocaust
as Romania, Transylvania, the Middle East, the Soviet Union, etc. For instance, the
teaching supervisor of Szatmr had the earlocks of Jewish children chopped off.23
Or, a report that Jewish medical students in Cluj Napoca may only perform autopsies on Jewish bodies.24In Saxon Lutheran churches, the use of the Jewish words
amen and hallelujah is forbidden, and must be replaced by Das walte Gott, Gelobt
sei der Herr.25
Evanglikus let publishes more news of this sort, but supplemented by opinions and brief commentaries as opposed to Harangsz, as can be seen in a report
on an assault: Beating the defenceless, the white, the coloured, the Jews is not this
kind or that kind of crime, it is simply and deeply a crime. The fact that no state and
Parliament solution has been found to the Jewish issue for over a year is a criticism
to the world. It could have been resolved within a couple of months. This is a horrible crime by and liability of the administration. We have many more important issues
to take care of.26
News from Romania include an item stating that the Jewish church is barely
tolerated in Romania, and may perform services only in cities where the number of
followers reaches four hundred, or in villages where this number is two hundred.27
A Western European item from Switzerland: Swiss clerical papers publish several complaints that ministers dare not hold lectures in support of the Jewish issue.
The papers propose that the Jewish issue should be discussed in the light of the
Bible.28
A 1933 article reports on persecution of Jews in Germany as well, protested by
the German government and German Jewish groups. The writer adds, If what they
report is true, one should indeed protest in the name of human culture, because
persecution organised on a religious or racial basis is barbaric in any case. On the
other hand, he adds, It is, however, wonderful to experience the great Jewish solidarity concerning this affaire 29
23 Harangsz: 1924/13. 23 March, Klfldi hrek: A szatmri tanfelgyel levgatta(Foreign news: Teaching
supervisor of Szatmr), p. 104
24 Harangsz: 1923/43. 21 October, Ujdonsgok: Csak zsid hullkat boncolhatnak(New: Only Jewish
corpses may be autopsied), p. 319
25 Harangsz: 1933/44. 29 October, Hatrokon tl: Nmetorszg(Beyond the borders: Germany), p. 357
26 Evanglikus let: 1939/6. 11 February, M.: Bomba robbant (Bomb explodes), p. 4-5
27 Evanglikus let: 1940/45. 9 November, Klfldi hrek: A romn kultuszminiszter(Foreign news: Romanias minister of culture), p. 5
28 Evanglikus let: 1942/2. 10 January, Hrek: A svjci egyhzi lapok(News: Swiss clerical papers), p. 6
29 Evanglikus let: 1933/10. 2 April, Figyel: Azt rjk a klfldi lapok(Observer:Foreign papers report), p. 6
64
CEC_konyv.indd 64
2016.06.10. 8:36:43
3. Jewish-Christian Topics
Once again, this is a rather broad category containing several articles and studies,
of which four will be highlighted, as they point in the same direction.
The first is a report on a conference30 to be held by the alliance of Jews who
believe in Christ, in Budapest. The conference is held every three years, and the
venue was Budapest after London, between 5 and 10 July 1937. The author believes this occasion offers a Christian solution inspired by Christ to the Jewish issue.
It started with the foundation of the Krisztushv Zsidk Szvetsge (Association of
Jews who Believe in Christ) in Hungary, and of the International Hebrew Christian
Alliance in the UK. As the Bible is the basis shared by Jews and Christians, the only
common denominator may be found by accepting Christs message of grace. The
conference discussed the issues of Jewish-Christian colonisation in Palestine and
Poland, of establishing a Jewish church that believes in Christ, and the general
situation of Jewry in the world. Improvement should be sought by spiritual elevation
and rebirth in Christ according to the conference.
An article on the Jewish issue from a Christian perspective expresses criticism
of those having converted from Jewish faith. The author states converts are unrooted because they do not have a clear idea on and are not familiar with the world of
the Old Testament. Therefore, one objective of a responsible Christian mission may
be to convert the Jewry. Church jealousy also comes up, because he criticises
those who find conversion to the Lutheran faith is rather lengthy and decide to go to
another Christian church where they are accepted more easily. Finally, he devotes
a few lines to an experience that points out the sensitive contradictions of the issue:
I recently sat by the bedside of a patient. A young woman. She has been Lutheran
for a few years only, she was a Jewish girl. We take time to discuss serious matters.
She prays, in her own fashion, she says. She confesses she does not go to our
church. She has never taken the Lords Supper. After a brief pause that followed my
question on why this was so, she lifted her weary eyes on me and said, You know
one is born Jew then converts then is despised by the Jew and is not accepted
by the Christian! 31
In another piece taken over from Misszi (Mission) papers by Evanglikus let,
a statement by a missionary minister says, I see conversions less as a movement
motivated by interest, their underlying reason is the total and final failure of Jewish
CEC_konyv.indd 65
65
2016.06.10. 8:36:43
Churches Holocaust
religious life and the collapse of religious Jewry. He thinks the trial period that takes
months is hypocritical, and suggests it should be the initial stage of a new life instead. This requires an internal awakening, but acceptance to Christianity should be
hindered by racial concerns according to the anonymous interviewee.32
Finally, let us cite Tibor Schuleks piece A hazai zsidkeresztnyekrl (On Hungarian Jewish Christians)33 from Keresztny igazsg, which explains that the Lutheran church accepted about twice as many Jews as the Roman Catholic church by
baptism as regards the proportion of the two churches. He specifies guidelines for
behaviour with Jewish Christians for the church. They include better management of
the sacrament of baptism, a long trial period, praying for these people with love. And,
albeit the state may set categories such as Roman Catholic Jew, Calvinist Jew, Jew
of other churches, designating them as Christians of the Jewish race complete with
church, Christianity may not resign from sharing the Gospels with Jews as well. Finalyly, he explains that the few who are Jews in their faith are the ones who really suffer.
4. Position
The fourth category consists of positions of bishops and the official views of the
church. But even within this group, it is possible to separate two subgroups, the
personal or official opinions of country and church leaders, and those that stress
the official positions of the church.
4.1. Statements by country and church leaders
A report from 1921 in which Prime Minister Istvn Bethlen discusses anti-Semitism in a speech: () a certain part of Jewry had strived to dismantle Christian faith
and historical traditions for financial reasons, by which it occupied an exceptional
position in economic and social life. () We cannot give an exceptional position
to the Jewry in the economy, but we need to ensure a livelihood, the freedom of
development, equal treatment and complete safety to persons and property to all in
Hungary. The vast majority of the Jewry is far from the destruction referred to earlier,
but made the mistake of failing to combat this smaller part of Jewry.34
32 Evanglikus let: 1939/10. 11 March, Lapszemle: A Misszii lapok mrciusi szma (Press digest: the
March issue of Mission papers), pp. 10-11
33 Schulek, Tibor: A hazai zsidkeresztnyekrl (On Hungarian Jewish Christians), Keresztny igazsg,
1938/5. May, pp. 139-144
34 Harangsz: 1921/51. 18 December, Bethlen a felekezeti bkrl s az antiszemitizmusrl (Bethlen on peace
between churches and anti-Semitism), p. 411
66
CEC_konyv.indd 66
2016.06.10. 8:36:43
A report from the Hungarian National Assembly of 1925, which contains a noteworthy sentence by Istvn Bethlen on our topic: If crimes are committed by Jews,
they must be disciplined, however, not because they are Jews but because they
committed a crime.35
Statement by Bishop Bla Kapi: However, we cannot close our eyes to the
fact that, in addition to several useful measures, the so-called Jew bill contains provisions that lack the true spirit of Christianity. () The truth is that the bill makes a
deep cut in the body of the Christian church, and disturbs its legal certainty.36
The following report relates the positions of high powers.37 High church representatives including the Prince Primate, Lszl Ravasz and Bla Kapi, all spoke
out against the act on Jews. According to the latter, the opinions of high church
representatives should have been heard on a bill that concerned churches, before
the House of Representatives where churches had no representation decided on
the issue. The state should be intent on filling its basic institutions with a Christian
spirit. It is the spirit not the race that dominates, it is the spirit that should permeate the nation. Hungarians may not push tens of thousands half of whose blood is
Hungarian into ghettos. A strict law on marriages was necessary, but the matter of
half-bloods should be settled wisely.
Another issue38 cites Bishop Dezs Kthys report to the assembly of the Cisdanubian Diocese: Our church () raised its voice in the interest of Jews in general
and of Jewish Christians in particular against all procedures it felt compelled to
protest as the nations living conscience and the guardian of Gods eternal laws.
() Though the churchs heart aches for not having reached all the goals it set out
to achieve, it has made all efforts it was capable of, and its conscience is clear,
having done everything possible in the current situation. As regards the Jewish
issue, the church stands in the battlefield between two opposing forces, between
the mandatory power of its Godly mission, and the unfavourable opinion of a part
of the public. It took into account only the former in its actions. It may not open the
gates to a conversion movement, but then it may not close the gates to a normal
rate of conversions.
35 Harangsz: 1925/11. 15 March, Heti krnika: A magyar nemzetgyls (Weekly chronicle: The Hungarian
National Assembly), p. 86
36 Evanglikus let: 1939/4. 28 January, Az gi csillag nyomn, D. Kapi Bla pspk krlevele a nemzeti
egysg vdelmrl, hinyairl s a zsidtrvnyjavaslatrl (On the path of the celestial star, newsletter by
Bishop Bla D. Kapi on the protection and shortfalls of national unity and the Jew bill), pp. 4-5
37 Dyl: A felshz (The Upper House) ,Evanglikus let, 1941/30. 26 July, p .1
38 Evanglikus let: 1944/38. 16 September, pp. 2-3, Kthy Dezs pspknek a dunninneni egyhzkerlet
kzgylse el terjesztett jelentsbl: Az egyhz a hborban (from the report submitted by Bishop Dezs
Kthy to the assembly of the Cisdanubian Diocese: The church in war)
CEC_konyv.indd 67
67
2016.06.10. 8:36:43
Churches Holocaust
Finally, a citation from Bishop Bla Kapis report made to the assembly of the
Transdanubian Diocese from the same year of 1944:39We are convinced that solving the Jewish issue is a political task and its execution is an administrative duty,
that is, it is the duty of politicians and government factors. () In written and verbal
discussions with the government, we made a request that Jews who have converted to Lutheranism should be released from the obligation to wear the yellow star,
should be able to employ Christian household staff, should have a separate council
organised for them, and the measures should be executed in a Christian spirit. The
government made a promise that these Jews would be permitted to wear a cross in
addition to the yellow star. The summary of Kapis position for ministers is that they
should strive to protect the spiritual life of church members of Jewish extraction.
New converts may be accepted only after serious preparation this is a reference
to his 1938 paper and only those whose past, personality, spirituality and firm
knowledge of the churchs teaching guaranteed that they would really be followers
of our churchs faith should be accepted. Convert candidates should receive six
months of education using a presbytery, which should consist of at least 60 lessons. This was to be free of charge, and if there was a member of the candidates
family who was already Christian, the candidate should be referred to that church.
Our church does not reject its missionary task in respect of Jews but will not lend
itself to serving selfish, individual needs. Our church is to defend the true value of
the sacrament of baptism entrusted to it by God.
4.2. Articles reflecting the churchs official positions
The next piece presenting the churchs manifold responsibilities to speak
emphasises the responsibility for the words of the church40. The church has to
speak to the state, to Hungarians, to followers, to its converts, to church members,
to Jews, to those about to convert, and to God. The author says they have warned
the government not to turn racial issues into a religious act. And, as it turned out, it
was impossible to define who was Jewish in religious terms. Is it not ridiculous that
Jew converts are Christian on 31 December 1938 but already Jews on New Years
Day, regardless of the holy water? Hungarians wanted to have no Jews accepted to
the church, but ministers offices are filled with a serious quest for God and spiritual
battles. Hungarians may not repeal the missionary command of Christ. The Jews
asked the church to put pressure on the government to ease the law. However, the
church is responsible for spreading the word and serving God, it may not interfere
with state matters. When converted Jews asked for protection, the church did what
39 Evanglikus let: 1944/40. 7 October, pp. 2-3.o., Kapi Bla pspknek a dunntli kerlet kzgylse el
terjesztett jelentsbl: Az egyhz nemzeti szolglata (From Bishop Bla Kapis report submitted to the
assembly of the Transdanubian Diocese: National service by the church)
40 Dyl: Zsidkrds ellrl (Jewish issue from the front), Evanglikus let, 1941/24. 14 June, pp. 2-3
68
CEC_konyv.indd 68
2016.06.10. 8:36:44
it could, saying their fate was no better than that of the first Christians. The act on
Jews has not been prepared in either intellectual, spiritual or theoretical respects.
This article is likely to have been authored by Lszl Dezsry, who writes the
following in another piece41: Our solution for the Jewish issue lies where it, in our
understanding, lies concerning all issues: with Jesus Christ. He can give consolence, leadership and grace, but cannot become a legislator, an employment centre
or a racial biologist. It is the secularisation of our world that twists the instruments of
administering secular matters from the churchs hands. The difference in the value
of races is doubtful, and is against the Bible. The Old Testament may confess to
the protection of the Jewish race based on a divine plan, which is why it is a sin for
Jews to fight today. Mixed marriages may be prohibited only if we know who a Jew
is. If our Christianity holds that even a robber and murderer may be converted, why
cannot we assume that the Hungarian half will prevail in half-bloods?
The report by Evanglikus let on the Unitarian churchs decision is interesting. According to this news item, the Unitarian church accepted no Jewish converts and protested that other Christian churches were lawfully accepting Jewish
converts after careful preparation. The author of the item believes this to be an
internal matter for Christian churches that accepts converts to the community of
those who believe in Christ, and it was just exactly the Unitarian church that had no
competence to protest or consent to this.
42
CEC_konyv.indd 69
69
2016.06.10. 8:36:44
Churches Holocaust
The next article reports on the congregations and events of the Confessing
Church.44 It describes the leadership of the Confessing Church45 and analyses its
relationship with the church committee. It also writes about the background to the
situation, the starting question of the analysis is whether a church connected to the
state can be a Christian church at all. The majority of German Christians (80 per
cent) voted in favour of the Aryan Paragraph of 1933, and the issue of confession
of faith arose when the minority withdrew, this was when resistance began to spread. The author asks whether this resistance would last only until order is restored,
although the church should be a church confessing its faith to Christ and preaching
the Gospels, without organisation.
The third study outlines the history of establishing the German Christians
(Deutsche Christen), and as it is closely related to the topic the Confessing
Church was formulated in opposition to it -, here is a brief outline of its essence.46 The paper analyses the stages of creating German Christians. The first stage
commences in 1933, after Hitler comes to power, under the slogan Gleichschaltung (unity) in the Reich. The 28 partial churches are organised under a single
Reichsbischof, and German Christians want total influence, the response to which
is the Barmen Declaration in 1934. The new Reichsbischof inserts Lutheran youth
into Hitlerjugend, but no new Constitution is drafted. The second stage is the age
of confessing synods, of which the Barmen synod is the most important, where
teachings of the German Christians are declared to be wrong. The third stage is
the Reichs Ecclesiastical Committees (Reichskirchenausschuss) age, when the
intention was to find a central solution to the matter. The committee was composed
of clergymen from different groups, so that the Confessing Church now found itself
opposite the state and the governing party. This caused a rift in the Confessing
Church, some members of which encouraged negotiations while some rejected it.
However, the committee resigned, rolling the story to its fourth stage when government power intervened even more. The final conclusion of the article is that this
was only possible because the state power found a church that was fundamentally
dissolute. On a positive note, however, it remarks that the Gospels might become
the focus of attention in the church after all this commotion.
44 A nmet hitvall egyhz valsgos arca (Berlini munkatrsunktl) (The true face of the German Confessing Church /From our Berlin correspondent/), Evanglikus let, 1936/6. 9 February, pp. 42-44
45 The Confessing Church was the organisation of German Protestant churches that took an organised stand
against the German Evangelic Church set up by the German Christians in 1933. The six key points of the
church were formulated in Barmen in 1934, under the spiritual guidance of K. Barth.
46 Scholz, Lszl: Az evang. Egyhz helyzete Nmetorszgban I-II. (The situation of the Lutheran Church in
Germany, I-II) 1937/24. 13 June, pp. 189-191, and 1937/25. 20 June, pp. 195-96
70
CEC_konyv.indd 70
2016.06.10. 8:36:44
An article from 193448 discusses the conflict between the Roman church and
the German government based on the front-page article of London paper The Evening Standard. The Pope49 openly rejects the theory of racial discrimination by saying, Jesus, son of David, is a pure descendant of the Jewish race himself. In reaction, German newspaper Vlkische Beobachter states that the Popes grandmother
was a Dutch Jew named Lippmann. The London paper adds that according to the
German theory, the Pope is not part of the Aryan race.
It might be worthwhile to mention a reportage of the age, written in the form of
a dialogue, as it may offer lessons.50 The people interviewed are a converted Jewish
mechanic and his family, and the report shows the economic difficulties of the age
coincide with the little mans situation in a way that affects his existence.
Then, there is a reflection from 193851 on Samu Sterns pamphlet entitled Zsidkrds Magyarorszgon (The Jewish issue in Hungary) published by Fiatalok Orszgtjn (Road of the Young). It is Christian Hungarians who stand face to face
with the Jewry who rejected Christ and, along with Christ, the Christian lifestyle,
social morals and human approach with a universal decision of the people.
CEC_konyv.indd 71
71
2016.06.10. 8:36:44
Churches Holocaust
7. Book reviews
Finally, there was a need to create a category for reviews of works relevant
to the topic in some way, whether by presenting the German situation, discussing
Jewry or the relationship of Christianity to Jewry. A few short examples:
The first is a review of a paper by Professor Kittel, professor for the Old Testament at the University of Tbingen entitled: A zsidkrdsrl (On the Jewish
issue).54 He thinks the Jewish issue to be the most urgent and topical at the time
of writing his paper, in 1934. He warns about anti-Semitism as something that is
contrary to the Gospels of Christ in all respects, and yet is unable to deny the harmful influence of modern Jewry on the German peoples soul. He demands that the
Jewish issue be resolved on a Christian religious basis, relying on positive facts,
i.e. the termination of the Israelite-Jewish state in 70 A.D., and most recently, the
emancipation of the Jews. He also discusses failed attempts at solutions such as
pogroms, Zionism and assimilation, but guest rights might resolve the issue. Jews
52 Evanglikus let: 1942/13. 28 March, pp. 3-4, B. G.: Ne folytassuk ugyanott(Let us not continue
where we left off)
53 Evanglikus let: 1944/19. 7 May, p. 5, vkm: Szvtesszk (Raise the issue)
54 Dr. Szlvik, Mtys: Kittel: A zsid krdsrl (Kittel: On the Jewish issue), Evanglikus let, 1933/39. 22
October, p. 6
72
CEC_konyv.indd 72
2016.06.10. 8:36:44
should be granted the same rights in the German Reich as the Poles, the Danes
or the French. He emphasises his ambivalence: salvation comes from the Jews,
but the Jewish sin of Christs death made the Jewish people stateless, blinding it
to Gods purpose and religious mission, which is the tragedy and shame of this
people.
Another book published in 1934 was Miksa Fenys study on Hitler. The article
offers a brief review of the book.55 The book itself is a fierce polemics against Hitlerism. Its ecclesiastical aspects are important because it addresses Catholicism and
Protestantism separately. It describes the fights entered by the Third Reich from an
Evangelic perspective. Fights are fought against three opponents: the Germans,
the Jews and Catholicism. It is set in political prophesy according to the review, but
this carries the threat that if the prophets vision was not good, it would have been
better not to write the book.
Another important review was published in Keresztny Igazsg.56 According to
the review, Herrmann Steinhausens Die Judenfrage eine Christenfrage expresses
the opinion of the other side in a world of anti-Semitism. It offers an ambivalent evaluation, saying hatred of Jews undermines the Christian position. Acting against
the truth is a sin, and this should be heeded by all who have an active influence on
how the Jewish issue turns out. () With regard to the Jewish threat to the public,
we are often willing to accept behaviour that commits unfair acts and denies Christian spirits to be verified by this threat. This is not amenable and even threatens the
urgent solution to the Jewish issue.
Finally, let us have a review the brief summary of which might serve as the motto of our topic and analysis. This is the review of Walter Grundmanns Christentum
und Judentum57. A book made up of a series of studies, which are the output of a
German research exercise looking at the influence of Jews on clerical life. The Lutheran reviewer declares the following: () it is dangerous for theological research
to serve topical matters even if the results it brings to light after serious research
work are edifying.
55 Evanglikus let: 1934/6. 11 February, j knyvek, recenzi: G.L.: Feny Miksa: Hitler, Tanulmny, A Nyugat
kiadsa (New books, review: G.L.: Feny, Miksa: Hitler, a study published by Nyugat), p. 4
56 Keresztny Igazsg: 1940/12. p. 22 Knyvszemle: r: Steinhausen Herrmann: Die Judenfrage eine Christenfrage (Book review)
57 Keresztny Igazsg: 1941/12. December, pp. 339-340., Knyvszemle: Grundmann Walter: Christentum
und Judentum (Book review)
CEC_konyv.indd 73
73
2016.06.10. 8:36:44
Churches Holocaust
Conclusion
The volume58 in which Sndor Raffay who later became a Lutheran bishop writes
the following was published in 1917, i.e. before the period analysed: The essence
[of the Jewish issue][] lies in the conflict that actually exists between Jewry and
the traditional national life, culture, language, objectives, direction and customs.
All in all, it may be said that the articles scrutinised reflect this conflict. The
contradiction appears in the national and local clerical dailies, weeklies, magazines
and periodicals of the Lutheran church/spirit published between 1920 and 1945 in
articles, studies and papers of diverse genres.
It is important to emphasise that the majority of the articles approach the issue
from the essence of the Christian faith, and see the possibility of addressing or
resolving the situation in a dimension of religion, of spirituality, of morality that
cannot form the subject of objective scientific investigation or can do so only at
great difficulty. Nevertheless, it may be stated that the articles reviewed are mostly
moderate and opinion-leading articles from the perspective of Christianity.
In this sense, the issue was not overexposed. The impression is that the topic
appears moderately among all the other social and cultural topics discussed. This
is interesting because and, perhaps, may be explained by the fact that out of
Christian churches, the highest number of church members with one Israelite grandparent or parent were found in the Lutheran church. According to issue no. 4-5 of
the 22nd year of Magyar Statisztikai Szemle (Hungarian Statistical Digest), [] based on the 1941 census: there were 725,007 Israelites in Hungary, and 61,548
Christians one grandparent of whom was Jewish, and of them, 22,962 had one
Israelite parent. This makes up 0.44 per cent of Christians. The ratio for Unitarians:
1.23 per cent, for Lutherans: 0.92 per cent (6,704 out of 729,288 Lutherans). The
rate is 0.49 per cent for Roman Catholics, and 0.45 per cent for Calvinists.59 The
factors underlying this nearly one per cent ratio might warrant further investigation,
but possibly, the relatively moderate tone is a consequence of this as well.
This paper concludes with a citation from Sndor Raffays brief piece mentioned above, which we believe to be a true reflection of the Lutheran press attitude
concerning the topic in the age investigated: The Jewish issue cannot be resolved
by social or legislative reform. Just as it was generated by the Jewry, the path to the
58 A zsidkrds Magyarorszgon, a huszadik szzad krkrdse, (The Jewish issue in Hungary, the poll of
the 20th century), A huszadik szzad knyvtra (Library of the 20th century), A trsadalomtudomnyi trsasg
kiadsa (published by the society of social sciences), Bp. 1917, p. 125
59 Reference to this is made in the 1944/35. 26 August issue of Evanglikus let, in: Dr. I.: A zsidszrmazs
keresztnyekrl, (On Christians of Jewish extraction), p. 5
74
CEC_konyv.indd 74
2016.06.10. 8:36:44
solution can only be found by the Jews themselves. Hungarian society has never
hated Jews, and lifted individual excellent Jews of merit next to and even higher than
itself with particular attention and love. Jews have an obligation to themselves and to
Hungarian society, and even to the Hungarian nation, to merge with Hungarians in
serving the national interests and working towards the material and intellectual progress of Hungarians evolving on a national basis; to quit preferring cosmopolitism and
capricious imitation of the West; and to become an understanding, truly patriotic
and unselfish brother: and the Jewish issue will resolve itself.
CEC_konyv.indd 75
75
2016.06.10. 8:36:45
CEC_konyv.indd 76
2016.06.10. 8:36:45
gnes Szllssy
CEC_konyv.indd 77
77
2016.06.10. 8:36:45
Churches Holocaust
1 I have used the following works to study the antecedents of the issue: Assmann, Jan: [Herrschaft und Heil:
Politische Theologie in Altegypten, Israel und Europa], translated by Zoltn Hidas, Atlantisz, Budapest, 2008.;
Bultmann. Rudolf: [History and Eschatology] transl: Dezs Bnki. Atlantisz, Budapest, 1994; Gyrgy Gerby:
Isten s birodalom. [God and Empire.] Politikai teolgia. [Political theology.] Akadmiai Kiad, Budapest, 2009;
Kertzer, David I.: [The Popes against the Jews. The Vaticans Role in the Rise of Modern Anti-Semitism] transl:
Rudolf Komromy. Ulpius-hz, 2003; Kng, Hans: A katolikus egyhz. [The Catholic Church], transl: Pter Zaln, Eurpa Knyvkiad, Budapest, 2005; Lafont, Ghislain: [Histoire thologique de lglise catholique], transl:
Marcell Mrtonffy. Atlantisz, Budapest 1998; and Gyrgy Tatr: Egy gyr mind fltt. [One ring above all.]
Akadmiai Kiad, Budapest, 2009.
2 Jabalot, Ferdinando: Degli ebrei nel loro rapporto colle nazioni cristiane. V. Poggioli, Roma, 1825. further editions 1826. reference by Kertzer, 435.
3 Kertzer, p. 86
4 Kertzer, pp. 197-214, 274-303.
78
CEC_konyv.indd 78
2016.06.10. 8:36:45
by gnes Szllssy
movements and as a result of the crisis of the church state,5 the participants of the
First Vatican Council convened in Rome in 1869 believed to re-establish respect
and their former power by declaring the Popes infallibility and the centralisation of
the church administration.
European Catholics in the second half of the 19th and the first half of the 20th
centuries were surrounded by a closed denominational environment having its own
ideology.6 They hardly noticed how much the office structure of the church was bureaucratic and centralised, since the organisational forms of the church were centralised and modernised at the same time, and the clergy isolated from the world
as much as possible made up a disciplined group. All that together constituted a
closed ideological system, which legitimised both keeping a distance from the modern world and other denominations and the monopoly of an unalterable interpretation of the world. The anachronism in the development of the church and modern
society became apparent at the time of the reign of Pius IX (1846-1878). In the
same decade when Darwin published the theory of evolution, the Pope announced
the dogma on the immaculate conception of Mary (1854), and the Syllabus errorum
modernorum (A collection of modern mistakes, 1864) published as an appendix
to the encyclic Quanta cura was clearly a rejection of contemporary science and
any dialogue with culture. The books banned for Catholics included Copernicus
and Galilee, Descartes, Pascal, Spinoza, Locke, Hume and Kant, Rousseau and
Voltaire, Taine, Montesquieu, Heine, Victor Hugo,7 Flaubert, Zola and many others. It was unavoidable for modern scientists, philosophers, intellectuals and artists to keep a distance from or leave the church and it was not infrequent that a
scholarly monk teacher continued his work either at some university or academy
or in some oriental mission far from the inquisitors of the Congregation for the Doctrine of the Faith looking for heretics. The same motives were usually not worded in
the clerical indignation for the spread of secular ideas. Pope Leo XIII (1878-1903)
somewhat mitigated the opinion of his predecessor announcing the infallibility of
a Pope regarding modernity, democracy and liberal freedom rights, on the other
hand, he took special care for the operation of censorship, and over a thousand of
his documents included the condemnation of demonic forces attacking the church
5 When the Italian national state was established in 1870, the centre of the Catholic Church, the Papal State
ceased to exist, its estates were nationalised and Pope Pius IX and his successors lived in voluntary imprisonment in the Lateran Palace. That state of affairs came to an end with an agreement reached with the Italian State
in 1929 and the establishment of the State of the Vatican.
6 This paragraph is based on Chapter VII.9. of Hans Kng: A katolikus egyhz rvid trtnete [The short history
of the Catholic Church], (pp. 220-239.)
7 One of the readers of MK wrote the following in Budapest in 1925 on the novel Les Miserables by V. Hugo:
It is sold so unbelievably cheaply , that we have to think that the Satan has its hand in it and this cheapness
must have some background. When my wife started to read it, we saw it immediately that the teachings of the
Catholic Church were put on the pillory. I returned it immediately to the book seller saying that it must be a book
banned so we must not read it. the book is available at every family. It is spreading unimaginable poison. A
reader to the editor-in-chief. From our mailbox. MK XIX/3, 2 November 1925.
CEC_konyv.indd 79
79
2016.06.10. 8:36:45
Churches Holocaust
or freemason conspirators.8 Still having realized the church had to establish a new
attitude as a result of the social changes in the world. The Rerum novarum published in 1891 indicated for the faithful that the church may assist them in overcoming their problems. His successor, Pope Pius X (1903-1914) did not only return to
the conservative line taken by Pope Pius IX, but condemned all reform ideologies
depicting them as modernisms. He hindered the work of reform theologians, exegetes and historians striving to reconcile Catholic teaching and modern sciences,
he sanctioned the church intellectuals (indexing them, excommunicating them or
dismissing them). The index and the Syllabus listing the mistakes of the modern
age remained and an obsolete oath (1910),9 forced on all members of the Catholic
clergy was introduced, which meant a total rejection of a dialogue with the world.
The reactionary-inquisitorial line of Pope Pius X returned at the time of Pope Pius
XII, while the shameful enforcement of the oath had remained in force until 1965.
Pope Pius XI (1922-1939) promoted the practical distribution of World Conquering
Christianity by establishing missions internally and in the Far East and by building
up a network of Actio Catholica. He had churches built in Palestine on the scenes
of the operations of Jesus.10 In his encyclical Mortalium animos in 1928, he banned
Catholics to participate at the Lausanne Ecumenical Conference planned in 1929.
In 1933, he did not take action against the persecution of the church by German
National Socialists and the internment of several Catholic priests, and how could he
have criticised the active discrimination of Jews and the pogroms organised against
them when the legal provisions depriving the Jews from their citizens rights used
pattern the church itself had implemented when it had been able to. His circular
beginning Mit brennender Sorge published in 1937 was too diplomatically worded
to make any impact. Pope Pius XII (1939-1958) was the last representative of the
medieval anti-reform and anti-modernity paradigm, who followed faithfully the line
of Pope Pius IX after the War announcing the second infallibility dogma of Mary
(1950). Pacelli when he was a papal nuncio urged Brnning the Catholic German
Chancellor already in 1931 to enter into coalition with Hitlers Party (because Brnning was unwilling to do so, Pacelli broke with him), then entered into an imperial
concordat with the Nazi regime already in July 1933 without any imperative reason
encouraging in that way the Catholic population, the resisting conference of bishops and the clergy to fit into the Nazi regime. He did not object to the ban of the
German Catholic organisations (1933), or the racial laws of Nurnberg (1935) or the
occupation of Austria (1938); he did not object to the attack on Poland and on the
start of the war, either. He received continuous information about mass murders
from 1942, but he only expressed generalities in two short addresses commiserating on the fate of those unfortunate people. He did not only abandon Jews but also
8 Kertzer, 404.
9 For the full text, cf. www.katolikus-honlap.hu/regi2/konyvtar2/antimodernista.htm.
10 FK V/4, April 1925; report on church buildings in the Holy Land in 1924.
80
CEC_konyv.indd 80
2016.06.10. 8:36:45
by gnes Szllssy
Jewish-Christians, the converted, the European Catholics and bishops saving Jews
acting in their interest or unwilling to collaborate with the Nazis. His silence resulted
in falsely shaping the conscience of many Christians, therefore, the destruction of
masses of people.
11 Dr. Aldr Krger: A ppai gyszv. Elads a Mria Kongregci nagygyls dszlsn (II. rsz 151-155.) [The
papal year of mourning. Address at the meeting of the Great Assembly of the Mary Congregation (Part II, pp.
151-155] MK Vol. V, 1911-1912, pp. 152-153.
CEC_konyv.indd 81
81
2016.06.10. 8:36:45
Churches Holocaust
82
CEC_konyv.indd 82
2016.06.10. 8:36:46
by gnes Szllssy
Messiah then the requirement of baptism were followed - from the beginning of the
19th century - by a new presentation of the old idea: the Jews should adapt to the
Christian state. We accept the Jews as citizens if they become Christians or if at
least they assimilate to the Christian state. If they do not: they are enemies and you
have to treat them as enemies. At that time, not religious conversion was the number one requirement but social assimilation. We accept if somebody is of Jewish
descent or even if he is a Jews provided he adapts to us. In everything. He should
be a Jew but so that he stops being a Jew14
The efforts of the Jews of the middle or upper-middle classes for assimilation were received with indifference mixed with reservations and sometimes with
contempt by the majority society,15 while their conversion was heartily accepted
by the churches.16 Many financed the building of churches or the establishment of
charity institutions with major foundations and cash donations, they practiced their
faith with sincere devoutness, and they were the officers of religious societies and
congregations and loyal self-sacrificing workers of the church.17
CEC_konyv.indd 83
83
2016.06.10. 8:36:46
Churches Holocaust
The assessment of wealth and social assimilation of Jews significantly financing economic progress resulted in the jealousy of the civil society.18
The gentry living on loans from the Jews, mediocre Christian students, entrepreneurs unable of innovation or traders miscalculating could not criticise their
Jewish competitors all the time for their better results or for their own misery, so
jealousy, contempt on racial basis, slander, demonization, moral annihilation or
contesting their belonging to the human race were an easy defence at hand. Envy
develops hidden because it besmirches those who clearly admit it to themselves.
The envious will make use of every opportunity if somebody else will speak for them
or provide arguments for them to hide their appalling sins. That is how they can hide
their mean anger under political programmes, under elated concepts such as justice, the law and fairness, the interests of the nation, or they can find self-justification
in scientifically founded theories. A series of regulatory measures under legislation
allowed Christian citizens in Hungary to look at the Jews deprivation of their rights
with their arms folded and anti-Semitism openly advertised in the church press gave
them justification to do so with a clear conscience. The head of Hungarian Christian denominations were unwilling to unite even to take a united step for their own
followers, the Christian Jews,19 while several laymen, believers, priests or prefects
of religious orders saved people from spring 1944 listening to their conscience.20
First people they had a relationship with and later others asking for shelter. The official Catholic leadership was waiting for a statement by the Pope and while Cardinal
Serdi published his circular with a scandalous text in it: We do not deny that
part of the Jewry had a destructive influence over the Hungarian economic, social
and moral life. It is a fact that the others did not combat their co-followers in that
regard21; the countryside of Hungary had already become free of Jews.
18 The basis of the following train of thought: Aly, Gtz: Warum die Deutshen? Warum die Juden? Gleichheit, Neid
und Rassenhass 1800-1933. Fischer Vlg, Frft/Main, 2012, 277-301. In Hungarian: Befejezetlen trtnet.
[Unfinished story.] translated by gnes Gdor. 2000. Irodalmi s trsadalmi havi lap, 25/12, December 2013,
pp. 3-13.
19 Braham, Randolph L.: The Christian churches of Hungary and the Holocaust in: Studies on the Holocaust. I.
Balassi Kiad, Budapest, 2001, pp. 9-36 (14-21).
20 The prefect of the Verbites of Kszeg accepted the second generation Catholic Sndor Grg, an 11-year old
student of Szombathely-Kszeg, in April 1944 before the ghetto was set up and his family deported. More on it:
an interview made with Sndor Grg (1933-) pharmaceutical researcher, university professor, member of the
Hungarian Academy of Sciences in 2002: Marianne Dobos: Akkor is karcsony volt [It was Christmans then]
(1944). Bbor Kiad, Miskolc, 2002 , pp. 270-276.
21 Braham, op-cit, 21. Gyrgy Kiss, Catholic priest commented as follows: So Cardinal Serdi - in June 1944
when the Jewry of the countryside and many tens of thousands of Jewish-Christians had already been deported
from the country tortured physically and mentally, humiliated, pressed into cattle wagons and the majority had
been killed before that pastoral letter was published - divided the Jews of Hungary into two parts. One part was
guilty because it had been exercising a destructive influence on Hungarian life while the other party was guilty
for being silent What follows from this? It follows that the whole Jewry should be condemned. The Arrow
Cross followers and the Hitlerists are saying the same It is possible those people thought: it was only the way
to settling the Jewish issue that differentiated them from the church people! in: Sndor Szenes: Befejezetlen
mlt. [Unfinished past.] Private edition, Budapest, 1994, p. 283.
84
CEC_konyv.indd 84
2016.06.10. 8:36:46
by gnes Szllssy
22 dm Somorjai OSB: Cesare Orsenigo s Angelo Rotta apostoli nunciusok szerepe a magyarorszgi szerzetesrendek apostoli vizitcijban 1927-1935, [The part played by Apostolic Nuncios Cesare Orsenigo
and Angelo Rotta in the apostolic visitation of religious orders in Hungary 1927-1935] in: Andrs Fejrdy
(ed.):Magyarorszg s a Szentszk diplomciai kapcsolatai, 1920-2015. [The diplomatic relations of Hungary and the Holy See 1920-2015] (METEM knyvek), METEM, Budapest Balassi Intzet Rmai Magyar
Akadmia, Rma, 2015, 211-226 (216-220).
23 Cf.: Friedrich Stahl: Der christliche Staat. Berlin, 1847 (2nd ed. 1858) referred to by: Gza Komorczy: Msodlagos antiszemitizmusok. [Secondary anti-Semitisms] http://beszelo.c3.hu/masodlagos-antiszmitizmusok
(2016.02.19.)
CEC_konyv.indd 85
85
2016.06.10. 8:36:46
Churches Holocaust
86
CEC_konyv.indd 86
2016.06.10. 8:36:46
by gnes Szllssy
could mutually shape their attitudes. In political issues, they refused to take sides
publicly; the primes of the orders of the orders were responsible for the necessary
public part to be played.
The Benedictine periodical Pannonhalmi Szemle [Pannonhalma Digest]25 was
in charge of informing the Catholic intellectuals living in the attraction of European
erudition. The column Tanulmnyok [Studies] reported on the scientific/scholarly
achievements of the members of the order and published opinions on topical issues
of the most diverse branches of philosophy, theology and the social and natural
sciences; the essays and short reports of Figyel [Monitor] responded to topical social and cultural events quite frequently with a critical edge and the column
Knyvek [Books] compiled with a spectre unique in the domestic press with
several dozens of items from time to time published reviews of mainly foreign and
secondly Hungarian professional literature in the order of library regisration. Benedictina was the column of the news of the order, events, press releases, oblatus/
oblata societies and the schools issues.
The Order of Saint Benedict was the only religious order in Hungary that was
exempt from the jurisdiction of the local Ordinary, and this freedom and independence as well as its lively contacts with the Benedictine congregations of the world
shaped its spiritual horizon and its attitude to Hungarian reality. The nature of the
periodical and its bi-monthly publication allowed for a visionary review and assessment of the ecclesiastical and social processes, theological and spiritual trends in
the world by looking at them from a distance, contemplating responses, and selecting the adequate tone of those polemies from time to time.
Mayer Sixtus published a review of the issue of racism. His study Biological
and ideological implications of the racial issue undertook to introduce the topic fully
and retrospectively.26 Following a thorough description of the scientific results of
biology and genetics, he stated with reference to the racial theory built on blood:
According to the fanatics of the racial idea, the most treasured asset of any nation
is its genetic stock inherited in its blood. He expressed his reservations and criticisms as follows: Today due to technology and civilisation - the strong internal
communication of mankind and its mixing has reached such degrees that no sharp
borders can be found among them. So we must see that even according to biology,
the race is one of the most diverse natural values that can only be defined with dif25 Published 5 times a year from 1925 on 15 February, April, June, October and December - for the service
of the Hungarian Catholic culture and the Benedictine spirit. Editor-in-chief Dr. Viktorin Strommer and Jk
Blazovich from Vol. XIII, issue 4. Responsible editor: Dr. Ern Mihlyi. Published by the Pannonhalma Saint
Benedictine Order. Permanent columns: Studies, Monitor, Books and Benedictina. The volumes reviewed:
from 1937 Vol. XII, issue 1 to 1944 Vol. XIX, issue 2 (37 issues)
26 PhSzle, issue XII/3, June 1937. pp. 195-207.
CEC_konyv.indd 87
87
2016.06.10. 8:36:46
Churches Holocaust
ficulty, and it is not a greater value than culture or language. Therefore, to make it
the leading principle and measure of the values of an individual person or of whole
nations, i.e., the foundations of an ideology cannot be made. He meditates on the
interaction of inherited features and the environment using the peoples of the USA
as an example; he considers the human race as one and always speaks about different groups of peoples as types. The peoples of Europe today do not belong to
the same type, on the contrary, they are compounds of very multi-coloured but
harmonised types, which came into being through crossing types that had not
been pure by themselves in the course of their history. So, for instance, Ugrian,
Turkish, Alpine, Dinaric and Baltic types took part in building up the Hungarian
people. Speaking of the mixture of minority peoples with majority ones he advises:
This naturally does not mean an underestimation of the values of a foreign type,
which may in itself be even more outstanding. You cannot set up an objective order
of values of the types anyway; it can only be relative, i.e., one or another can be of
higher or lower value from the perspective of a specific type and such a distinction
is definitely harmful and dangerous, and the principle cannot mean the exclusion
of a foreign type from the obligation of philanthropic love.
The topic of race also appears among book reviews in the same issue.27 The
author introduces the comprehensive book by German biologist Hermann Muckermann on the history of the human race, the trends of genetics, the rules of the
development of races and on the position of racial studies. He quotes the author,
according to whom a homogeneous racial composition of the German people is
impossible; you cannot speak of one race or pure race either in their case or in the
case of any other people races were mixed already at the beginning of historic
times. The author specifically rejects the effort to set up criteria to establish
the spiritual basis of racial differences. There are no spiritual features of that kind,
or at least they are unknown today. He emphasises every race is of the same value
and therefore, the different aspects of the evaluation of races are rejected. () The
virtue of the northern race so much emphasised and glorified today, e.g., a skill of
initiatives and creation, can be found in other races in the same way. The author
does not deal with the statements of Hermann Muckermann relating to the Jews.
The two studies published in June 1937 complete the topic of racial theories in the
issues of Pannonhalmi Szemle reviewed.
The topics of new paganism, new barbarism, the romantic national idea
and nationalism always appear together with the criticism of ideologies or political
trends that are harmful for the Catholic Church.
27 Dr. Gza Karsai: Hermann Muckermann: Gundriss der Rassenkunde. (The foundations of racism) Paderborn,
1935. (Book review) PhSzle Vol. XII/3, June 1937, Books. Racial studies, p. 236.
88
CEC_konyv.indd 88
2016.06.10. 8:36:46
by gnes Szllssy
CEC_konyv.indd 89
89
2016.06.10. 8:36:47
Churches Holocaust
an agitator to say so. The Austrian Christian Socialist Party was famed for its antiSemitism. In Hungary, only the Catholic Peoples Party was anti-Semitic, the clergy
was against the provision of equal rights for the Jews, marriages of Christians and
Jews, etc. And where were the fathers of those accusing now the Church with
friendliness to the Jews in those fights? The Church stood on the grounds of natural
rights at that time and it is standing there now. People who do everything to use the
Church for their own means will do everything both covertly and openly by speaking
of a political church; but because it is not political to their benefit, they promise to
lead it back to the right path.
The above is a clear reference to the fact that in the debate of the first antiJewish law in the Upper House in 1938, Cardinal Jusztinin Serdi and the bishop
of Csand Gyula Glattfelder objected to both the principle of collective responsibility
and criminality and the declaration of the sacrament of baptism to be null and void
with a government order (despite all of that, they voted for the law acknowledging
a necessary evil30). Sacristans exaggeration! Mass history at the time of one of
the biggest crisis of our history. It would be worthwhile to search for a dynamic
component; what part has been played by a static component, the moral and spiritual mediocrity of those happily arrived in evoking this dangerous spiritual state. It
is certain that the immeasurable cult of mediocrity, an obstinate insistence on positions and sharing them with ones relatives and friends are the most effective drivers
of this passion.
In the jubilee Saint Steven Year and maybe as a result of an address by Prime
Minister Klmn Darnyi in Gyr on 5 March 1938,31 the voice of political Christianity and militant Catholicism appeared even in Pannonhalmi Szemle. With reference to Saint Steven, any topic and opinion may aspire to be legitimised; the
national conscience is full of the apotheosis of the Holy King. Tihamr Vany mediates the message of Saint Steven to the contemporary Catholic Hungarian intellectuals going into details surpassing legends on the correct and proactive religiosity,
the modern and social bourgeois spirit, the original, Hungarian spirit being an end
in itself:32 We cannot find any duality or rift in the character and life story of our
30 Jen Gergely: A magyar katolikus pspki kar, az apostoli szentszk s a So. [The Council of Hungarian
Catholic Bishops, the Apostolic Holy See and the Shoa.] in: Gbor Hamp - zsb Hornyi - Lszl Rbai (ed.):
Magyar megfontolsok a Sorl. [Hungarian considerations on the Shoa.] Balassi Kiad, Budapest Magyar
Pax Romana Frum Pannonhalmi Faptsg, Gyr, 1999, pp. 94-95.
31 He stated that There is a Jewish issue. And it is one of our unsettled public problems. And if it is unsettled, I
can only regard a planned and legitimate settlement to be possible. I think the essence of the issue is that the
Jewry living within the borders of the country has a disproportionately big part to play in certain branches of the
economy due to its specific disposition and situation but also partly due to the inactivity of the Hungarian race
(Jnos Gyurgyk, op.cit. p. 136).
32 Dr. Tihamr Vany: Szent Istvn szl hozznk [Saint Steven speaks to us] PhSzle Vol. XIII/3, June 1938,
Figyel [Monitor], pp. 204-213.
90
CEC_konyv.indd 90
2016.06.10. 8:36:47
by gnes Szllssy
King, Saint Steven Only a belated attitude not knowledgeable about history may
say his activity was contrary to the so-termed racial Hungarian interests. Speaking
of the dark side of the bourgeois spirit and the rise of the middle classes, he leaves
no doubt about who are to blame in the style of the sensational press he otherwise
despises. The figures of knights and monks, philosophers and poets are replaced
by the bourgeois driven by a desire for world power, the conqueror, the organiser and the profit-man. He looks onto the world from the self-conceited vantage
point of the powerful, the rich and those enjoying carnal pleasures from his life-box
furnished with a calculating mind, artificial and devious taste and overwhelming
riches. The Golden Calf is his Lighting Sun However, it is a specific disadvantage
of our development that due to historic reasons, our bourgeoisie has been mainly
put together from foreigners, so it is rootless in this land and among our people
not only because of its ideology but from a national aspect as well. This liberal,
unbelieving, immoral and frivolous spiritual environment mocking everything that is
noble and holy has been poisoning the minds of the emerging Hungarian intellectuals for decades
Reviving the original Hungarian spirit that is an end in itself is the token to develop our peculiar racial features, fantastic skills and magnificent opportunities. A
free military lifestyle is one of our most characteristic features More military spirit
on a modern but Hungarian basis!... The arms of the soldiers of Saint Steven were
used against two internal and three external enemies... In it, there is a symbol of the
mission of the Hungarian sword. Internally: it must smite all who attack the foundations of Saint Stevens Hungary and want to be free from the power of the Crown
and the head of state. Externally: the Hungarian sword has a mission in the north,
east and south; as for the west, it regards with respect the nation that has given the
empire of Saint Steven missionaries and valuable cultural initiatives, which has bled
and built jointly with us in this land.
There is no doubt that the respect mentioned above is addressed to the German Empire annexing Austria a few months earlier. In the following years there would
have been major reasons for this attitude to be re-valued in the communications of
the order. With regard to the tensions between the relations of Hungary and Slovakia, we could welcome the study by Villebald Danczi on the 19th century Slovakian
national revival written in 1943,33 which was closed with a surprisingly exemplary
elevation: Now on the 150th anniversary of the establishment of L.S.S. [Litterata
Slavica Societas], we wish the Slovak Catholics and nation to use their national
conscience launched with wise moderation and certainty for giving so much beauty
and goodness to the Slovak people and Europe from its national soul, if we did not
know that this national conscience built with wise moderation was rooted - at least
33 PhSzle Vol. XVIII/3, June 1943, pp. 194-198.
CEC_konyv.indd 91
91
2016.06.10. 8:36:47
Churches Holocaust
partly - in attaching the independent Slovak State to the German sphere of influence
and was already burdened with the deportation of 57,628 Slovakian Jews when the
study was published.34
All press publications linked to the Cistercians were addressed to one or
other age groups of the students of the order.35
The Hrad [News] was a circular-type periodical publication issued in a relatively low number for information of small groups of the student society. The reports
and letters by students living in villages around the city included vivid descriptions of
the consequences of the war on everyday life, which was not so far away due to the
bombings. In summer 1942, the adult men were all missing from the villages, so the
holidays were spent in work. To replace the adults fighting on the fronts (because
even the farm servants were drafted) children worked on all farms and around the
houses while the municipal magistrates obliged students to perform the most different tasks. They worked in offices, in the forest, on road building or as supervisors
of threshing and compulsory delivery.
In 1943, the academic year only started at the end of October. The editor of
the paper advised students to repeat the curriculum, to be austere, to make efforts
to be perfect, to love God and their fellowmen, to help the poor, the sufferers and
the deserted, to study the book of rules of the congregation and he also thought it
was time to speak about the war: It is Gods punishment on humanity that has abandoned him in masses due to self-adoration, the love of money, for the sake of carnal
pleasures, due to moral leniency, levity, egotism and enmity. () We must placate
the benign God who has been gravely harmed!
In April 1944, the academic year is finished; in addition to earlier jobs, the students serve as operators of telephones, radios and telegraphs. In their letters, the
opinion of their employers appears: That really friendly nation that almost took the
Carpathian Basin under its protection, seemed to be repugnant to many in the first
days of their entry. It has become obvious by now that we have to take hold of the
34 Graziano, Ingrid Istvn Erdgh: Jozef Tiso s a szlovkiai holokauszt. [Jozef Tiso and the Slovakian Holocaust] METEM, Budapest, 2006, pp. 51-93. (78-79); Ilona Mona: Margit Slachta, Corvinus kiad, Budapest,
1997, pp. 146-149.
35 Hirad. [News] The summer bulletin of the Mary Congregation of the High School Saint Steven of the Cistercians in Szkesfehrvr. Published periodically. Ed by: Dr. Rafael Marschall. O. Cist. Vol. IV, issue 1, July
1942 to Vol. VI, issue 4, August 1944 (10 issues). Maurinum. The periodical of maurinist university students.
Published bi-monthly from October to June. Edited by: Tibor Kecsks, Zoltn Mikls. Published by: dr. Damjn
Vargha O.Cist. Saint Maurice Collegium, Pcs. Vol. III, issue 1, October 1936 to Vol. V, issue 5, June 1939.
(15 issues). Pcsi Szentfld. [Pcs Holy Land] Paper of Cistercian alumni. Published monthly. Edited by: Dr.
Lajos Helvey. Private edition. Duplicated manuscript. Vol. III, issue 7, September 1938 to Vol. IV, issue 7,
August 1939. Pcsi Szentfld. [Pcs Holy Land] Paper of Cistercian alumni. Social monthly. Edited and published by: Dr. Lajos Helvey. Budapest Vol. I-V, March 1940 - November 1944 (altogether 68 issues)
92
CEC_konyv.indd 92
2016.06.10. 8:36:47
by gnes Szllssy
hand of our great ally strongly to be able to survive this threat that is unprecedented
in our history.36
Ordered to patrol together with the gendarmes, students took part in searching
for the soldiers on the allied airplanes that have been shot down: we have been trying all day to catch the Negroes in hiding. () The gendarmes took the pilot having
catapulted out of a plane shot down to the village hall: he was a Jew.37 At this publication, the responsibility of the person editing the paper can be raised who in the
same issue in May 1944 encouraged his students as follows: When the life of our
nation, our life and our survival are at stake, the only path we can take is to fight on
the side of the allied Germany and work for its victory. () An Holy Hungarian spirit
should be our everyday programme! Self-sacrifice, apostolic attitude for the victory
for the home country! 38
Maurinum was the paper of the Saint Maurice Collegium of the Pcs University launched in 1934 to shape and strengthen the Christian ideology of the
Catholic students. The paper was written and edited by university students, some of
them also published in other papers as well. As it turns out from the articles getting
through the filter of the editor, they are interested in current politics in accordance
with their age characteristics and social position, they shape their opinion adapted
to the normative Catholic organs and time their publications accordingly.
On the 10th anniversary of the death of Ottokr Prohszka excerpts from his
vocabulary randomly put together sound funny from the mouth of students of law in
their 1st or 2nd years: The Levantine morals of liberalism have made Hungarian
social life unbearable producing high capitalism and the proletariat. The souls have
been supressed by arrogance, egotism, indifference to the faith, godlessness.39
The cult of Prohszka was reinforced using specific typographic solutions. His
statement considered the most important was published at the bottom of the page
separated from the main text with a line as a motto: The Jewish business spirit is the
murderer of morality (Prohszka)40
36
37
38
39
CEC_konyv.indd 93
93
2016.06.10. 8:36:47
Churches Holocaust
94
CEC_konyv.indd 94
2016.06.10. 8:36:47
by gnes Szllssy
presenting the facts in such a way that is intended to serve corruption and the world
power of the Jewry planned in an evil way and not particular about its means. However, the law must also be implemented: and we need Christian journalists for that.
The Maurinum is of a great service in that field when it offers latent talents to be of
use for our people when they have gained well-founded knowledge.45
Pcsi Szentfld [Pcs Holy Land] differs from the other two publications both
in its content and tone. It explicitly declares its independence from Maurinum, a paper also linked to Pcs.46 Its editor, authors and readers are former students of the
Pcs Roman Catholic High School of the Zirc Cistercians. At the start of the paper
in 1934 most of them are 60-70 years old, already inactive, and they used to be
students of the school founded in 1843 between 1880-1900. The first volume is
rather a circular duplicated for internal use. The typical genres of its nostalgic tests
are obituaries and memoires, reports and chronicles of church events. The social
monthly printed regularly from 1940 publishes historical, local historical, church
and order history papers, and interviews with schoolmates in high positions on topical issues,47 as well as book reviews and responses to some topical event.
Some of the former high school students at Pcs were obviously personally
affected by the acts of war in neighbouring Yugoslavia, which used to be a caption area of the school. The fact that Hungary concluded an eternal agreement of
friendship with Yugoslavia on 27 February 1941, then marched there on the side
of the German army on 11 April and annexed one of its parts, meant divine justice
for the smug author of Pcsi Szentfld: Southern Baranya has returned () it was
prepared by a spiritual revision following much suffering, since we have been taken
out of the blindness of a liberal philosophy, from open faithlessness, freemasonry,
from judaication by those sufferings and we were driven back to the path of Saint
Stevens concept: the thousand-year-old alliance of faith and country.() God has
given us realisation as a reward.48 In the August issue, a soft reprimand arrives: My
brother, do you want to stop the truncatedness of our country? First, you should
make your soul complete and build it up into a whole!49
45 Pl Svda dr.: A megtett t [The road taken ...] Maurinum Vol. V/5, June 1939, pp. 17-20 (20.)
46 Ed by: PSz Vol. III/7, September 1938
47 PSz Vol. II/11, November 1941, Elemr Pongrcz: J kzben van a magyar lgvdelem. Ltogats Kishindi
Komposcht Nndor tbornoknl (az Orszgos Lgvdelmi Parancsnoksg vezrrnagya) [Hungarian air defence is in good hands. A visit to General Nndor Kishindi Komposcht, the major general of the National AntiAircraft Command].
48 dr. Lszl Glos: Dlbaranya visszatrt. [Southern Baranya has returned.] PSz Vol. II/5, May 1941, pp. 1-2
49 Elemr Pongrcz: Serlegbeszd a Pcsi Ciszterci regdikok Budapesti Csoportjnak 150. vacsorjn. [Toast
given at the 150th dinner of the Budapest Group of the Pcs Cistercian Alumni] PSz Vol. II/8, 4 August 1941.
CEC_konyv.indd 95
95
2016.06.10. 8:36:47
Churches Holocaust
96
CEC_konyv.indd 96
2016.06.10. 8:36:47
by gnes Szllssy
is one that can make peace between the individual and the community, between the
man and the state. A Christian state only has equal citizens.53
The contemplations of an anonymous author were published for 20 August:
Using the words of the Gospel of the national holiday, we request the patron God
of Hungarians to keep away the horrible ghost of paganism from Marys country in
all its forms. Let him remove the socialism of Asia from us just as well as the neopaganism of morbid European doctrines. It was a year ago that the eastern front
demanded terrible sacrifices from the country of Hungarians. The young life of our
deputy governor. Let this sacrifice be the atonement for old sins. Let the Almighty
save our nation in the hour of peril and let the beauty of the glorious holy Right Hand
retain the empire of the first apostolic king in its wholeness!54
The publication is silent about the 2nd Hungarian army destruction in JanuaryFebruary 1943 at the river Don, in the same way as the issues in 1944 were silent
on the entry of the German troops and the deportation of the Jews. There is a ban
on assembly, the Budapest Group cannot hold its monthly meeting, Dr Vilmos Vizer
cannot deliver his toast. The old gentlemen are sitting in the Zldfa Restaurant of
Spolarich in silence. In August, the editor makes his farewell as befits a Cistercian student by quoting Kisfaludy: No, not the enemy, his own son has caused his
wounds.
The last issues reduced to 4 pages in October and November are filled by the
Pro Patria columns.
Orders established for the dissemination of the Gospel and the teaching of the Church
In addition to living evangelical life, the order of preachers, the Dominicans (O.P.)
have considered their main mission to spread the Catholic faith since 1221; the
followers of Saint Francis, the Franciscans (O.F.M.) have been striving for solidarity with the poor since 1233 and the Society of Jesus (S.J.) have been ardent on
obedience to the Pope since 1552. The members of the orders had no institutional
or personal property, no land and covered the costs of living from donations. They
were jointly characterised by keeping daily connection with the civil society in the
course of their pastoral work, they took part in popular missions and their civil helpers and supporters were connected to the orders in an organised manner.
53 dr. Aladr Krger: Egynisg s kzssg. [Individuality and community.] PSz Vol. IV/4, April 1943, p. 2.
54 PSz Vol. IV/8, august 1943, p. 6.
CEC_konyv.indd 97
97
2016.06.10. 8:36:47
Churches Holocaust
The Dominicans, who were engaged in the highest level of theology and the
education of sciences in medieval Europe, operated five monasteries and vicarages in Hungary in our period (Szombathely, Kassa, Vasvr, Sopron and Budapest).
In addition to the pastoral service, they were engaged in retaining and activating
men in the church, they took part in organising male pilgrimages, Catholic high assemblies and popular missions. They mainly recruited the membership of the civil
organisation operating under their leadership called Credo Association, which was
of several thousand members, mostly on these occasions.
The attraction of the movement organised for Catholic men - as opposed to
the definite class structure of the civil society and of the associations of the Jesuits
organised on missionary basis - was its expressed democratism.
Credo,55 the official paper of the association was initially an internal bulletin. It
reported on topical events, the development of the organisation, then as its membership suddenly increased (it had 2,000 members in 14 organisations 2 years
after establishment56) it also published educational series of articles on the history
of the order and of the church, life skills guidance for men, edifying short stories and
plays. The editor-in-chief of the paper, Kornl Ble O.P. was a speaker of Catholic
mass rallies much sought after, his speeches were also printed.
Since it was launched later and in a lower circulation than similar papers, it
tried to meet the modern task of being a press apostle with increased devotion.
Mixing its metaphorical language with populist exclamations, it is drifting and inciting its readers further and further away from obligatory Christian love to open antiJewishness.57
It is diligently searching for and takes over from other publications if necessary
news items or debunking facts about the fraudulent attacks of the enemy without
using the word Jew even once. In response to a question by H., as well as to
avoid forgetfulness, indifference and frivolity and also to inflict wounds on certain
55 Periodical for Catholic men. The official paper of Credo Association. Published between April 1923 and August
1947 in principle monthly (sometimes bi-monthly). Editor-in-chief and publisher: Kornl P. Ble O.P., goston
P. Mrk O.P. from 1943, Bertalan P. Badalik O.P. from 1945. Publisher and owner: The Monastery of Saint
Dominic. Budapest. Permanent columns: Watchtower, From Heart to Heart, Face to Face, Mailbox. Newsideas, Vol. I, issue 1, April 1923 to Vol. VI, issue 12, December 1928. (68 issues).
56 Lszl Kubnyi: Beszmol a dszgylsrl. [Report on the celebratory meeting] Credo Vol. II/6, OctoberNovember 1924, pp. 116-117.
57 All Catholics know very well that Christ and Marx, Catholic faith and social democracy cannot fit in the same
soul! You cannot serve such two masters at the same time! Beware! The slogan is: out with them from the
village! Because benevolent Catholic people do not need their scams or evil mischief! (p.k.) Credo, Watchtower. Church News. Vol. I, issue 1; Revolting defamation of religion keeps the public opinion of the city
[Zalaegerszeg] in uproar!(-) (news item taken over from the 22 June 1923 issue of j Nemzedk) Credo Vol.
I/2-3, august 1923
98
CEC_konyv.indd 98
2016.06.10. 8:36:48
by gnes Szllssy
consciences, we list who have been representing and (unfortunately!) still represent
the Hungarian press to a large extent: Ferenc Molnr Neumann, Dezs Szomori
Mr Weiss, Emil Szomori Man Weiss, Lajos Br - Emil Blau, Menyhrt Lengyel
- Lefkovits, Tams Kbor - Adolf Biermann, Sndor Ndas - J. Neumann, Istvn
Szomahzi - Arnold Steiner, Andor Mikls - rmin Klein, Bla Rvsz - rmin Reicher, Henrik Bla Ohajem Bernstein, Andor Adorjn - Mochem Leckenbach, Sndor
Kemny - Kohn, Ede Kabos Rosenberg, Kroly Sebestyn Schossberger, Pl
Kri Krmer, Szaniszl Tmr Schwarzberger, Oszkr Jszi - Jakobovits, Lszl
Lakatos Wellner, Pl Farkas Wolfner, Fzessri Fabinyi - Izidor Forschner, Jb
Bede Rosenberg, Dniel Jb - Dvid Ziffer, Andor Gbor Greiner, Jen Molnr
- Jakab Mller, Pter jvri Pinksz Neuwelt, Dezs Erdssi - Dvid Ehrenwald,
Imre Berkes - Izidor Bergl, Ott Bernt Singler, Tams Emd Fischer, Ern
Szp Schn, Mikls Lzr Lderer, Ferenc Gndr Nthn Krausz. And for
this reason, the Catholic masses happily purchase the writings of such people!58
A few months later, seemingly lacking any topicality: Who wrote the newspapers in 1918? Out of 30 journalists of Est, 25 were Jews, the ratio was 18/20 for
Nap, 25/19 for jsg, 10/18 for Budapesti Hrlap, 19/23 for Dli Hrlap, 7/7 for
Friss jsg, 15/20 for MTI , 16/20 for Npszava, 23/23 for Neues Pester Journal,
12/12 for Neues Politisches Volksblatt, 32/32 for Pester Lloyd, 16/20 for Vilg.
So 211 were Jews out of 250 in total. That was then. Who can be blamed for this
high degree of ruin? And today who reads those papers? 5,271,976 Roman Catholics (175,274 of them of the Greek Catholic denomination), 1,670.,44 Calvinists,
497,012 Lutherans, 50,990 Greek Orthodox, 6,224 Unitarians, 473,310 Jews
(most of them in Budapest!), 10,487 other (including 4,187 Baptists, 1,773 Nazarenes). Well, are not we buying the rope ourselves for our own hanging when we
pay an order such papers? The reader should decide whether they are the bigger
traitors and destroyers of the country or us, the readers of the papers.59
The question arises how much the religious life of Catholic men were made
more complete if they learnt from the paper that the author of the most popular Hungarian youth novel or the intendant of Vgsznhz changed his name from German
into Hungarian or was possibly a Jew?
The time has come to speak openly. First Bla Bangha Jesuit father is quoted:
The solution of the Jewish issue would be the following: The Jews should cease to
be Jews if not in a religious sense but in any case by fully overcoming their identity
and (I make efforts to avoid the word racial) class egotism. They should be honest
and good Hungarians just as our Germans and (mostly) Slovaks were, and then anti58 (-) Credo Vol. I, issue 4, November 1923, p. 17.
59 Beszdes szmok. [Telling figures. ](-) Credo Vol. II issue 2, March 1924. Watch Tower, p.45.
CEC_konyv.indd 99
99
2016.06.10. 8:36:48
Churches Holocaust
Semitism will suddenly come to an end. But as long as they are hiding the problem
instead of solving it, the most important foundation of reconciliation and making
peace, i.e., respect will be missing.60
Reconciliation is missing on other fronts as well mostly among Christians:
There are signs indicating that we are sliding downwards in our revival expected to
occur in the spirit of Christs Christianity! ...poor, doped people mock, spit on and
make rude remarks to the servants of God everywhere; Jews and freemasons grinning behind their hands are making the rope for a final suspension of the Christian
course; Those in power help our Protestant fellowmen with the highest efforts into
every position, job, action, etc., and at the same time, the Catholics miss every
opportunity being late under beautiful pretexts with the slogan of holy peace and
unity61
Finally, the big disclosure comes on how the Jewry conspired with the freemasons to achieve the world power of Jews. The publication of such an absurd
text construed from the remnants of beliefs, creeds, teachings and false teachings
raises the issue of the editors responsibility and suitability. The following quotations
provide a summary of its essence: the Jewry has recognised and acknowledged
the opportunities of organisation and power in freemasonry and have done all preparations to shape freemasonry to their own image. () Freemasonry is playing such a
big part in the world domination policy of the Jewry and its plans that we first have to
argue the whole history and development of the Jewry, because we can only understand them in that way. The maelstrom of huge and mystic ideas dawn on us when
we deal with the part played by the Jewry; with the question what place the Jewry has
taken in the plans of God, in world history. What kind of a fate are they carrying on
their dark and stooped shoulders? The Jews of ancient times had a three-fold task:
to maintain the faith in the one God and the Messiah, to have the Messiah born out
of their midst and that salvation should be executed on him by sacrificing him on the
cross. () so that they could maintain the faith in the Messiah in the whole world, God
has given them high skills of trading, with which they became the first trading nation
already in the old world and had connections with all nations of the Earth The Jews
have fulfilled their mission, maintained the faith and the desire for the coming of the
Messiah. The race had to survive so that the Messiah should come from them. That
is why God has given them the unprecedented racial strength that even today resists
ever effort for assimilation; and even if they mix with other races, they shape them
to their own image. So the Jewry had remained in racial clarity until the times of the
Messiah, but at that time - according to the plans of God - it lived in diaspora, i.e.,
dispersed all over the world, so that it could implant the soul of all nations with the
60 Taken over from Magyar Kultra) Credo Vol. I/4. November 1923, p.10.
61 Kornl Ble O.P.: Fel a gtra! [Up to the dam!] Credo Vol. II. issue 4, July-August 1924, p.65.
100
CEC_konyv.indd 100
2016.06.10. 8:36:48
by gnes Szllssy
belief in the Messiah. But when the Messiah arrived, who came was not who was expected; he was expected to come as a powerful king to liberate them from the tyranny
of the Romans. That belief lead them to mistake Christ for somebody else, to crucify
him and so to implement all technical details of salvation. It was there that the soul
and history of the Jewry turned around From that time on, the Jewry have become
representatives of all anti-Christian efforts and what is called anti-Christianism using
an artificial term besides the part played in the whole world history. () The Christian
peoples of the Middle Ages looked at them as generations of God killers and closed
them into ghettos and restricted their freedom in every way, and such an oppression - 1,800 years old - forged them into one with terrible force and made that people
living dispersed in the world united. They were living silently in the ghettos and they
were waiting. And in the meantime, secretly from generation to generation, they were
hoarding gold, riches, and made plans to acquire world domination when their time
comes. And it came in the 18th century, at the beginning of economic and state
liberalism, when provided with equal rights in every respect and using the unused
energies of 2,000 years they plunged into obtaining power greedily. The work they
have been doing for about 100 years is fantastic. It is so big that it is unprecedented
in world history: a nation of 15 million, which could retain its racial nature for 2,000
years having no home and living dispersed (where are the other small nations of Europe who lived 2,000 years ago?), jumped into the height of power from the greatest oppression with one spring. Do not be ashamed and do not deny: today Jewish
money and business interests dictate everywhere today; the naked and lewd morals
of the Jews find expression in clothes, books and dances. We cannot but assume the
existence of some uniform central directive so that this unmatched interesting event of
history could happen, and in fact, research in the field has justified it in every respect.
The objective is to lay the foundations of a Jewish world empire under the rule of a
king from the tribe of King David through a world revolution breaking out as the whole
world becomes freemason. The material and spiritual rule of Jews over Christians.62
The traditional service of Franciscans was the spiritual care of city population
and assistance to the poor. They operated in two provinces of the order in Hungary
between the two World Wars. The Capistran province provided parish pastoral work
in 26 cities and villages (Baja, Budapest-Orszgt, -Pasart, -Hvsvlgy, Csongrd, Debrecen I-II, Dunafldvr, Eger, Gyngys (and Mtrahza), Hatvan, Jszberny, Kecskemt, Mriagyd, Mtraverebly-Szentkt, Mohcs, Nyregyhza,
Pcs, Salgtarjn, Sikls, Simontornya, Szcsny, Szeged, Szigetvr, Szolnok and
Vc) while the Marian did so in 18 places (Andocs, Bcsszentlszl, Esztergom,
Felssegesd, Kapuvr, Nagyatd, Nagykanizsa, Ppa, Budapest, Smeg, Szkesfehrvr, Szombathely,Veszprm and Zalaegerszeg). They took part in popular missions, organised pilgrimages and contributed to the upkeep of places of worship.
62 (Vindex) A szabadkmvessgrl. [On freemasonry.] Credo Vol. IV. issue 6-7, June-July 1926, pp. 114-118.
CEC_konyv.indd 101
101
2016.06.10. 8:36:48
Churches Holocaust
Already in the Middle Ages, civilians attracted to the spirituality of Saint Francis gathered next to Franciscan communities; they were people who wanted to live according to the guidance of the Gospel, while maintaining their secular status. Those
brotherly communities were organised into regular societies in time. The members
of the order - in accordance with the rules of Tertiaries - take a vow after a year of
trial period; they take a name of the order, wear the clothes of the order or other
signs of the community. Their slogan is: Peace and work!
The 3rd order of Saint Francis, the Tertiaries have very strong historic traditions
in Hungary. In 1942, the 245 groups operating next to the monasteries in the two
provinces had about 26,000 members including many parish priests. Their paper
Ferences Kzlny [Franciscan Bulletin],63 is outstanding among the publications
of religious orders reviewed by carrying an objective reflexive attitude and a mild,
moderate and wise tone in addition to its varied content and visionary thinking. we
are convinced that the spirit of the 3rd order fully permeated by the wisdom of the
Gospel will greatly contribute to the improvement of individual and public morals,
as it happened at the time when Saint Francis announced to the world Gods country in words and actions If we investigate the religious, moral, cultural and social
problems of our age, we can find the analogy of those features in the social life of
the century of Saint Francis. Similarly to the present desolate situation, at that time
three typical factors covered the life of individuals and indirectly that of this society:
the lack of love, the indifference to religion, the immeasurable greed and its natural
consequence, an orgy of immorality! We want to fight against mean pessimism,
materialist thinking and social egoism. We preach the struggling humanity faith, resignation and love Our goals are peace and work.64
The magazine is characterised by a sincere search for truth regarding the issues
of faith and religious exercises. A typical example of that is the objective description of
the debate generated around a publicly known miracle - unquestionable still today with respect to the House of Mary at Loreto. As a respected Piarist scholar remarked,
the historical credibility of the legend cannot impact the great respect provided to our
63 Ferences Kzlny. [Franciscan Bulletin] Published monthly from 1920. Owner and publisher: Balzs P.
Borsnyi O.F.M. Gyngys, editor from 1927 to 1935, responsible editor from 1936 - 1941: Mr P. Majsai
O.F.M.,. Editorial office and publishers: Budapest I. Publishing owner: The Franciscan province named of
Capistran Saint John. Columns: Krisztus tjn [On Christs way], Tercirius vademecum [Tertiary vademecum],
Rendi let [Order life], Kritika [Criticism], A tercirius ifjsg levelesldjbl [From the mailbox of Tertiary
youth], Krisztus kzelben [Near Christ], Rendnk vilgkrnikja [Our orders world chronicle], from 1942
Magyar Bart. Ferences Kzlny. [Hungarian Friend. Franciscan Bulletin.] Published monthly. Edited by: Dr.
Ince Dm O.F.M., Published by: The Franciscan province named of Capistran Saint John. Gyngys. Vol.
XXII, issue 1, March 1942 to Vol. XXIV, issue 11, November 1944. Publishing office from February 1944: Vc,
Ferencesek. (altogether 52 issues)
64 FK Vol. V/1, January 1925, p. 3. Lszl Haner: A Ferences Kzlny clkitzse (a Kzlny Irodalmi Estjn
elhangzott elads szvegbl) [The mission of the Franciscan Bulletin (quoted from an address given at the
Literary Night of the Bulletin].
102
CEC_konyv.indd 102
2016.06.10. 8:36:48
by gnes Szllssy
Virgin Mother there and it has not changed the privileged position of Loretto at all. We
should however be aware that all scholars made statements against credibility. .
The stories about the origin of the cult are falsifications from the 17-18th centuries.
The Church and its followers are not disturbed by that, the belief in the legend and
the adoration of the Holy Virgin is important.65
In 1938, when the press media were loud with the apology of the theological
foundations of anti-Semitism, the Ferences Kzlny contemplating on Gods intentions reiterates the circumstances of the origin of the Bible. Happy is the one
who will not be outraged in me. Not today but already 1,700 years ago Marcion,
a Greek philosopher was outraged by the Old Testament and tried to eradicate it
with every means. Especially two things seem to be outrageous: why God entrusted
the Jewish people with writing the Holy Script and why did he not give it to everybody as fortune for the taking?! In his excellent book Christianity or racial religion
Dr. Klemm wrote the following: Man cannot argue with God, he cannot make him
accountable asking why he wanted to make a revelation to humanity through the
Jews. And if that happened: it is mans obligation to accept the world of God in
good faith, because that world has a nature beyond nations and races and applies
to everybody. (pp. 111-112). God had freedom to choose and confided in the Jewish people for his words. He could have done so with the Egyptians, or the Elamites
or the Greeks to make them the carriers of his revelations. We can only deduce
why he exercised this great mercy with the Jews. Maybe it was because they have
the strongest racial phenomena and 18 million Jews dispersed in the 4 corners of
the world stand as a unified camp today among powerful nations. And the reason
why we can only say Jewish Bible is because it reflects the features, virtues, sins,
and way of speaking, poetry and soul of the chosen people. In other words: God
wanted to communicate his laws, the means of his mercy and his eternal truth to
the whole humanity and used the sons of that Semitic peoples race to implement
his plans in the same way as we choose one of many candidates at an election to
fill a certain part or position. And it is a scandal for many: Why has God chosen the
Jewry and why not us or our ancestors? A soul seeing to the depth of things will not
be shocked by this question. Because the important thing is: That God has given
the revelation. It is not so important whose hands were used to have it written down
and forwarded it to us. So the Bible is not a Jewish Bible, but it is Gods word. It
is true he has placed it in the hands of men and had it written in Hebrew letters, but
the Egyptian cunei form writing or the Chinese symbols could have been the carrier
of the revelation just in the same way.66
CEC_konyv.indd 103
103
2016.06.10. 8:36:48
Churches Holocaust
67 Lrinc P. Forintos O.F.M.: A terciriusok csendes tevkenysge. [The silent activity of the Tertiaries] FK Vol.
XVIII/6, June 1938, pp. 176-177.
68 Szilveszter P. Sall OFM. FK Vol. XVIII/5, May 1938, p. 148.
69 Lajos Laurisin. Kritika [Criticism] column. FK Vol. V/3, March 1925, p. 149.
104
CEC_konyv.indd 104
2016.06.10. 8:36:48
by gnes Szllssy
The Jesuit Order has been present in Hungary since 1561 with interruptions
of several decades. After being established in 1909, the independent Hungarian
Jesuit province considered its main task to get the social leading position of the
Catholic Church to be acknowledged. In the period discussed they operated 7
houses: Budapest (2), Kapornak, Mezkvesd, Kalocsa, Pcs and Szeged; of the
264 members 87 are priests, 104 are seminarists, 73 are helping brothers and 10
members worked in foreign missions. Their areas of operation included teachingeducation, pastoring, popular missions, building nationwide organisations and, first
of all, press-apostleship.
Their activity of social organisation covered the whole Hungarian Catholic
society and regulated almost all walks of life. Despite their relatively small infrastructure, they performed huge tasks, beginning from the organisation of church
construction at workers colonies to organising peoples colleges and courses
aimed to increase the spiritual and professional knowledge of the holders of micro
and small lands.
Since their establishment, their most important civil organisation the Congregation of Mary70 was built in every period including the period reviewed on
a regional basis corresponding to a strict division of social classes and duties
and intended to integrate the whole Hungarian Catholic society in its efforts.71 Its
members committed with an eternal vow are instructed by a rule of books about
their obligations,72 their virtue exercises and the operation of individual associations. They were expected to prepare annual reports on their cultural and social
activities registered every month and forward it to the Budapest head office of the
nationwide organisation. The head office encouraged every congregation to have
its own home, with a chapel, a meeting hall, a library; they should arrange theatrical performances, popular educational courses, take part in creating jobs and the
dissemination of the media.
70 On its establishment in 1564, its structure, operation and Hungarian history, cf.: Antal Mohl: A Mria-kongregcik trtnete klns tekintettel haznkra. [The history of the Congregations of Mary with particular
attention to our country] Gyr,1898.
71 So for instance, there is a Congregation of Mary for the gentry girls of Miskolc, for the gentlemen of Budapest,
for the small clerks of Budapest, for the girls applied in commerce at Szkesfehrvr, for the ladies of Kolozsvr, for house servants, for universities, for church organisations, secondary schools and scouts, for priests
from 1910 and for the officers of the Royal Hungarian Army from spring 1944.
72 Codification of the principle of authority (section 44 of the book of rules): obedience to God, to the Church, to
superiors. A. Lotz: Prohszka Ottokr hagyatka [The legacy of Ottokr Prohszka] MK Vol. XX/9, May 1927; If
I want to be a loyal son of my Church, an exemplary Catholic, I only have to study the book of rules and will learn
everything even how I should behave at an outing. Love the book of rules! MK Vol. XV/5, January 1922, p. 5.
CEC_konyv.indd 105
105
2016.06.10. 8:36:49
Churches Holocaust
73 Religious periodical. (Religious illustrated monthly from the 21st volume and religious illustrated monthly from
the 22nd volume). A magyarorszgi Mria-kongregcik Kzlnye. Kiadja a Budapesti Jzus Trsasgi Rendhz. [Bulletin of the Congregations of Mary in Hungary. Published by the Budapest House of the Society of
Jesus] Published monthly except for July and August. Edited by: Bla Bangha S.J. (Vol. XIII-XVII and Vol.
XX-XXXIII), Lipt Fiedler S.J. (Vol. XVIII-XIX), Jzsef Vid S.J. (Vol. XXXIV-XXXVII), Lszl Varga S.J. (Vol. XXXVIII) Editorial office and publishers: Budapest VIII.; Columns: Kongregcii let [Congregation life], Hitvdelmi
Csarnok [Religious hall], Hrek [News], Hrek a misszikbl [News from the missions], Szerkeszti zenetek
[Editors messages], Ifjsgi rovat [Youths column], Levelek egy lenykongreganisthoz [Letters to a girl member], Mria-tisztelet [Adoration of Mary], Szz Mria a mvszetben [Virgin Mary in the arts], A leghresebb
Mria-kegyhelyek [The most famous shrines of Mary], rtorony [Watchtower], Klfldi Hrek [Foreign news]
etc. Vol. XIII, 1 special issue, October 1919 Vol. XXXVIII, issue 4, December 1944 (258 issues).
74 MK Vol. XIV/8, April 1921, p. 14.
75 Book indispensable in leading the Congregation: The manual of the Congregation of Mary, The records of the
Congregation of Mary, Log book of council meetings, Log book of the congregation, Virtue sheets, statistics
MK Vol. XXIV/7, March 1931, p. 121; Statistics: The periodical appeared in 18 thousand copies before the war,
now it is only 5,500 copies MK. Vol. XVII/1, 1 September 1923, p. 4.
76 A Mria-kultusz nemzeti tradci. Szlgymy Ferenc eladsa a kongregci dszgylsn. [The cult of Mary
- national tradition. Address by Ferenc Szlgymy at the ceremonial meeting of the congregation] MK Vol. VI
[September 1912 . June 1913] p. 167 (164-167).
106
CEC_konyv.indd 106
2016.06.10. 8:36:49
by gnes Szllssy
The author probably means by that unfortunate trend the introduction of state
registers and the admittance of the Jewish religion in 1895. Since both laws were
adopted despite the veto of the church, the Catholic Church considered their introduction a major violation of its interests and considered they were the completion
of a process started with the emancipation of Jews in 1867. And the weeds obviously was the presence of Jews in Hungarian society. A metaphoric wording is not
alien to the age, its phrases could be easily deciphered by the readers trained on
the political publications of the leading orator of public fights, Ottokr Prohszka,
the bishop of Szkesfehrvr (1858-1927). That church author and orator committed to social issues from its youth, a leading figure of political Catholicism, put the
blame on the Jewish merchant spirit for every trouble of the country in his fervour
to save the nation: we want to prevent that Hungary should be a land of Jews
we want to help good willing Jewry of a national feeling to assimilate to the national
Christian society77
A follower of his and successor in his struggle to save the nation - who was a
generation younger - was the Jesuit monk, Bla Bangha (1880-1940). He blamed
the Jews collectively for our participation in the war, the collapse, the coerced
path taken by internal and foreign policy, and - after the Republic of Councils
and the trauma of Trianon - not only for economic problems but also for Bolshevism, the intensive secularisation following the war and modernity. At variance
from Prohszka he rather emphasised ideological struggle and represented militant Catholicism to the end. Both in their public roles and in front of the Catholic
public, they were committed warriors or even programmers of the politics termed
as Christian-national course.78
When Bla Bangha announced the programme of re-building a Christian Hungary in autumn 1919, he declared his views clearly: Christianity is not only a religion
and an ideology but also a social system. Here we have the best opportunity for
Christianity to show what it can achieve and to take the total reorganisation of the
society in its own hands. Up then, you warriors of the Virgin Mary! Let us lead our
compatriots to the cross and the Motherland will be saved!79
77 Mt Grdonyi: Az antiszemitizmus funkcija Prohszka Ottokr s Bangha Bla trsadalom- s egyhzkpben. [The function of anti-Semitism in the image of society and church by Ottokr Prohszka and Bla Bangha] in: Judit Molnr (ed.). A holokauszt Magyarorszgon eurpai perspektvban. [The Holocaust in Hungary
in a European perspective]. Balassi, Budapest, 2005, 193-204 (195-196). On the role of Prohszka, see also
Krisztin Ungvry: rtelmisg s antiszemita kzbeszd [Intellectuals and the anti-Semitic public discourse],
Beszl 2001/6.
78 Mt Grdonyi, op.cit and the same: A keresztny kurzus programja Bangha Blnl. [The programme of the
Christian course with Bla Bangha] Studia Wespremiensia Vol. IX, 2007, pp. 25-36.
79 MK Vol. XIII, special issue, October 1919, p. 16.
CEC_konyv.indd 107
107
2016.06.10. 8:36:49
Churches Holocaust
The motto: Those who do not listen to the Mother Church should be pagans
and publicans to you was outlined in every issue of MK; to be interpreted: as unrepentant in sin, the lowest of the low in society and despised among people.
Bangha considered Christian anti-Semitism a correct and necessary attitude,80
and considered the doctrine of Hungarian national superiority based on the racial
theory and termed new-paganism to be a competitor of Christian anti-Semitism.81
I deem it necessary to strongly outline the unfortunate un-Christian and pagan features, fluctuations and cults that have gained momentum in many university
movements, associations and societies - in student groups deemed to be Christian
- mostly over the past few years. A racial idea, the protection of the race, nationalism or national awakening: they are all excellent but if they are disconnected from
Gods idea and the Catholic Christian religious ideology, they will be paganism in the
fullest sense of the word, whatever nice cloak they appear in. Nationalism and
Catholicism are contrasted with unbelievable frivolity and ignorance, and a daring
phraseology is used to draw the most superficial and most shameful consequence,
i.e., Catholicism is an enemy of the Hungarian national and racial idea.82
For the same reason he published - already in November 1934 - a dramatic
report on the persecution of the church by the Nazi dictatorship.83 But in the next
issue of December 1934, he comments the burning of books in Germany with concord: Many believe it is a comedy, a silly idea, the frivolous bragging of petty
bourgeoisie drunken on power and its own strength. () We do not think it is a comedy even if many authors worth burning were left on the list of the non-dangerous,
and even more books worth for the stake were forgotten on bookshelves because
there are indeed works and authors that have a murderous impact on the state, the
nation, the race, the morals, the faith and decency and those who are responsible
for guiding and protecting others have a serious obligation and duty to defend not
only the uncritical masses but everybody from them. That is why burning books is
not a comedy, it is something with which Hitler sent the world an unusual warning
that cannot be deemed modern but it is, certainly, effective.84
80 To be anti- Semitic or an anti-Communist are correct things, but they are not Christianity yet. A nagy breds
[The big awakening]
(-) MK Vol. XIII/2k. November 1919, p. 2.
81 cf.: Aladr Krger: Turn h, jjjetek! [Turan is calling, come along!] MK Vol. XVIII/6, February 1925, p. 5.
82 Dr Antal Lotz: Az Egyetemi Mria Kongregci hivatsa. [The mission of the University Congregation of Mary]
MK Vol. XVIII/1, September 1924, pp. 4-6 (5-6).
83 Sndor Meszlnyi (Salzburg): A horogkereszt alatt. [Under the swastika] MK Vol. XVIII/3, November 1934,
pp. 4-6.
84 Jzsef P. Vid S.J.: g knyvek vilgnl. [At the light of burning books] MK Vol. XXVIII/4, December 1934,
pp. 4-5.
108
CEC_konyv.indd 108
2016.06.10. 8:36:49
by gnes Szllssy
The Christian union required to re-build a Christian Hungary was only manifest
in phraseology: from a practical perspective, Catholics and Protestants must
cooperate. And mainly for two reasons. Firstly, because one by one and divided
we would be too weak against destruction, the Jewry and the organised army of
social democrats, their attacks and encirclement. The Christian socialist workers
organisations, for instance, can hardly take up fight against the red flood engulfing
everything. () With regard to the media, our Christian papers can only break the
ice against the Jewish media if they unite their forces in the field of the press to
protect their joint political and economic interests. () That union cannot relate to
issues of faith and church discipline.85
Later on, however, MK speaks about Protestants in the tone of sometimes
competition and sometimes resentment or even anger: We have found that the
Catholics fate is poor these days. Although the ratio of Catholics and Calvinists
is 62% to 21% even in the truncated Hungary, a disproportionately higher number of the followers of the Reformed Church receive high positions. Catholics can
hardly make a move while Protestants are noisy to complain about their alleged
grievances.86
In his editorial, Bla Bangha speaks about the adoration of Mary and condemns
the pessimism of Protestants.87 Uncle Laci huff and puff in an indignant and sarcastic voice that the followers of the Reformed Church are in the lead everywhere,88 the
editor publishes drafts of apology dialogues separately for boys and girls to provoke
debates with their Protestant friends about the adoration of Mary,89 and there is a
competition for the missions too: we have to use all our power to prevent Protestantism from overtaking us in the conquest of land and to ensure the Church of Christ
the place among pagans that is its due for its divine origin and eternal truth.90
Speaking of mixed marriages, it uses the verbal phraseology of the counterreformation: Those who enter into a mixed marriage, or are willing to convert to the
Lutheran faith for their spouses, to marry in a Lutheran Church demonstrate a soul
that will not recoil from even the gravest sin. Rejecting the true religion is one of the
most serious sins we can hardly believe it can be committed by a member of the
congregation.91
85
86
87
88
89
90
91
Christian and Catholic movements. (-). MK Vol. XIII/8-9, May-June 1920, pp. 4-7 (5).
MK Vol. XV/3, November 1921, p. 10.
MK Vol. XIV/8, April 1921, pp. 2-4.
MK Vol. XVII/1, September 1923, pp. 11-12.
MK Vol. XVIII/2, October 1924, pp. 12-13.
(letter from China) MK Vol. XXI/8, April 1928, p. 128.
(-) Editors messages: MK Vol. XX/6, 1927, pp. 17-18.
CEC_konyv.indd 109
109
2016.06.10. 8:36:49
Churches Holocaust
Why does not the Church issue a ban on mixed marriages without reversals?
Because it assumes two things of the Catholic party: 1/ he or she is not committed to religious neutrality according to which every religion is equally good
(Baptist, Pentecostal, Unitarian, etc.), 2/ he/she assumes the Catholic party is
convinced his or her religion is the only true one, loves his or her future children
honestly and is not so heartless or unchaste in his or her soul to throw them to a
denomination that - according to his or her conviction - would lead the children
to false paths in religion, the most important question of life. So those that are
shocked on reversals are either indifferent to the religion, godless or heartless or
cruel to their children.92
Influencing the hearts was not neglected either: a short story entitled A false
step by Mria Blask, an author of sentimental short stories, didactic plays and
childrens books is a real Catholic thriller: a child born into a mixed marriage and
baptised to be Protestant dies in the cradle, while the other members of the family
perish as well. 93
By emphasising the superiority of Catholicism, Bangha does not only hinder
the cooperation of Protestants and Catholics supportive of the politics of the national course, but he is unable to collaborate with the other Catholic movements of
organisations either. In answer to a readers question, he wrote - intentionally misunderstanding the question (and so overreacting and feeling insulted with reason):
The congregation may not be organically subordinated to any other association
(e.g., Altar Society), because it is an independent church body, what is more, a high
body approved by the Pope, and according to CIC 723 it should not be aggregated
into another dependent organisation.94
Bangha is trying to object, but in the end he has to acknowledge he cannot
avoid contact with the movement Actio Catholica (AC) established on the initiative
of Pius XI. He allows Zsigmond Mihalovics, the national director of AC to publish in
his paper a call for the general mobilisation of lay people. Although AC only wants
to set up its organisations at the parishes of the diocese, it also wants to be an elite
team such as the congregations of Bangha.95
A militant protection of the faith and a call for leadership appears in the paper
in new genres. Civil movements had already arranged mass performances of artistic expression in the first decades of the century to transfer and learn the ideology
92
93
94
95
110
CEC_konyv.indd 110
2016.06.10. 8:36:49
by gnes Szllssy
eventfully, and to promote the community forming power of similar thoughts and
emotions by communicating them expressively.
The obligatory drawings by Lajos Mrton are replaced by art-deco typography
and graphics, with a totalitarian vision on the front page: masses march in orderly
rows in the rising sun towards a unified Christ-Mary emblem; inside, there is type
setting typical of dailies, differentiated font size, columns and textboxes, military
commands between lines, rhymes of an apologetic content with several verses to
increase confidence for reciting in chorus or for private use. The refrain: I am a
Catholic boy! ... and I want to win, to win, to win! () my faith is the only one to save,
the only true and holy one.96 is encouragement to occupy key positions for forming
others opinions. we are fighting for the millions of souls and the huge enemy
camp threatening the church of Christ is working with trained and fanatic leaders
and we can only confront them using similar weapons97
Hungary must become an exemplary state through the collaboration of Church
and state, because it is impossible that in the country of Mary the power of the state
and that of the church of Christ cannot show mutual respect! The empire of Mary
surrounded by the Carpathians must victoriously advertise the rule of the national
spirit and soul above the different peoples, races and languages!98
Following the re-annexation of Northern-Transylvania, there is no doubt what
is the mission of the Hungarian nation by God based on the principle of Regnum
Marianum? It must be the role model country for Christian morals, the role model for
jurisdiction, the role model for social justice, the role model for religious tolerance
and efforts for religious homogeneity, the role model of the collaboration of church
and state, the role model of the brotherly community of peoples with different languages and cultures and the roles model for national independence.99
It is an accidental coincidence, but the voice of self-conceit assured in its victory appeared in the days of the pogrom to become known as the jvidk blood
shed: We are soldiers, the new soldiers of the eternal fight of new times. () Where
we appear on the plane of love with the parachute of meekness, songs, flowers,
sunshine and spring will be our alleys. () Brothers! We are fighting for life.100
96
97
98
99
CEC_konyv.indd 111
111
2016.06.10. 8:36:49
Churches Holocaust
At the beginning of the period reviewed, MK was inciting against the Jews without regard to content or context in the most diverse genres and styles. The editorin-chief Bla Bangha was probably the author of writings published anonymously.101
Let us have a lengthier quotation personally by Bangha: Jesus is alive among us
today but his enemies are also alive. The Passion did not cease to be, it is still
continued today. The name of the murderers of Christ is different today ... but their
role is the same, their arms are the same and their military tactics have not changed.
That which is called Caiaphas in the Gospel; the synagogue is still here today and
it is fighting against Christ with not less anger than at that time, with a difference
that it has taken a different name now and it is hidden by the seemingly innocent
names of democracy, liberalism or freemasonry. However, its banners still
wear the words: Death to Jesus of Nazareth: to his memory, to his person, to his
teachings, to his institutions, to his church and his followers! Let us tear him from
the earth of the living and let his name not be mentioned any longer. (Jer. II.19.)
As 2,000 years ago, also today, he is surrounded by the scribes: the rationalists,
the free thinkers, the atheists; the Sadducees are also here the philosophers
of materialism, the adoration of earth and blood; and then here is Herod, the
incestuous tyrant, ... with a whole army of people drowned into sensual pleasures
living only for their lecherous desires for whom - as the apostle says - their bellies
is their God. We have here this army around us: journalists, authors of novels, film
makers, playwrights and the whole legion of bohemians who ridicule Christ and his
servants rudely in the media, in novels, in the theatre, on the film or in painting; they
throw mud at him. () We should not act as the disciples who like Saint Peter
at the time of the martyrdom of Christ liked to get warm at the fire in the court of
the enemies of Christ and was terribly scared that two sharp-tongued servants of
Caiaphas - public opinion and the media - will say to them Well, you also are with
Jesus of Galilee, are you also a clerical?.102
Reviewing all issues of 25 volumes of MK, it can be stated that threats of the
aggression of the Jews were reduced in time just as the ridicule of Jewish women
or a generalising high-handed contempt of the Jewish morality. Side by side with
collectively condemning the Jews, positive evaluation of individual people or groups
occurs relatively frequently. Part of them are narcissist descriptions of the compas101 A keresztny sajt diadaltja (-) [The triumph of the Christian press (-)] MK Vol. XIII/2, November 1919, pp.
7-8; A kongregci s az erklcstelen divat (-) [The congregation and immoral fashions (-)] MK Vol. XIV/7,
March 1921, pp. 4-5; A kongreganistk s az olvasmny (-) [Congregationists and readings] MK Vol. XIV/10,
June 1921, pp. 1-4 (3, 4); az erklcstelen tnc Laci bcsi [Jmbor Lszl S.J.]: Levelek egy lenykongreganisthoz. [The immoral dance by Uncle Laci (Lszl Jmbor S. J.): Letters to a girl-congregationist] MK Vol.
XV/5, January 1922, pp. 12-13 (13); a zsid sajt jrszt keresztny pnzen irtja a keresztnysget? (-) [...
do the Jewish media eradicate Christianity using mostly Christian money] MK Vol. XVI/10, June 1923, p. 5.;
A vilgi apostolkods intzmnyes mvelse a kongregciban (-) [The institutional operation of lay apostolate
in the congregation] MK Vol. XX/6, February 1927, pp. 4-6 (6).
102 Bla Bangha S.J.: Krisztus kirlysga a XX. szzadban. [The Kingdom of Christ in the 20th century] MK Vol.
XXIII/2, October 1929, pp. 21-23 (22-23).
112
CEC_konyv.indd 112
2016.06.10. 8:36:49
by gnes Szllssy
sion of Christians trying to hide the ignorance, misery or clumsiness of the poor
Jew;103 while most of them are about the bitter truth of comparing them to indifferent, uneducated Catholics who have lost their religion and moan in their impotence.
Monks with a more alert conscience first accused themselves, their followers
or the thinking of patrons and the high clergy impatiently at the beginning, then
they had to acknowledge the impossibility of achieving their goals the edge of
anti-Semitism remains but it is getting duller:
love must begin with the brother. Out in the big world those who follow
identical goals always keep together; you cannot imagine stronger union and mutual
support then the assistance provided by freemasons, Jews and socialists to each
other. What they are doing out of interest, we Congregationalists should do to each
other out of a nobler reason?104
The importance of Christian socialism is voiced at every assembly of the
Congregationalists, still it is suffering lacking material and moral support. In my village, we had to let go the members organised with so much difficulty, because
there was not anybody to act as secretary. Congregationalists in the Casino playing
billiards! You are responsible for the souls who go astray in this way! We should
learn from the freemasons! With them every lodge has its own task. One of them
supported the Galilei Group with all its power, another one was poisoning the soul of
primary school teachers by subscribing on their behalf to Vilg, the third one was
working on establishing contacts abroad, the fourth kept alive anti-militarist ideas,
etc. () we can do nothing without organisation and united work. Our forces will
be divided if everybody is engaged in everything. That is the reason why Regnum
Marianum, 66% Catholicism cannot be seen in this country.105
One of the clearest and bravest analyses is by a lay author:
Our community has a major drawback - indifference to scientific and art propaganda. If you take the trouble to observe the audience of a concert in a major city
103 Jzsef Hitter S.J.: Mit olvassak? [What shall I read?] MK Vol. XXII/4, December 1928, p. 64; A zsid fi
gynsa. Lenoir Louis, ft. tbori lelksz feljegyzseibl fordtotta Benz-Csky Ilona [The confession of a Jewish boy. Translated from the notes of Lenoir Louis, chaplain by Ilona Benz-Csky]. MK Vol. XVI/5, January
1923, pp. 8-9; a szegedi ifjmunks Mria Kongregciba jobbrzs zsid fi hiba kri felvtelt [a
Jewish boy of benevolence asked in vain to be admitted into the Congregation of Mary of young workers
at Szeged] MK Vol. XVI/6, February 1923, p. 14; pkhendi kongreganista fiatalember a vonaton ktekedik,
fenyegetzik hrom szegny Juda-ivadkkal. [an insolent congregational youth is bantering and threatening
three poor descendants of Juda on the train] MK Vol. XXI/10, June 1928, p. 151.
104 A testvri szeretet polsa a kongregciban (-) [Brotherly love in the congregation (-)] MK Vol. XVI/9, May
1923, pp. 4-5 (4).
105 Alexius: Vilgi apostolkods. [Lay apostolates] MK Vol. XXI/3, November 1927, pp. 45-46 (45).
CEC_konyv.indd 113
113
2016.06.10. 8:36:50
Churches Holocaust
you will find that the denominational ratio of those present is usually opposite to that
of the population. The Jewish community is represented the strongest, followed by
the Protestants and Catholics, who are the majority of the population, only come
at the end. And approximately the same is true with regard to supporting sciences.
Readings, lectures, scientists or artists usually cannot rely on mass interest on our
part even by those who are in the crowd at every popular meeting with their political
competence (?) The real reason is the lack of proper interest. There is an indifference to culture our community has been lulled into by the way of thinking of patrons
and the high clergy in the field of church matters, and parallel to that, it has made
us give up having demands in the area of the arts and shouldering moral and mostly
material obligations to promote them.106
It is interesting how much the Jews and even the Protestants are more selfconscious: they will not examine if this or that paper fully satisfies their individual
taste but if the paper is defending their stance, they will stick to it to the end; otherwise they make up a front against it. When shall we Catholics be as smart and tightly
knit as those sitting on the other bank?107
106 Dr Istvn Muntyn: Mit tehetnek a kongregcik a katolikus kultra vdelmben? [What can congregations
do to protect Catholic culture?] MK Vol. XXI/4,.December 1927, pp. 53-54.
107 Az rtoronybl (-) [From the Watchtower (-)] MK Vol. XXV/5, January 1932, p. 70.
108 Szocilis klub. [social club] Lszl Varga S.J.: Vol. XXVIII/2, October 1934, pp. 8-10.
109 Gyula Tornyos S.J.: Dolgozzl! [Do your work!] MK Vol. XXX/2, October 1936, pp. 15-16 (16.)
114
CEC_konyv.indd 114
2016.06.10. 8:36:50
by gnes Szllssy
I am not a friend of the Jews. The Jewish issue needs to be settled. On the
other hand, I cannot see clearly whether it is correct from a Hungarian and Christian
perspective that a Jewish boy who is more excellent than most Christians is humiliated in our class without any personal reasons? Is it reconcilable with the taste of
a gentleman what my brother who is a university student told me: in one morning
somebody announced loudly in the crowded hall of the university that Jewish boys
should retire to the last row? () No. This cannot be reconciled with the noble
taste and Christian spirit of true Hungarians. There are more serious conditions of
solving the Jewish issue in life: studying and ambitious work. That is how you must
overcome the Jews. The other is just a comfortable lie and self-deception. And
maybe a cheap opportunity to become popular in the eyes of paltry people.110
110 (-) Hitvdelmi levlszekrny [Religious letter box] MK Vol. XXXIII/7, March 1940, p. 22.
111 More in detail on this, cf.: Molnr Sndorn dr. Erzsbet Szolnoky: Hallfogytiglan letre tlve. Szocilis
tevkenysg szerzetesrendek. [Condemned to life until death. Religious orders of welfare operations] Novadat, Gyr, 1991.
CEC_konyv.indd 115
115
2016.06.10. 8:36:50
Churches Holocaust
their living in cash directly forwarded to the order. They covered the expenses of
their community from the dowry of wealthier members, from tuition fees in higher
schools for girls and from donations. They have devoted their life to the service of
their fellowmen in need. Except for the Social Mission Society (S.M.) and the Society of Social Sisters (S.S.S.) they did not deal with politics or public affairs at all.
The former was established in 1908 promoted and supported by Ottokr Prohszka
to enforce modern church social teaching. Prohszka recognised that his ambition,
the reconstruction of a Christian and national Hungary, the ascent of a glorious
ideology cannot be hoped without social reforms targeting the whole society and
the social responsibility taken by women, therefore - in contrast with the conservative, anti-modernist paradigm of the world church - he supported within the church
the issue of womens social responsibility, self-organisation and interest representation by baptising the secular emancipation movements of women. Members of the
Society who believed that the material elements of a nuns life: the discipline of a
cloister, the rigid regulations of the life of the community, the differentiating clothes
of the order and the ban on public participation in political life would hinder their
work of shaping society quit the order in 1923 and - while keeping their religious
vows - stepped out into the world reinforced with a Benedictine spirit. Many of them
earned the money required for their start by working abroad for several years. They
did not operate a house of the order, the members made their living engaged in
salaried jobs and the members had to pay pension insurance. Their financial independence was the token of the freedom of their conscience and the only way to
avoid being vulnerable. They spent the donations on helping the poor and to cover
the expenses of their welfare and educational work. They adapted their lifestyle to
the life and time management of working women including their social, teaching or
organisational work. Their leader, Margit Slachta was a Member of Parliament in
1920-1921 representing the Christian National Unity Party, then she was an apostle
of the Christian revival of political life. Led by her they fought without compromise
against the ideas of national socialism, the war and all kinds of discrimination; they
represented a Christian-social idea based on the values of Christ and they emphasised the personal responsibility of Christians for the fate of those persecuted at
every time and in every situation.
Beloved Sister! Do you want double divine help for your beloved ones
among the perils? Accept in your heart the fate of others particularly of those who
are difficult to accept in your heart in that way Accept in your heart a person in a
labour camp who has been excluded from the community of brothers by the spirit
of the age. Be brave enough in these perilous times to expel indifference, the lack
of love and hate from your heart, be brave enough to recognise as your sister that
other mother and her son in the depth of your heart, be brave enough to adopt her
pain and help carry her cross And be brave enough to act. Be brave enough to
116
CEC_konyv.indd 116
2016.06.10. 8:36:50
by gnes Szllssy
ask and urge a relative who is commander of a labour camp to be a superior to those
controlled by him he would like to have for his son in the front line or in the captivity
of the enemy. Tell him the eternal words of Christ: the measure you use will be used
on you in return. The Lord will act like this. He will strike or have mercy, spare or
turn away as you are pitying or cruel112 Their monthly the Word of the Soul was
banned on 15 April 1944.
These womens orders placed themselves under the organisational or spiritual
leadership either of some male order or under the personal spiritual guidance of a
member partly to have their regulations accepted and party to shape their spiritual
and religious life and their service. There were several orders, societies and associations termed in the church nomenclature congregatio religiosa that were established encouraged and initiated by one or another committed monk with a strong
social conscience. They worked under the spiritual leadership of the Benedictines
(the Social Mission Society, the Society of Social Sisters and the Society of the
Daughters of Saint Benedict), the Franciscans (the nuns of Saint Elisabeth, the
Franciscan Marys Missionary Sisters, the Daughters of Saint Francis of Assisi and
the Sisters Caring for the Poor) and the Jesuits (the Society of the Virgin Mary, the
Society of the Heart of Jesus or the Daughters of the Heart of Jesus) and several
civil social associations organised on a religious basis (KALOT, JOC). Such relationships of the religious orders were characterised by mutual assistance to each other.
Only a few orders operating with missionary commitment and engaged in social educational teaching or organisational work, such as the Social Mission Association and the Social Sisters Society dealt seriously with the publication of the
media. The rest were mostly small religious publications appearing in a low number,
occasional prayer sheets, brochures, bulletins, newsletters or school yearbooks
with the function of internal information, spiritual leadership, reinforcement of the
community and dissemination of religious, church and order historical knowledge.
Out of them the bulletin of the Salesians of Don Bosco has been selected for the
purposes of this study.
The Salesians of Don Bosco (S.D.B.) have been active in Hungary since
1901. They regard it as their mission to save orphaned, poor or endangered boys
providing them with training and helping poor worker families. In the period reviewed, they operated an orphanage in buda from 1920, a Boys School and
Printing House at Rkospalota from 1924, a boys educational institute and vocational school at Esztergom-tbor from 1925, boys educational homes in jpest and
Visegrd from 1927, vocational school and boarding school in Szombathely from
112 Quoted from the New Year Letter of Sister Marguerite 1 January 1943. A Llek Szava [The word of the soul]
1943/1, pp. 3-4.
CEC_konyv.indd 117
117
2016.06.10. 8:36:50
Churches Holocaust
1929, and a secondary school boarding house in Gyula from 1932. In 1933, they
had 123 members of the order who had taken the vow in 9 institutes including 36
priests, while the number of Novices was 20.113 When it was dissolved in 1950, the
Salesian order in Hungary had 250 members.
Their newsletter the Bulletin of the Don Bosco Salesian Works Salesian Digest114 mainly reported on the events of child care and child rescue, the life of the
order and the Salesian institutes.
No anti-Semitic statements, remarks or indications were found in any of their
publications.
118
CEC_konyv.indd 118
2016.06.10. 8:36:50
Zoltn Erds
CEC_konyv.indd 119
119
2016.06.10. 8:36:51
Churches Holocaust
tians had much less capital and practice, so Jews were able to hold on to their
positions for the time being, although they slipped down on the list of the largest
taxpayers of the given county.3
The numerus clausus Act adopted in September 1920 had similarly lopsided
consequences. Though disputes over compliance with the Act led to regular student movements and disturbances and the anti-Semitic press regularly accused
the university of circumventing the law, its impact was barely felt at the time, as
Jews in white-collar careers were not suppressed.4 The Zionist association of Pcs
launched trade courses for those who were unable to enrol in university due to the
numerus clausus.5
In parallel with this, the number of Jews declined significantly in all cities of the
region. In Pcs, the ratio of the Jewish community compared to the total population
decreased to 5.5 per cent in the course of two decades, and their number decreased by over 250 persons in absolute terms. Many decided to test their fortunes
in larger cities due to economic difficulties, and the willingness to have children
faded after the 1920s.6 In addition, assimilation picked up speed: after the 1920s,
conversion to Christianity became massive in Tolna County, while there are only
a few examples known of conversion to Judaism, most of these justified by family
reasons.7
In spite of this, however, the internal life of Jews in Southern Transdanubia may
be described as well-functioning stable communities, a high standard of education,
solidarity, and the continuation of traditional forms of giving help. A Chevra Kadisha (Holy Society) was set up in each synagogue, with Israelite peoples schools,
Talmud societies and Talmud schools operated in a number of towns. Charity and
patient assistance societies and hospices serviced those in need of care, and the
forms of supporting deprived students also functioned well.8
However, the individual Jewish communities and organisations were unable
to set up a joint forum. During the final days of Serbian occupation, the Zionist Society of Pcs launched two newspapers, which survived only a few issues. In the
early 1930s, the Pcs synagogue made two attempts to launch a newspaper. The
3 RADNTI 2007, pp. 292-295 SZILGYI-SCHWEITZER 1991, pp. 62-66
4 SZILGYI, pp. 1994-95 The ratio of Jewish university students began to decrease already before World War I.
GYURGYK 2001, pp. 195-196 This, of course, does not alter the fact that several excellent representatives of
the intelligentsia left Hungary due to the Act. SZILGYI-SCHWEITZER 1991, pp. 70
5 Appeal to Jewish college students. D, year 11, issue no. 75 (2 April 1921), p. 3
6 For Pcs: VRS 2004, p. 47 for Sikls: RADNTI 2007, p. 291 for Mohcs: RADNTI 2012, p. 150 BRAHAM
1988.I., pp. 67-68
7 RADNTI 2012, pp. 160-161 SZILGYI-SCHWEITZER 1991, pp. 74-77
8 SZILGYI 1994-95, pp. 245-247 RADNTI 2007, pp. 311-317
120
CEC_konyv.indd 120
2016.06.10. 8:36:51
by Zoltn Erds
only newspaper that lasted somewhat longer was the Ifjsgi rtest (Youth Bulletin) published between November 1936 and July 1939. The last time the Jewish
community of Pcs attempted to launch its own newspaper was in June 1939.9
Thus, members of the Jewish communities either subscribed to national magazines
or quite many of them, it appears to the Christian newspaper called Dunntl
(Transdanubia).
Jews became accepted and were even equal members of the local communities, despite the recurring friction and the undeniable anti-Semitism that existed.
A good example for this is that during World War I, the Israelite school of Sikls
accepted Christian pupils as well, while the Lutheran grammar school at Bonyhd
exempted Jewish pupils from tests to be taken on Saturdays.10 The Jzsef Kiss night
held in Pcs also goes to demonstrate the Jewrys social status, as the event was
held in the grand hall of Hotel Pannonia, a highly impressive central location, for
charity purposes, and participants represented the citys lite intelligentsia.11
Jews took an active part in societies and social exchanges, while synagogues
urged members to adopt the Hungarian ways in several places. The shifting of focus
on the Hungarian language rather than German can be seen clearly after the middle
of the 19th century: teachers were required to speak excellent Hungarian and to
teach in the Hungarian spirit. In addition to language use, the frequent Magyarization of names also testify a strengthening of national consciousness.12
However, relations were far from unperturbed; news on conflicts ending in
physical violence and street atrocities occurred regularly from the early 1920s. The
first big clash took place in June 1922, when a group of young Jews got into a fight
with some local members of bred Magyarok Egyeslete (Society of Awakening
Hungarians) at the Statr in Pcs.13 A similar incident took place in Mohcs in January 1923,14 followed by individual clashes in Sikls and Szigetvr later on.15 Late in
9 SURJN 1992.
10 RADNTI 2007, pp. 317-318 SZILGYI 1994-95, P. 247
11 A pcsi izraelita negylet Kiss Jzsef estje.(Jzsef Kiss night of the Israelite womens association of Pcs) D,
year 12, issue no. 18 (22 January 1922) p. 5
12 SZILGYI-SCHWEITZER 1991, pp. 74-77
13 bred zsidsg vagy zsid breds (Awakening Jewry or Jewish awakening). PE, year 17, issue no. 127 (7
June 1922) p. 1
14 Mohcson szombaton megvertk a zsidkat (Jews beaten in Mohcs on Saturday). PE, year 18, issue no. 5 (9
January 1923) p. 1 Csendlet Mohcson (Still life in Mohcs), PE, year 18, issue no. 7 (11 January 1923) p.
2 A bicska (The penknife). Mohcsi Hrlap, year 13, issue no. 2 (14 January 1923) p. 4
15 Siklson zsid-bredk garzdlkodnak (Awakening Jews vandalising Sikls). PE, year 18, issue no. 55 (9
March 1923) p. 2 A szigetvri jszaka zsid bredi (Awakening Jews of the Szigetvr night). PE, year 18,
issue no. 181 (11 August 1923) p. 2 Az jszaka rejtelmei. Orszgos botrnny ntt a szigetvri felforduls.
(Mysteries of the night. Pandemonium in Szigetvr escalates into national scandal) Szigetvr, year 2, issue no.
32 (12 August 1923) pp. 1-2
CEC_konyv.indd 121
121
2016.06.10. 8:36:51
Churches Holocaust
May 1924, in the heat of the battles around numerus clausus, two groups launched
a coordinated attack on entertainment locations frequented by young Jews as well
in Pcs.16
The early 1930s brought a substantial change in the Jewrys situation. The
economic crisis, followed by the Nazis coming into power, intensified the anti-Semitic feelings that have existed earlier; it is no coincidence that there were smaller or
larger atrocities against Jews taking place on a regular basis, and not just in connection with numerus clausus. In July 1930, the garden and mortuary of the Israelite
graveyard of Pcs were forced open.17 Early in 1934, unknown perpetrators stuck
yellow spots and signs on shops in Jewish ownership, broke in shop windows and
pulled down shop signs several times. 18 On another occasion, the windows of the
hospice house of the womens association were broken in.19
The systemic discrimination and oppression of the Jews started in the late
1930s with the adoption of the anti-Jewish Acts.20 The 1st Act stipulated that the
proportion of Jews in liberal professions and in trading, finance and industrial companies may not exceed 20 per cent on a religious basis. The 2nd anti-Jewish Act
reduced this quota to six per cent, and already on a racial basis, excluded Jews
from public administration and justice, and stipulated that Jews were not allowed
to trade with products subject to state monopoly (such as tobacco, alcohol, salt,
petroleum).21 In the autumn of 1940, local administrative decrees prohibited sales
by Jews of Pcs and of Baranya County in national fairs.22 However, the Christian
16 jabb ifjsgi zavargsok (New disturbances by youth). D, year 14, issue no. 125 (1 June 1924) p. 3
17 Betrk a temetben. Kifosztottk az izr. temet ravatalozjt (Burglars in the graveyard: Mortuary of the Isr.
graveyard looted). D, year 20, issue no. 150 (5 July 1930) p. 3 Pntekre virrad jszaka betrtek az izr.
temet ravataloz termbe (Mortuary of Isr. graveyard broken into Thursday night). Pcsi Napl, year 39, issue
no. 150 (5 July 1930) p. 3
18 Srga folttal ragasztottk tele tegnap a pcsi zsidk zleteit (Shops of Pcs Jews labelled with yellow spots
yesterday). D, year 24, issue no. 1 (3 January 1934) p. 3 A pcsi zsid hitkzsg feljelentse ismeretlen
rpcdula ragasztk ellen (Synagogue of Pcs files complaint against unknown persons for posting flyers). D,
year 24, issue no. 16 (21 January 1934) p. 8 Antiszemita izgats Pcsett. Az elmlt jjel zsid felirat cdulkkal ragasztottk be egyes zletek kirakatait (Anti-semitic incitement in Pcs. Windows of certain shops were
labelled with flyers saying Jew last night). D, year 24, issue no. 66 (23 March 1934) p. 2
19 Bevertk az Izraelita Negylet szeretethznak ablakait (Windows of Israelite womens associations hospice
broken). Pcsi Napl, year 43, issue no. 16 (21 January 1934) p. 8
20 On anti-Jewish Acts and their local impact in detail: RADNTI 2007, pp. 296-299 SZILGYI-SCHWEITZER 1991,
p. 63
21 Bevonjk a pcsi s baranyai zsid italmrsi engedlyeket (Drink sales licences of Jews in Pcs and Baranya
withdrawn). D, year 29, issue no. 221 (27 September 1939) p. 5
22 Kitiltottk a zsid rusokat a pcsi orszgos vsrokrl, piacokrl s bcskrl (Jewish sellers banned from
national fairs, markets and saints days fairs held in Pcs). D, year 30, issue no. 237 (17 October 1940) p.
4 Kzfogyasztsi rk forgalomba hozatalban csak arnyszm szerint vehetnek rszt a zsidk (Jews may
take part in the distribution of goods for public consumption only on a pro rata basis). D, year 30, issue no.
239 (19 October 1940) p. 2 November 20-tl kezdden a baranyai vsrokon, piacokon s bcskon sem
rusthatnak a zsid rusok (Jewish sellers may not trade in fairs, markets and saints days fairs held in Baranya
County as of 20 November). D, year 30, issue no. 261 (16 November 1940) p. 6
122
CEC_konyv.indd 122
2016.06.10. 8:36:51
by Zoltn Erds
traders who took their places had neither the appropriate capitals nor the contact
network, so popular articles were often difficult to purchase, and several small settlements suffered from a shortage of goods. For this reasons, the authorities put up
with Jewish traders as resellers for a while.
In parallel with this, the acquisition of land by Jews was made more difficult,
and they had to report land already in their ownership,23 and in 1942, a bill was
enacted on the forcible acquisition of Jewish landholding. Although demand for the
confiscated estates was not high in Pcs at the time, Christians tried to purchase
manifold the quantity of land available in Mohcs.24 Concurrently with the restrictions applicable to them in economy, Jews were deprived of their political clout as
well. Based on the 2nd anti-Jewish Act, Jewish members of judiciary committees
had to be expelled; the judiciary bodies of the county and of Pcs city carried this
out in August 1939, which was followed by the purification of the assemblies of
villages as well.25
Exclusion of the Jews from social life became full-fledged after 1941. As a racial law, the 3rd anti-Jewish Act prohibited marriage between Jews and non-Jews,
and punished sexual relations as racial blasphemy. In response to the increasing pressure from Germany and demands of the extreme right, laws discriminating
against Jews were adopted one after the other in the course of 1942. First, the
Israelite church was degraded into a recognised church, then Jews who were to be
drafted were relieved from armed service, and the institution of labour service was
created.26 Mohcs became the regional distribution centre for the distribution of
labour service draftees, obliged to wear a yellow armlet.27
In financial terms, the Jewish traders and industry craftsmen who gradually
lost their existence drifted to the periphery of their local communities, although they
retained their earlier connections in most settlements. For instance, at the end of
1939, three respected members of the local Israelite community were elected as
council members of the Air Defence League set up in Sikls.28 However, the se23 Pcsett is be kell jelenteni a zsid tulajdonban lv mezgazdasgi ingatlanokat (Agricultural property in Jewish ownership in Pcs to be reported as well). D, year 29, issue no. 223 (29 September 1939) p. 3
24 185 pcsi fldingatlanra 135 ignyl jelentkezett (135 claimants for 185 land properties in Pcs). D, year 29.
issue no. 288 (19 December 1939) p. 5 A mohcsi 400 hold zsid birtokra 800 ignyl jelentkezett (800
claimants for 400 acres of Jewish land). D, year 30, issue no. 7 (11 January 1940) p. 5 Baranyban 6.899
hold zsidbirtokot rtak ssze (6,899 acres of Jewish land registered in Baranya County). D, year 30, issue no.
80 (10 April 1940) p. 3 Eddig 1500 hold zsid birtokot vontak eljrs al Baranyban (1,500 acres of Jewish
land subject to proceedings in Baranya County to date). D, year 30, issue no. 221 (28 September 1940) p. 5
25 Trltk a zsid virilistkat a pcsi vrosi bizottsgi tagok sorbl (Jewish virilists deleted from roster of city
committee members of Pcs). D, year 29, issue no. 203 (5 September 1939) p. 4
26 GYURGYK 2001, pp. 162-165, 171.
27 On the organisation of labour service: BRAHAM 1988.I. pp. 238-294 GONDA 1992, pp. 214-219
28 RADNTI 2007, p. 299
CEC_konyv.indd 123
123
2016.06.10. 8:36:51
Churches Holocaust
ries of atrocities made the atmosphere increasingly unbearable: in March 1941, the
Pcs hospice buildings windows were broken in, and an attack of vandalism struck
the graveyard of Mgocs in August 1943.29
Orders concerning Jews were adopted practically incessantly after the German occupation. It became immediately obligatory to wear the yellow star of David,
then, on 14 April 1944, the requirement was introduced to report the assets of Jews
and to foreclose those assets; by the end of the month, 230 shops were foreclosed
in Pcs. In parallel with this, the origin of city employees was reviewed, and soon,
the bar association cancelled the membership of Jewish attorneys-at-law. During
the same weeks, food rations for Jews were also reduced.30
On 19 April 1944, the southern border zone was declared to be an area of
military operations, so that authorities could start to remove Jews from the border
zone on an urgent basis. In a few days, Jews were moved involuntarily to appointed
places of residence in the districts concerned. People were then transported to
the collecting camp at Barcs from the gathering points in a few days, and were
transported to Auschwitz via Sopron on 26 to 28 May. The Hungarian administrative
staff carried out this campaign on an explicit demand from Germany but without any
remarkable objections, in a calm and careful manner.31
Segregation of Jews started somewhat later in county seats and districts outside the border zone, and this exercise was organised and managed by the Hungarian authorities. The decision to move the Jews of Pcs to a mandatory place
of residence was published in the daily Dunntl (Transdanubia) on 28 April. The
closed ghetto of Pcs was set up near the railway, and 3,400 Jews were moved into
what used to be the homes of 600 Christians moved out. Serious problems were
caused by crowding and the shortage of food, and the constant humiliation, repeated searches and round-ups also wore out peoples ability to resist, causing many to
collapse and commit suicide. Conditions were similarly bad in the Mohcs ghetto
that held 1,169 people.32 The ghetto area in Kaposvr was specified on 12 May,
and altogether 3,000 to 3,500 people were moved here by the end of the month.
Smaller ghettos were set up also in the villages of Tab and Nagyatd as well.33
29 Bevertk a zsid szeretethz ablakait (Pcs Jewish hospice windows broken in). D, year 31, issue no. 66 (21
March 1941) p. 6 Ismeretlen tettesek vandl puszttsa a mgocsi zsid temetben (Vandalistic destruction in
Jewish cemetery of Mgocs by unknown persons). D, year 33, issue no. 183 (14 August 1943) p. 5
30 RADNTI 2007, p. 301 VRS 2007, p. 245 For laws and decrees from a national perspective: GONDA 1992,
pp. 221-222 GYURGYK 2001, pp. 176-178
31 RADNTI 2007, pp. 301-302 VRS 2004, p. 48
32 VRS 2004, pp. 48-50 VRS 2007, pp. 246-251
33 KOVCS 2004, pp. 53-54 On the ghettoisation and deportation of Jews outside Budapest: GYURGYK 2001,
pp. 179-180
124
CEC_konyv.indd 124
2016.06.10. 8:36:51
by Zoltn Erds
At the end of June, ghettos were sealed off everywhere, and forcible deportation commenced in the early days of July. The Jews of Baranya and Tolna Counties,
altogether some 6,000 people, were collected in the Lakits Barracks in Pcs, and the
Jews of Somogy were transported to Kaposvr. People were first put on trains on 4
July, and the last trains left the Pcs railway station two days after that on the same day
when Hungarys governor stopped the deportation of Jews living outside Budapest.34
A large part of the administrative apparatus carried out the instructions received
from high up dispassionately, without any intention of resistance. Although the Lord
Lieutenant of Baranya County, Mihly Nikolits, submitted his resignation after the
occupation, the minister of interior did not accept it. Lajos Esztergr, Mayor of the
City of Pcs, also remained in his post, and albeit the governments policy was contrary to his conviction, he did not impede the execution of the decrees on Jews and
the organisation of the ghetto.35 Instances of substantial resistance were scarce: in
Szekszrd, the mayor refused to carry out the instruction to set up a ghetto, so there
was no ghetto in that city.36
Very few locals stood by the Jews. Christian members of trade guilds were
rather pleased with the elimination of competition due to personal conflicts and
business interests. Only a few agreed to even keep the valuables trusted to them,
and even fewer had the courage to help Jews sealed in ghettos by providing them
with food; for instance, in Villny, Jzsef Hohmann took food to the Jews gathered
in the synagogue during the night.37 The ambivalent conduct of the churches is illustrated by the fact that while several priests and ministers stood up for the Jews,
some ecclesiastical organisations and communities demanded Jewish land property for religious purposes.38
A very small portion of the Southern Transdanubian Jews survived World War
II. By April 1945, only 267 of the people forcibly deported and drafted for labour
service from Pcs returned home. Out of the 245 Jewish population of Sikls, altogether four deportees and 12 labour service draftees survived.39 In Tolna County,
synagogues were re-organised in three places, while in Somogy County, there were
eight synagogues operating four years after; 360 of the Kaposvr Jews returned
home. Many survivors chose not to return to their homes and tried to start a new life
in either Budapest or abroad.40
34
35
36
37
38
39
40
BRAHAM 1988.II. pp. 72-78 KOVCS 2004, p. 54 VRS 2004, pp. 50-51 VRS 2007, pp. 252-256
MOLNR 2012, pp. 467-475
SZILGYI-SCHWEITZER 1991, pp. 85-86
BSZE 1993, pp. 85; 87 KOVCS 1970, pp. 69-71
KOVCS 2004, pp. 52-53
MOLNR 2012, p. 482 RADNTI 2007, p. 303
FZES 1993, p. 173 KOVCS 2004, p. 54 SZILGYI-SCHWEITZER 1991, p. 86
CEC_konyv.indd 125
125
2016.06.10. 8:36:51
Churches Holocaust
Distribution of the regions population by religion
(% / persons)
1937*
Pcs
1943**
Baranya
Pcs Diocese
Roman Catholic
84.083
51,630
82.264
205,122
78.534
539,646
Greek Catholic
0.259
159
0.071
173
Calvinist
5.215
3,202
10.738
26,776
6.727
46,227
Lutheran
2.894
1,777
5.349
13,337
10.871
74,697
Orthodox
0.251
154
0.576
1,437
1.597
10,976
Israelite
6.563
4,030
1.002
2,500
1.790
12,303
Baptist
0.364
2,503
Nazarene
0.117
795
0.735
451
other, unknown
Total
61,03
249,345
687,147
* Tizenhrommilli magyar l a Fldn (Thirteen million Hungarians living on Earth). D, year 27,
issue no. 285 (16 December 1937) p. 4 The Calvinist paper published essentially the same figures
four years earlier (with the single substantial difference that it was aware of a Calvinist population
of 460 more in Pcs): Pcs vros laksainak felekezeti megoszlsa (Distribution of the inhabitants of
the city of Pcs by religion). PRL, year 14, issue no. 1-2 (5 February 1933) p. 6
** Az 539.646 katolikust szmll pcsi egyhzmegynek... (The Pcs Diocese of 539,646 Catholics)
D, year 33, issue no. 47 (27 February 1943) p. 2
126
CEC_konyv.indd 126
2016.06.10. 8:36:52
by Zoltn Erds
Dunntl (Transdanubia) emerged as the most relevant paper, all the more so
because it was the only one of clerical dailies to be published all the way throughout the era. It was launched in 1911 with the mission of providing high-standard
information and defending Catholicism: we need an independent, outspoken, wellinformed Catholic newspaper with a fair tone and abundant contents, which immediately refutes the devious and biased allegations, jokes, distortions and sensationalist articles written for the sole purpose of bringing Catholics down.43
Rather than standing for a narrow-minded religious seclusion, the paper testified to a patient and open spirit. As formulated by one of its authors, Heathens,
Jews, Protestants, Hindus and Negroes are my brothers in faith if they follow their
own religion in good faith, because my churchs soul is more extensive than its
body.44 Dunntl remained true to the original concept and did not embody the approach of rigid ultramontane Catholicism later on, either.45 The editorial published
on the 30th anniversary of the paper in 1941 stated that The programme we announced remained unchanged. [] we will remain who we are: Hungarian, patient,
lovers of humanity, seekers of the truth, Catholics.46 The paper regularly published
communiqus of the most variegated societies and clerical communities, and news
on the most successful programmes without taking exception to the Israelite womens association or even the Zionist society.
Dunntl intended to speak to the widest groups, published extremely diverse and
high-standard content that competed with Budapest newspapers, while remaining independent from political parties, surviving only on subscriptions and advertisements.47
The journalist staff clearly considered the papers professional standard and, mainly, the
consistency of its values to be the key to its popularity: The Christian masses in Pcs
and its broader vicinity noticed and understood the good intention, and came under
the colours of Catholic Dunntl in a way that could only lead to victory as a result of
the unity of the paper and its readers.48 Therefore, Dunntl emerged as the most authoritative paper of the entire region, a factor that shaped the positions of broad groups.
The editors were forced to give up the papers independent identity and the
values so consistently represented until then in the spring of 1944. Following the
43 Call for share subscriptions from 1991, cit: KEREKES 2002, p. 2
44 see: KEREKES 2002, pp. 6-7
45 The much more radical Pcsi Katolikus Tudst (Catholic Correspondent of Pcs) regarded this with incomprehension or with slight disdain. In connection with Dunntls theatre critics, a journalist wrote, even
its greatest enemy (as if there were any) cannot say it is clerical, that its theatre criticism is aligned to the
Catholic view of the world, that it is not understanding with the modern drama industry. PKT, year 6,
issue no. 4 (24 February 1928) p. 5
46 Harminc esztend (Thirty years). Dunntl, 25 March 1941 (31/69) p. 1
47 KEREKES 2002, p. 12
48 Harmincves a Dunntl (Dunntl is thirty years old). PKT, year 19, issue no. 4 (1 April 1941) p. 2
CEC_konyv.indd 127
127
2016.06.10. 8:36:52
Churches Holocaust
German occupation, it promoted the brothers in arms relations and the sharing of
the same fate between Hungary and Germany, justifying the common battle against
Bolshevism, the Mongol invasion of destruction launched from the East. In the autumn of that year, it openly emerged as a mouthpiece for the extreme right, adopting
and advertising the Arrow Cross Partys phraseology.49
The paper closest to Dunntls spirit was the weekly Pcsi Hrek (Pcs News).
The weekly was first published in September 1929, and released news and analyses mostly on political and economic topics for four years, during the time of the
Great Depression. It constantly addressed social issues, but published cultural and
clerical news only as brief news items, if any. It reported on the life of Protestant
churches very rarely, and completely ignored the local Jewry.
The identity of the editor-in-chief sheds some light on the weeklys choice of
topics and spiritual orientation. Pcsi Hrek was established by Ferenc Lgrdy,
who was the Pcs secretary of the Christian Socialist Party in 1919, then undertook
management positions as finance specialist in Hangya Szvetkezet (Ant Cooperative), and later on in Baross Szvetkezet (Baross Cooperative), which comprised
Christian craftsmen.
Though aimed at a fundamentally different public, two magazines had a similar
approach. The magazine called Munksifj (Young Worker) launched in the summer
of 1927 was associated with organising Christian workers, and published interesting items concerning industry, trade and technology, but also discussed a number
of problems in public policy such as the issue of revision and problems of democracy. The magazines spirit can be characterised by its differentiated opinion on the
reasons for economic difficulties, and concluding that the people responsible were
not Jews as suggested by the established clichs but the Christian society.50
The magazine called Dolgozk (Workers), published for one year after March 1938,
was also associated with Christian Socialist organisations. According to a description in one of its issues, the articles address the most urgent topical issues, in a current affairs manner but always discussing them from a more elevated perspective.51
Pcsi Est (Pcs Evening), launched on 1 May 1919, represented a markedly
different direction than the publications mentioned so far. The paper wished to address members of all Christian churches,52 but engaged in constant battle against
49 KEREKES 2002, pp. 16-17
50 Kovcsevics, Milenk: A keresztny iparos s keresked balsikernek okai (Reasons for bad fortunes of Christian craftsmen and traders). MI, year 3, issue no. 10 (15 May 1929) pp. 16-17
51 Megjelent a Dolgozk legjabb szma (Latest issue of Dolgozk is out). D, year 28, issue no. 169 (29 July
1938) p. 7
52 Horvth, Kzmr: Lapunk (Our magazine). PE, Vol. issue, (7 December 1919) p. 1
128
CEC_konyv.indd 128
2016.06.10. 8:36:52
by Zoltn Erds
53 Kzmr Horvths career including his work in Pcs was discussed by Zoltn Kiss: KISS 2016.
54 Komcsy, Istvn: A Pcsi Est eddig s ezutn (Pcsi Est so far and afterwards). PE, year 20, issue no.
26 (1 February 1925) p. 1
55 BRAHAM 1988.II, p. 357
56 KEREKES 2016, pp. 118-119
CEC_konyv.indd 129
129
2016.06.10. 8:36:52
Churches Holocaust
on average, but the April 1934 issue reached 3,000 copies.57 On its tenth anniversary, the achievements of Pcsi Katolikus Tudst earned the following appreciation from a journalist: it played an important role in promoting the religious and
intellectual development of the metropolis at the feet of the Mecsek Mountains, in
preserving its Catholic nature and enhancing its Christianity-oriented culture.58
Most of the issues consisted of spiritual writings, articles on cultural history and
brief news on the situation of the Catholic church. However, the Figyel (Observer)
column authored by Bla Hantos and then by Pter Nyilas published hardcore antiSemitic writings. The Jewish press, its slander against Hungary and attacks on
Christians were constant topics, while the columns authors paid much less attention to other social problems.
In the course of 1933-34, the paper reached an ideological turning point. The
position of editor-in-chief was handed over from the poet Lszl Kocsis to much more
agile Jzsef Gyrks, who intended to align with the increased public role assumed
by the church, and put the paper in Actio Catholicas service.59 This organisation
considered its main objective to be a combat against leftist and rightist extremism by
shaping the attitudes of its followers. In addition to ecclesiastical activities and newspaper publication, it performed adult education and charity work.60 In line with Actio
Catholicas spirit, the columns of Pcsi Katolikus Tudst also focused on pragmatic
issues such as social problems and charity work, so emphasis shifted to Christianitys
positive programme, though the paper failed to surrender its anti-Semitic position. In
the changing and uncertain situation after 1939, the papers editors gave up the goals
of political opinion leading and agitation, returned to its original spirit of serving the
dioceses Catholic communities as a devotionalist paper once again.61
School and student newspapers represented a separate type of journalism
with church ties. The Dik-let (Student Life) and Ifjsg (Youth) newspapers survived only for a few issues, while larger institutions such as Pius Gimnzium (Pius
Grammar School) and Ciszterci Gimnzium (Cistercian Grammar School) were able
to support two or three newspapers in parallel for a longer while.
School newspapers intended to sensitise pupils to public affairs, prepare them
for expressing their opinions responsibly, ultimately, for playing a role in public life.
57 KEREKES 2016, pp. 120-122
58 Tzves a Pcsi Katolikus Tudst (Pcsi Katolikus Tudst celebrates ten years). D, year 22, issue no. 275
(4 December 1932) p. 5
59 KEREKES 2016, pp. 119; 122
60 KEREKES 2001, pp. 2; 8 Ern Linder, Dunntls editor-in-chief, became the councillor of Actio Catholicas
diocesal press department. KEREKES 2001, p. 13
61 KEREKES 2016, pp. 119; 122
130
CEC_konyv.indd 130
2016.06.10. 8:36:52
by Zoltn Erds
For instance, the Arany Ezst (Gold and Silver) paper launched by Pius Grammar
School in January 1939, It intends to awaken everyones interest in serious national
and religious issues and fine literature, and wishes to educate everyone to have the
courage to disclose their views. 62 The paper published highly irredentist articles
and poems, and launched a series of articles honing in on particularly pragmatic issues, raising demographic problems as well, in the 1940/41 academic year.
The same interest was seen in university youth. The majority of articles in Maurinum, the newspaper of Szent Mr Kollgium (St. Maurice Dormitory), addressed
dormitory life, but became increasingly political during the five years of its existence.
Authors often discussed political and social problems, raising issues such as the revision of borders and the unemployment of young white-collar people. Interestingly,
the Jewish issue surfaced among the topics discussed relatively few times, which
is a surprise in light of the fact that recurring fights concerning numerus clausus
formed a practically constant part of university life.
Finally, the newspapers launched by vicarages and minor Christian communities should be mentioned; these were published with a few pages and less regularly.
Their main function was to assist the internal flow of information of the community, to
strengthen the Christian ethos and identity, and offer guidance to followers among
the increasingly untransparent public life. They published mostly spiritual writings,
reflecting on political issues infrequently and only indirectly.
The newspapers of Calvinist congregations, which had a small overall number
of followers, played a similar role; these were Baranyai Klvinista Lobog (Calvinist
Flag of Baranya), and Reformtus Egyhzi Lap (Calvinist Church Magazine), published under the title Pcsi Reformtusok Lapja (Pcs Calvinist Church Magazine)
after April 1926. The two magazines published mostly writings to intensify faith and
articles concerning the internal life of congregations.63 However, Reformtus rll
(Calvinist Guard), launched in November 1937, paid more attention to world events,
trying to offer an explicit sense of mission in addition to support in faith to believers
in a world in turmoil. The magazine must have made a great impression on Calvinists living in the county, because it was published in 7,000 copies already for the
first time.64 The Lutheran magazine called Christlicher Hausfreund had a similar
character; it contained mostly spiritual writings and communiqus of the church
organisation. Over the seven years of its existence, the proportion of news, and
within that, of news on world politics and social issues, that is, non-religious news,
increased slightly. It published very few times on Hungarian Jews, but mentioned
62 Raksnyi, rpd: Alkotni akarunk (We want to create). MA, issue no. 28, (1939.) p. 13
63 GYRFI 2015, pp. 4-7; 10-15
64 GYRFI 2015, pp. 17-18
CEC_konyv.indd 131
131
2016.06.10. 8:36:53
Churches Holocaust
Palestine several times in connection with conflicts between Arabs and Jews and
archaeological findings.
***
The common ideological platform for all press publications in Southern Transdanubia associated with a Christian church between the two World Wars was the Szeged idea. Most journalists believed the only possibility for Hungary to recover its
old strength was to merge Christian and national ideology. In the words of Damjn
Vargha, a leading figure in Pcss intelligentsia, there was hope for recovering an
integrated Hungary only if it was inhabited by Hungarians living on faith, and vice
versa, heroic Christians living in their Hungarian identity.65 Nearly all editorial offices
found it important to declare that instead of mutually excluding one another, Christianity and patriotism assume and strengthen one another of course, the individual
churches and newspapers put slightly different emphasis on the two poles.66
All journalist think tanks considered the harmonic situation in which unity of the
entire society is not encumbered by social tensions or conflicts between nationalities or churches to be the ideal situation.67 Within the framework of their opportunities and the limits set by their ethos, the staff of newspapers worked for this ideal
state of affairs, by using communication and opinion-forming as their tools, as well
as by proposing cultural and charity actions.68
However, there was a difference between newspapers in the degree of perceptiveness demonstrated in exposing, ranking and presenting the most important
social problems and the solutions they proposed that is, where they positioned
the Jewish issue. Pcsi Est attributed most of the problems in agriculture, trade,
finance, politics and culture to the lack of a solution to the Jewish issue. Pcsi
Katolikus Tudst attributed a similarly high significance to the Jewish issue, but
65 Vargha, Damjn: Szent Mr s a Maurinum (St. Maurice and the Maurinum). M, year 2, issue no. 5 (June
1936) p. 1
66 One example for each of the particularly Calvinist and the particularly Catholic wording: Klvinista hazafisg
(Calvinist patriotism). BKL, year 11, issue no. 12 (15 December 1923) p. 1 Dr. Taksonyi, Jnos: A katolikus
egyhz nemzetkzisge s a nemzeti rzs (The international character of the Catholic church and the national
feeling). PKT, year 4, issue no. 8 (27 June 1926) pp. 4-5 For the idea of Christian Hungarian nationalism
formulated in contrast with liberalism and national socialism: Barabs, Andrs: A nemzetnevels lnyege (The
essence of educating a nation). KI, year 26, issue no. 3 (1 March 1937) pp. 17-18
67 E.g.: Kiss, Sndor: Krisztussal a magyar ton (With Christ along the Hungarian path). PRL, year 16, issue no.
3 (31 March 1935) pp. 1-2 A szentistvni feladat (St. Stephens task). D, year 31, issue no. 15 (19 January
1941) p. 1
68 On Dunntls initiatives: KEREKES 2002, p. 19 On Pcsi Katolikus Tudsts results: KEREKES 2016, PP.
126-130 Pcsi Reformtusok Lapja published similarly numerous calls for campaigns to ease famine, to
equip and support village schools. GYRFI 2015. 12. Though not dealing with similar initiatives, Catholic policy
meant an active social commitment according to both Pcsi Hrek and Katholikus Iskola.
132
CEC_konyv.indd 132
2016.06.10. 8:36:53
by Zoltn Erds
the positions taken in connection with individual problems have not come together
to form a cohesive system to the same extent. However, most editorial offices considered the problem of single children,69 emigration and alcoholism, or the faults
of the national character, the unreasonable and unproductive pride of Hungarian
nobility, the procrastination embodied by literary figure Pl Pat 70 to be the main
root of social problems.
The issue of peace between churches played a role in local and national politics as well as in religious life between the two World Wars. All newspapers associated with churches were faced with the question of how to relate to other churches.
One of the extreme positions was drafted by Pcsi Katolikus Tudst, which
was rather impatient, and not only with Jewry but also with Protestant churches.71 It
encouraged readers to buy only from Catholics (and to make this easier, the paper
published a list of suppliers),72 and to read no newspapers other than Catholic ones:
You are not a true Catholic if you forebear non-Catholic press in your house!73
In other cases, the call had an explicitly anti-Semitic edge: do not go to a barber
shop or any other shop where they subscribe only to colourless or specifically Jewish press. 74
The other extreme concerning peace between churches was represented by
the editors of Katholikus Iskola. According to an editorial message published in response to a letter from a reader, it is inconsiderate for Catholic groups to discourage
visits by Protestant and Jewish believers, even if they cannot be society members
according to the statutes.75 A writing published in the Calvinist congregations newspaper, which argues that Jews may not be godparents, implies a similar approach;
the author spends a long time apologising, saying this does not stem from any sort
of anti-Semitism but, in addition to the obligations under ecclesiastical law, from the
meaning of baptism.76
69 Having a single child was predominant in Calvinist villages, no wonder this demographic problem was addressed most frequently by Calvinist press. GYRFI 2015, pp. 19-25
70 Ifj. Majlth, Jzsef gr.: A mlt csak plda legyen (The past should only be an example). AE, year 2, issue no.
5 (7 January 1940) p. 91
71 Tallkozs egyhzi tren msvallsakkal (Meeting people of other faiths in religious space). PKT, year 4, issue
no. 12 (1 November 1926) pp. 2-4
72 E.g.: PKT, year 14, issue no. 1 (January 1936) p. 19
73 E.g.: PKT, year 12, issue no. 1 (January 1934) p. 12
74 see: KEREKES 2016, p. 126
75 Szerkeszti zenet (Message from the editor). KI, year 24, issue no. 4 (1 April 1935) p. 10
76 Zsid lehet-e keresztszl? (Can a Jew be a godparent?) PRL, year 3, issue no. 2 (15 May 1921) p. 1
CEC_konyv.indd 133
133
2016.06.10. 8:36:53
Churches Holocaust
134
CEC_konyv.indd 134
2016.06.10. 8:36:53
by Zoltn Erds
where they were unable to strengthen their political power, Jewish financiers built up the
structures most suitable for their interests by withdrawing in the background: Capitalist
Jewry fabricated a workers movement they need never fear because the movements
omnipotent lords and managers are their own kin.81 Of course, this was perceptible not
only at the topmost levels of power but had serious repercussions in everyday reality.
Jewish businessmen regularly positioned themselves opposite Hungarian interests,82
and inflation, price increases and the curbing of salaries, which made life difficult for
millions, was also due to the operation of capital held by Jews, the Jewish usury, while
there were many Jews among traffickers and frauds.83 The extent to which these were
held to be non-separate phenomena and the focal nature of the issue are demonstrated
well by the tone of articles published in Pcsi Est, a paper targeting mostly the petty
bourgeoisie and the working classes, characterised by barely cloaked existential fears:
If we are not aware and do not stop at the edge of the grave: within 10 to 20 years,
Hungary will be held completely by the Jews, and we can either go look for a new
homeland, or our sons are in for the saddest life of slavery.84
Thus, the only important rupture in society runs between Jews and Christians, but this is covered up by the press, the majority of which also came to be
held by Jews. In addition to impeding long-term social reforms, it turns on national interests also concerning the most topical issues. Father Bangha has established that ultimate responsibility for the incitement to war, undermining the
nations moral strength, and, ultimately, for the dismembering of the country,
lay with the Jewish press already back in the autumn of 1921, in an address
delivered at the celebration of the press in Pcs.85 In order to secure their finan-
81
82
83
84
85
sian Soviet). PKT, year 8, issue no. 4 (1 April 1930) p. 11 Nyilas, Pter: Litvinovk csak a keresztnyek hitt
akarjk kiirtani (Litvinov and cronies only want to extinguish the faith of Christians). PKT, year 13, issue no. 5
(May 1935) p. 112 A zsidk Moszkvban a Szovjet gyzelmrt imdkoztak (Jews in Moscow pray for Soviet
victory). D, year 34, issue no. 76 (4 April 1944) p. 3
Segt-e a munksnp sorsn a trsadalmi forradalom? (Does social revolution ease the fate of workers?) PE,
year 19, issue no. 19 (23 January 1924) p. 1 cf.: [Geosits, Lajos]: Vgre valahra (At last). PE, year 14, issue
no. 17 (11 September 1921) p. 1
Weisz s Rottmller veszlyeztetik a magyar rdeket (Weisz and Rottmller threaten Hungarian interest). PE,
year 17, issue no. 84 (12 April 1922) p. 2 Weisz Manfrd gpeket szllt a szovjetnek (Manfred Weisz delivers
equipment to the Soviet). PE, year 17, issue no. 261 (16 November 1922) p. 1 Zsid kufrok tnkretettk
klfldn a magyar tejtermkek jhrnevt (Jewish peddlers destroy the good reputation of Hungarian dairy
products abroad). year 18, issue no. 163 (21 July 1923) p. 2
A sokszzmillis lisztpanama tanulsgai (Lessons of the flour fraud of several hundreds of millions). PE, year
17, issue no. 34 (11 February 1922) p. 4 Gazdasgi vagy felekezeti krds-e az iparosok s kereskedk
keresztny tmrlse? (Is the Christian associaton of craftsmen and traders an economic or religious issue?)
PE, year 17, issue no. 68 (23 March 1922) p. 2 Spiller Ben r rektifiklna (Mr. Ben Spiller would rectify).
PE, year 18, issue no. 67 (23 March 1923) p. 3
Azrt, mert l mg a nemzeti ntudat (Just because national self-consciousness still lives) PE, year 20,
issue no. 53 (6 March 1925) p. 1
A keresztny-nemzeti sajt fontossga. P. Bangha dszbeszde a sznhzban. (The importance of the Christian-national press. Ceremonial address by Father Bangha in the theatre) D, year 11, issue no. 187 (6 September 1921) p. 3
CEC_konyv.indd 135
135
2016.06.10. 8:36:53
Churches Holocaust
cial power runs the argument Jews try to weaken the religious and national
bonds that are contrary to their interests. It is no coincidence that Pcs Jews
comported themselves in an unpatriotic manner during the revolutions and Serbian occupation.86 In 1924, a reader of Pcsi Est was aggrieved by the fact that
the Jews of Pcs failed to celebrate 15 March, while not much later, one of the
authors argued that if it came to a war, neither Jews of the Entente nor Hungarian Jews will blast bullets at each other.87 (This argumentation completely
disregarded all the instances when the Jewry testified to its solidarity with the
Christian society, whether it was the rabbi of Pcs taking a stand in favour of
the counter-revolutionary order, or a joint prayer by synagogue members for the
restoration of historical borders.88)
Pcsi Est used a particular means to achieve global validity for its train of
thought: it reported on the anti-Semitic decrees, movements and pogroms appearing in the most diverse countries of the world on a nearly daily basis. This gives the
reader an impression that Jews have gained excessive influence not only in Hungary but everywhere. However, the people of the world are having enough of this
situation, and adopt provisions to curb in the Jews one after the other.
The discourse offered the practical conclusion that the solution to a highly
complex problem was the confinement of Jews in all fields of political, social,
economic and cultural life. In addition to approving and calling for legal restrictions, newspapers invited their readers to boycott shops and papers in Jewish
ownership.89 The university newspaper argued for economic restriction of the
Jewry in a less direct manner. An author in the first issue of Maurinum argued
that Hungary had to be made Hungarian, a new settlement in the homeland
is needed, because all major positions in economic life have been occupied
by strangers.90 In addition to economic restrictions, Pcsi Est has proposed a
86 A pcsi zsidsg mosakodik (Pcs Jewry washing its hands). PE, year 14, issue no. 27. (23 September 1921)
p. 2 A Tolna megyei zsid rtelmisg nagy rsze valban baloldali mozgalmak befolysa al kerlt (Majority of
Tolna Countys Jewish intelligentsia indeed influenced by leftist movements). SZILGYI 1994-95, pp. 241-242;
249-251 On the issue on a national basis: GONDA 1992, pp. 189-193 GYURGYK 2001, pp. 98-109
87 Egy levl hozznk (A letter to us). PE, year 19, issue no. 69 (22 March 1924) p. 2 Zsidsg s integrits
(Jewry and integrity). PE, year 19, issue no. 124 (28 May 1924) p. 1
88 A magyarok bejvetele a rendet s a nyugalmat biztostotta. Dr. Pfeiffer Izsk nyilatkozata. (Entry of the Hungarians ensured order and peace. Statement by Dr Izsk Pfeiffer) PE, year 14, issue 50. (19 October 1921) p.
3. old. A pcsi rabbi beiktatsa. (Inauguration of the Pcs rabbi) year 18, issue 58 (13 March 1923) p. 3 A
villnyi zsidsg imja a rgi hatrokrt. (Prayer of Villny Jews for the old borders) D, year 17, issue 190 (23
Aug 1927) p.4. Cf also: GONDA 1992. p.195
89 Cf: Keresztny, keresztnynl vsrol! (Christians should shop with Christianx only) PE, year 18, issue 40.
(20 February 1923) p. 4 The picture is somewhat modified by the fact that Pcsi Reformtusok Lapja (Paper
of Pcs Protestants) only advertised Protestant tradesmen and shops, too. The publication of the Catholic list
of tradesment by Tudst was not clearly anti-Jewish propaganda.
90 Maurinum, year 1, issue 4-5 (May-June 1935) p. 14 Cf: Dunntl only started to use the term new conquest of the fatherland in 1942, after the anti-Jewish Act land ownership was executed.
136
CEC_konyv.indd 136
2016.06.10. 8:36:53
by Zoltn Erds
reduction in the political representation of the Jewry as early as in the first half
of the 1920s.91
In general, the arguments brought by the press calling for the confinement of
the Jewry have two characteristics in common. One is that authors and editors were
practically free to pick arguments of the conservatives, Christian Socialists and, in
some places, of the extreme right; there were no clear boundaries between each
philosophy. For instance, Pcsi Est as seen above was one of the main representatives of the conspiracy theory typical of the extreme right, but represented a
much more moderate position on the isolation of the Jewry. In an editorial, Viktor
Perr explained he was willing to accept Jewry as a religion if the community clearly
proved its loyalty to the Hungarian homeland.92
The other general phenomenon is that the arguments brought by the papers
clearly relate to the momentary situation: authors referred almost only to the most
current developments and details, and very rarely put the Jewish issue in a historical perspective. Authors of two articles argued in favour of the moral renewal of
the Magyars, a stronger national consciousness and, in close conjunction with
this, the confinement of Jews by citing the thoughts of statesmen from the Period
of Reforms. Pcsi Est cited Szchenyis thoughts back in 1922,93 well afterwards,
an author of Maurinum analysed Klcseys position against the Jews.94 In his paper which had nationwide reverberations, Pcs lawyer Klmn Molnr reached
back to 1514, and Lajos Geosits, vice president of Katolikus Legnyegylet (Catholic Young Mens Society) traced back the history of the waking ideal right to St.
Stephen.95 Ferenc Galambos wrote about driving Jews out of Pcs in the late 17th
century at a time when Jews were already being put in ghettos and physically annihilated.96
The middle of the road between liberal and anti-Semitic papers (relying on
a conservative, Christian Socialist or extreme rightist base) was represented by
Dunntl. Its articles did not typically identify Jewry with either left-wing movements
91 Ahol egy kis numerus clausus szintn elkelne (Where a little numerus clausus would also be welcome). PE,
year 20, issue 52 (5 March 1925) p.3
92 [Perr, Viktor]: A zsidsgrl (On Jewry). PE, year 18, issue no. 231 (12 October 1923) p. 1
93 A fajvdelemrl (On the protection of the race). PE, year 17, issue no. 235 (15 October 1922) p. 1
94 Dr. Svda, Pl: Klcsey Ferenc s a zsidkrds (Ferenc Klcsey and the Jewish issue). M, year 5, issue no.
3 (February 1939) pp. 4-7
95 Molnr Klmn dr. a zsidkrds embersges megoldsrl (Dr. Klmn Molnr on the humane solution to
the Jewish issue). D, year 29, issue no. 29 (5 February 1939) p. 3 A pcsi bredk trsas sszejvetele
(Social get-together of the Awakening Hungarians of Pcs). PE, year 17, issue no. 245 (27 October 1922) p. 2
96 Dr. Galambos, Ferenc: 250 vvel ezeltt a katolikus egyhz erlyes fellpsre tvoltottk el Pcsrl a
zsidkat (Jews removed from Pcs in response to firm action by the Catholic church 250 years ago). D, year
34, issue no. 117 (25 May 1944) p. 4
CEC_konyv.indd 137
137
2016.06.10. 8:36:54
Churches Holocaust
or with big business or with freemasonry.97 (One of the few exceptions is an editorial discussing poverty, which has been growing in the wake of the Great Depression: poverty is not the cause of a few thousand Shylocks who love the golden
calf and whose soul has been darkened by egotism, and of the unemployed.98)
On the other hand, Dunntl did not demand economic restrictions on the Jewry
up until the late 1930s though it also failed to firmly argue against it, too. In any
case, Jewish companies (Lwy Brothers, Mr Hirschler) regularly advertised on
its pages, which accommodated communiqus by Jewish traders concerning the
opening hours during religious holidays. The need to stand with Christian economy
was given greater emphasis in Dunntls articles only as late as during the first
years of the war; at that time, it regularly reported on the activities of the Baross
Association, and on some occasions, it advertised the association of markedly
Christian firms after December 1941.
Dunntl was the only clerical newspaper the news in which confirmed that
the Jewry made a positive contribution to the cultural life of the entire society.
Up until the spring of 1944, it regularly published positive news on Jews, which
confirmed that the Jews were breathing together with Hungarian society. When
the Jewish synagogue said a prayer of grace for liberation and for the opening
of the Pcs University together with Christians, this was published in the paper.99
Readers also learn that a memorial plaque for the Jewish heroes of the war was
installed,100 and that the synagogue of Palotabozsok made a donation in favour of
a Catholic church.101 Though with a varied intensity, the paper regularly reported
on the programmes of the synagogue, the peoples school and the womens charity organisation a part of these, communiqus by organisations and invitations
to general assembly meetings may have been published as paid advertisements,
which indicates that the majority of the Jewish public also read the paper. It is
97 I found this stereotype only twice on the pages of Dunntl. The author of one article complains that only
the Christians participating in the Hungarian Commune were punished, though Jews would deserve the same
punishments; another reportage stated the the majority of Soviet commissars were of Jewish extraction. Nem
antiszemitskods, hanem tnymegllapts vezeti tollunkat... (The pen is led by objectivity rather than antiSemitism...) D, year 10, issue no. 136 (18 July 1920) p. 2 344 zsid npbiztos Oroszorszgban (344 Jewish
commissars in Russia). D, year 11, issue no. 28 (5 February 1921) p. 3
98 A nyomor vmszedi (Taking a toll on paupers). D, year 20, issue no. 231 (11 October 1930) p. 1
99 A zsidtemplomban (In the Jewish church). D, year 11, issue no. 180 (28 August 1921) p. 4 Izr. istentisztelet
az egyetem megnyitsa alkalmbl (Jewish service on the opening of the university). D, year 13, issue no.
239 (21 October 1923) p. 4 A villnyi zsidsg imja a rgi hatrokrt (Prayer of Villny Jews for the old
borders). D, year 17, issue no. 190 (23 August 1927) p. 4 Joint services and patriotic celebrations organised together had serious traditions: Villny nnepsge (Ceremony at Villny). Pcsi Napl, year., issue. (13
April 1898) pp. 7-8 Villny gysza a trnrks prrt (Villny mourns the heirs to the throne). Pcsi Napl,
year, issue (5 July 1914) p.
100 Hsk emlktblja a pcsi zsinaggban (Memorial plaque for soldiers at the Pcs synagogue). D, year 13,
issue no. 135 (17 June 1923) p. 4 - A mohcsi izr. hsi halottak emlktblja (Memorial plaque of the Jewish
heroes of Mohcs). year 13, issue no. 200 (5 September 1923) p. 2
101 A palotabozsoki zsid hitkzsg tagjai a nagyharsnyi rm. kat. templomrt (Members of the Jewish synagogue
of Palotabozsok for the Nagyharsny Roman Catholic church). D, year 28, issue no. 83 (13 April 1938) p. 6
138
CEC_konyv.indd 138
2016.06.10. 8:36:54
by Zoltn Erds
characteristic of Dunntls spirit that it published an Israelite calendar in its Christmas yearbook right up until the 1930s,102 and published the obituaries for the
synagogue right up to the spring of 1944.103 (The fact that there was no philoSemitic bias is well indicated by the papers position on the Zsid Lexikon (Jewish
Encyclopedia) published in 1929. The encyclopedia indicated a number of Christian university teachers as Jewish intelligentsia by mistake, which was also protested by an article in Dunntl; it did not agree to Jews claiming any segment of
the Christian intelligentsias performance, however small.104 However, it regarded
achievements that were indubitably associated with Jewish culture such as the
writings and addresses by former Pcs rabbi rmin Perls in recognition of the
achievement.105)
CEC_konyv.indd 139
139
2016.06.10. 8:36:54
Churches Holocaust
to explain everything by blood and race will also have an un-Christian spirit.109 The
university rector took the same theological stand: The Lord created no races [...]
or Jews and Christians, He only created men, he told students who demanded that
numerus clausus be restricted.110
Pcsi Katolikus Tudst rejected the sickly insistence on the national
and racial dominance, which attacks Christianity with its heathen understanding with a similar consistency.111 The Nazi ideology is unacceptable
the papers authors argued, making reference also to Prohszkas views
because the complete homogenisation of political and social life blends
all Christian churches into one and treads on Christian freedom.112 The conclusion offered itself that National atheism was even more dangerous than
Communism. 113 Munksifj condemned the anti-clerical views of the two
extremes, but it also condemned aggressive agitation as they incited unnecessary conflicts, made use of the young in their campaigns, turning
children into elderly people.114
In addition to the pages of the press, racial theory was present in public
discourse by no later than the mid-1930s. The congregation of Pius Grammar
Schools pupils had a number of debates on racial theory,115 and the topic was
covered in the courses to would-be priests. In December 1942, a lecture was
held at the Seminary on Alfred Rosenbergs book Der Mythus des XX. Jahrhun109 A rassz elmlet (The theory of races). D, year 24, issue no. 266 (25 November 1934) p. 8 Interestingly
enough, a book published on eugenics, which relies on the same premises as racial theory and the biology of
races, earned a praise. Tehetsg s eugenika. Somogyi Jzsef dr. knyve (Talent and eugenics. A book by Dr.
Jzsef Somogyi). D, year 25, issue no. 1 (1 January 1935) p. 8 A whole lecture was devoted to eugenics
also in the Catholic ethos course at the end of the year: Az eugenika s az llami trvny (Eugenics and state
law). D, year 25, issue no. 278 (6 December 1935) p. 2
110 A pcsi egyetemi tancs teljesti az ifjusg kvnsgait (Pcs university council fulfills youth wishes). Pcsi
Napl, year 46, issue no. 63 (19 March 1937) p. 2
111 see: KEREKES 2001, p. 15 According to the description published in Dunntl, the current issue of Tudst points out the dangers of the overzealous cult of races. It convincingly proves how suitable certain
slogans are for spreading total religious indifference. Nincsen magyar Isten! (There is no Hungarian God!)
D, year 23, issue no. 211 (17 September 1933) p. 9 According to a statement by Katholikus Iskola, for the
German extreme right, in the second minute after seizing power, the only meaning Christianity had was
not being Jewish. Dr. Schmidt, Vilmos: Nem szabad elksnnk! (We must not be late!) KI, year 21, issue no.
9 (1 September 1932) p. 2
112 Hitlerk gyzelme (Hitlers victory...) PKT, year 12, issue no. 2. (February 1934) p. 15 Dr. Glos, Lszl:
Nmetorszgi benyomsok (German impressions). PKT, year 12, issue no. 5 (May 1934) pp. 12-13 Komcsy Istvn: Felekezeti trelem, fajvdelem, totalits, egynisg, katolicizmus (Religious patience, protection of
the race, individuality, Catholicism). PKT, year 16, issue no. 5 (May 1938) pp. 95-96
113 PKT, year 15, issue no. 10 (1 December 1937) p. 216
114 Gussmann, Viktor: Itt vdrsg ott horogkereszt! (Here, the defence guard there, the Swastika) MI, year
3, issue no. 4 (15 February 1929) p. 16.
115 Puhl, Imre: Munkban a kongregci (Congregation at work). MA, issue no. 28 (1939) pp. 21-22 Gr.
Meran, Ferenc: Nem krdeztetek de mi felelnk! (You did not ask... but we answer) MA, issue no. 31 (1942)
pp. 5-7
140
CEC_konyv.indd 140
2016.06.10. 8:36:54
by Zoltn Erds
derts, and the rebuttals to certain of its theses were published in the schools
yearbook.116
Out of the Southern Transdanubian newspapers with clerical ties, Pcsi Est
was the only one that nearly reached the point of confessing to the racial theory
within a matter of a few years as early as the first half of the 1920s! The tone of
its articles was decreasingly characterised by the Christian spirit, while the declaration of national and racial ideologies became more fervent, and the paper used the
terminology of racial theory in an increasingly consistent manner. The final point
of this transformation was a report published in the paper on Father Borovszkys
lecture delivered in the spirit of racial biology. The Jesuit monk brought the following arguments against mixed marriages: Marriages between Hungarians and Jews
encourage the Hungarian nations destruction, as it will lead to complete Jewification sooner or later [...] Purer blood is stronger and therefore dominates over mixed
blood. And the blood of the Jewish people is purer than that of Magyars.117
CEC_konyv.indd 141
141
2016.06.10. 8:36:54
Churches Holocaust
142
CEC_konyv.indd 142
2016.06.10. 8:36:55
by Zoltn Erds
125 Incidensek az egyetem bonctani intzetben. Tlzott hrek orvostanhallgatk verekedsrl (Incidents in the
universitys pathology institute. Exaggerated news on fights between medical students). D, year 14, issue no.
125 (31 May 1924) p. 2 jabb ifjsgi zavargsok (New disturbances among the young). D, year 14, issue
no. 125 (1 June 1924) p. 3
126 Nagy Jzsef dr. rektor az egyetemen trtnt incidensekrl (Rector dr. Jzsef Nagy on the university incidents). D, year 14, issue no. 130 (7 June 1924) p. 1 A kultuszminiszter megbzottja lefolytatta a vizsglatot
az egyetemi vallsgyalzs gyben. A Circumdederunt me a pcsi egyetem zsid krdse (Minister of cultures representative completed investigation of religious slander at university. Circumdederunt me is the Jewish issue of the Pcs university). year 19, issue no. 134 (11 June 1924) p. 2 A kultuszminiszter a pcsi
egyetemen trtnt hullagyalzsrl (Minister of culture on the desecration of corpses at Pcs university). D,
year 14, issue no. 137 (17 June 1924) p. 1 Similar scandals on religion and desecration of corpses occurred elsewhere in Hungary as well: GONDA 1992, p. 201
127 A numerus clausus a npszvetsg eltt (Numerus clausus before the League of Nations). D, year 15, issue
no. 250 (4 November 1925) p. 1 A numerus clausus gye a hgai nemzetkzi trvnyszk el kerl (Cause
of numerus clausus before the International Tribunal of the Hague). D, year 15, issue no. 282 (12 December
1925) p. 3 Genf nem vltoztat a numerus claususon (Geneva will not change numerus clausus). D, year 15,
issue no. 283 (13 December 1925) p. 1
128 GONDA 1992, p. 203 GYURGYK 2001, pp. 128-131
129 Pcsi egyetemi ifjusg tntetse. sszetkzs volt ma dleltt az egyik klinikn a keresztny s zsid hallgatk kztt (Demonstration by Pcs university youth. Clash this morning between Christian and Jewish students in one of the polyclinics). D, year 17, issue no. 265 (22 November 1927) p. 3
130 Vasvry Ferenc dr. rektor fegyelmi eljrst indt a htfi verekedsben rsztvett egyetemi hallgatk ellen (Rector dr. Ferenc Vasvry institutes disciplinary proceedings against university students who participated in the
fights Monday). D, year 17, issue no. 266 (23 November 1927) p. 3
CEC_konyv.indd 143
143
2016.06.10. 8:36:55
Churches Holocaust
sity temporarily to prevent the conflict from escalating.131 The last clashes in Pcs
university took place at the end of February 1937. Students again boycotted lectures, organised a demonstration, wrote a memorandum to the rector, but the situation escalated once again: unknown perpetrators threw stones in the synagogue
window. Slightly after the arrangements for the demonstrations began, Dunntl
warned students that although their demands were justified, disorder threatened
peace in society. In saying so, we are not telling youth to become silent and yield,
closing their eyes to the outrageous mistakes and wrongs; rather, they should try
to find a solution to their injuries and present their truths within the framework of
legal forms mandatory for everyone, aware of their responsibilities. Hungarian youth
today has established organisations for expressing all its wishes. Bashing in heads
and insulting defenceless people is not worthy of Hungarian youngsters, and, in
addition to being the wrong method, this is not fit for progressing on or resolving
disputed matters.132 Eventually, a compromise put an end to the movements: the
university council adopted a decision in principle on strict compliance with the numerus clausus, while students expressed their respect for the rector.133 Any further
campaigning in favour of numerus clausus was soon rendered unnecessary by the
anti-Jewish Acts.
Overall, it may be said that readers of Dunntl found detailed and in general sufficiently objective news on the events. The newspaper highlighted the
commitment of students fighting for the confinement of Jews to the national cause,
and so presented their aims in a favourable light. On the other hand, in addition to
the official positions of the participants and official bodies, Pcsi Est rather partially evaluated the events, and kept the matter on the agenda by publishing brief
international news even when this was not warranted by the local developments in
Pcs. The newspaper of the Lutheran congregations assumed no clear position on
numerus clausus, yet it strengthened the camp of those who opposed the Act and
favoured its amendment by reporting twice on the international protests prompted
by the Act.134 On the other hand, the conduct of student newspapers was surpris131 A pcsi Erzsbet egyetemet ma dleltt bizonytalan idre bezrtk (Elizabeth University of Pcs closed down
for undefined period). D, year 18, issue no. 244 (26 October 1928) pp. 1-2 Tntets volt ma dlben a pcsi
egyetemi anatmiai intzetben (Demonstrations in anatomy institute of Pcs university noon today). D, year
21, issue no. 45 (25 February 1931) p.3
132 Elg volt (Enough). D, year 27, issue no. 45 (25 February 1937) p. 1
133 A pcsi egyetem ifjsga mly tisztelett s szinte ragaszkodst Dambrovszky Imre dr. egyetemi rektornak (Pcs university youth expresses deep respect and sincere commitment to university rector dr. Imre
Dambrovszky). D, year 27, issue no. 62 (18 March 1937) p. 3 A pcsi egyetem ifjsga rmmel s megnyugvssal vette tudomsul a tancs hatrozatt (Pcs university youth acknowledges council decision with
pleasure and in acknowledgement). D, year 27, issue no. 64 (20 March 1937) p. 2
134 Die Juden des Auslandes. ChH, year 2, issue no. 6 (3 January 1926) p. 7 Die ung. Universittshrerschaft
hat fr die weitererhaltung des Numerus Clausus Stellung genommen. ChH, year 3, issue no. 45 (13 November 1927) p. 8 Fr die Annahme der Abnderungsverlage des Numerus Clausus. ChH, year 4, issue
no. 15 (4 March 1928) p. 6
144
CEC_konyv.indd 144
2016.06.10. 8:36:55
by Zoltn Erds
ing. The restriction on the number of Jewish students affected the interests of the
young, secondary school pupils and university students, the most directly, yet there
are hardly any traces of considering the issue in student journalism. In the summer
of 1924, pupils of Pius Grammar School debated the Jewish issue (focusing on the
numerus clausus),135 while an author of Maurinum, the newspaper of St. Maurice
Dormitory, brought arguments in favour of numerus clausus in 1936.136
CEC_konyv.indd 145
145
2016.06.10. 8:36:55
Churches Holocaust
146
CEC_konyv.indd 146
2016.06.10. 8:36:55
by Zoltn Erds
convincing and consolidating the public was the fundamentally positive evaluation
of the anti-Jewish Act given in the editorial of 1 July 1938, declaring it to be an important step forward in the protection of Christian society.143
The 2nd anti-Jewish Bill was submitted in December 1938. Dunntl published
even more detailed and up-to-date news about the debate that rolled in a wide riverbed until early May 1939. The discourse became indisputably more colourful when
it came to genre: short news was accompanied by longer articles featuring evaluations, dry reports from the Parliament,144 statements by ministers145 and editorials.146
However, the debate contained no new arguments: authors referred to the role Jews
played in economic and intellectual life, but beyond that, they merely alluded to certain Jewish character, criteria, interests that were not defined more specifically,
which distorted the expressions of Hungarian national intentions. In line with the
governments communication, Dunntls columnist adopted this terminology.147
Though there is no doubt that Dunntl accepted the governments policy, this
did not mean a break with the need to provide unbiased information. This is why it
published the communiqu of Jewish firefighters and the Frontharcos Szvetsg
(Association of Front Fighters),148 and true enough, only on page 6, which is not
a very conspicuous place the position of the Israelite church of Pcs against the
Act: This bill the decision to protest states is contrary to human justice, the
divine law and the Hungarian spirit. The protest then goes to point out the history
of Jews in Pcs, the Serbian occupation and the fact that the Jews of Pcs have
always been and will always remain Hungarians.149
143 A munkatemp (The pace of work). D, year 28, issue no. 145 (1 July 1938) p. 1
144 E.g.: Nyolcrs lsen folytatta a Hz a zsidjavaslat trgyalst (The House continued to discuss the bill
on Jews in an eight-hour session). D, year 29, issue no. 57 (10 March 1939) pp. 1-2 - Szles mederben
hmplyg a zsidjavaslat vitja a Hzban (Debate on the bill on Jews rolls in a broad riverbed in the House).
year 29, issue no. 60 (14 March 1939) p. 6
145 Serdi bboros hercegprms ma kifejtette llspontjt a zsidjavaslatrl (Today, Prince Primate Cardinal Serdi explained his position on the bill on Jews). D, year 29, issue no. 75 (1 April 1939) p. 2 A magyar ifjsg
elhelyezkedst vgelegesen biztostja az j zsidtrvny. Hman kultuszminiszter Szkesfehrvron. (The
new anti-Jewish Act provides final solution for the employment of young Hungarians. Minister of Culture Hman visits Szkesfehrvr) D, year 29, issue no. 99 (2 May 1939) p. 4
146 A miniszterelnk (The Prime Minister). D, year 29, issue no. 45 (24 February 1939) p. 1 Tasndi Nagy,
Andrs: A zsidkrds trtnetbl (From the history of the Jewish issue). D, year 29, issue no. 68 (23 March
1939) p. 1
147 A msodik zsidtrvnyjavaslat indoklsa (Reasons for the 2nd anti-Jewish bill). D, year 29, issue no. 4 (5
January 1939) p. 2 A zsidjavaslat (The proposal on Jews). D, year 29, issue no. 89 (20 April 1939) p. 1
148 Orszgos megmozduls tjn akarjk elrni az Izraelita tzharcosok a II. zsidtrvny enyhtst. (Israelite
Firefighters plan nationwide movement to ease the 2nd anti-Jewish Act) D, year 29, issue no. 7 (10 January
1939) p. 4 A Frontharcos Szvetsg kedvezmnyeket kr a zsid frontharcosok rszre (Association of
Front Fighters requests relief for Jewish front fighters). D, year 29, issue no. 24 (29 January 1939) p. 3
149 A pcsi izr. hitkzsg llsfoglalsa a zsidtrvny ellen (Israelite synagogue of Pcss position against the
anti-Jewish Act). D, year 29, issue no. 32 (9 February 1939) p. 6
CEC_konyv.indd 147
147
2016.06.10. 8:36:55
Churches Holocaust
Pcsi Katolikus Tudst and its Observer column edited by Pter Nyilas
fully supported the 2nd anti-Jewish Act. Between April and August 1939, articles focused on the issues of cultural life and the role played by Jews in intellectual life.150
The paper addressed the Jewish issue for the last time in its February 1941 issue.151
150 Nyilas, Pter: Figyel (Observer). PKT, year 17, issue no. 5 (1 May 1939) p. 5 Nyilas, Pter: A kutya s a
nyakraval (The dog and the collar). PKT, year 17, issue no. 7 (1 July 1939) p. 6
151 Hantos, Bla: Figyel (Observer). PKT, year 19, issue no. 2 (1 February 1941) p. 2
152 KEREKES 2016, pp. 119; 122
153 BIB 1986, pp. 637-642 BRAHAM 2009, pp. 197-199 GYURGYK 2001, pp. 157-158
154 During the 1940s, Tolna County papers failed to publish even the most important news on Jews. SZILGYI
1994-95, p. 247
155 E.g.: j gazdagok (Nouveau riche). D, year 33, issue no. 170 (29 July 1943) p. 1
156 A szabadkai zsidsg risi sszegekkel pnzelte a csetnikeket (Chetniks funded with large amounts by Jews
of Subotica). D, year 31, issue no. 92 (24 April 1941) p. 3 A similar rumour has circulated a good ten years
earlier: A vajdasgi zsidsg hsge (Loyalty of the Vojvodina Jewry). D, year 21, issue no. 73 (31 March
1931) p. 4
148
CEC_konyv.indd 148
2016.06.10. 8:36:55
by Zoltn Erds
Though the Dunntl editors approved of the anti-Jewish Acts overall, it found
no justification for physical violence and the destruction of cultural memories. This is
implied by the article published in August 1943 in a tone of sincere outrage on the
vandalism attack on the Israelite graveyard in Mgocs.157
Dunntl was forced to part ways with the values it has represented all along
after German occupation and, even more so, the seizing of power by the Arrow Cross
Party. Ern Linder remained editor-in-chief perhaps he felt his departure would
open the door to unrestricted propaganda in favour of the war and against Jews on
the papers pages.158 Indeed, the majority of the news on Jewry, published in a higher
volume after April 1944, was written in the customary objective style; the paper published the latest orders and reported on irregularities (hiding of assets, irregular wearing of the yellow star of David, racist slurs in a few cases). It managed to escape the
obligation of evaluation for a while, by publishing articles on the situation of the Jewry
very infrequently on the front page, and devoting no editorial to the issue. However,
the change in direction is demonstrated by the fact that while the paper published an
obituary and a large notice on the death of Jzsef Jnosi Engel in November 1939,
it reported on the change in the name of Adolf Jnosi Engel Street in a mocking tone
in July 1944.159 The partial presentation is illustrated by the fact that in contrast with
everyday experience it presented shops acquired by Christians as clearly viable
businesses, thereby confirming the success of the change of the guard.160
Though the paper regularly reported on the deprivation of Jews of their rights,
the ghettoisation and the fines imposed due to violations of law, it published no
news whatsoever on deportations. All that Dunntl released was a statement by
Bla Imrdy about the solution to the Jewish issue already carried out, which was
the greatest operation on the body of Hungary.161 At this time, it barely discussed
the Jewry, while it kept readers posted regularly on the fate of the vacated ghetto
and the method for claiming Jewish property. It is typical of the situation that a
few days before the war front got to the city, the paper reported on the sale of the
stocks of goods found in Jewish shops.162 To be fair, the path taken by Dunntl
157 Ismeretlen tettesek vandl puszttsa a mgocsi zsid temetben (Vandalism and destruction in the Jewish
graveyard of Mgocs). D, year 33, issue no. 183 (14 August 1943) p. 5
158 Cf.: BIB 1986, p. 637
159 Eltnt egy pcsi utcanv (A street name disappears from Pcs). D, year 34, issue no. 150 (6 July 1944) p. 6
160 D, (13 August 1944) p. 4
161 Vitz Imrdy, Bla: Mint a vros dszpolgra, Pcshez tartoznak szmtom magam (As honorary citizen of
Pcs, I count myself as belonging to the city). D, year 34, issue no. 155 (12 July 1944) p. 3 A member of
the Pcs judiciary used the operation metaphor already in April 1938 during the debate on the 1st anti-Jewish
Act. Az tves terv s a zsidkrds (The five-year plan and the Jewish issue). D, year 28, issue no. 83 (13
April 1938) p. 3
162 A zsid zletek kszleteinek kirustsa (Sales of stocks of Jewish shops). D, year 34, issue no. 269 (26
November 1944) p. 2
CEC_konyv.indd 149
149
2016.06.10. 8:36:56
Churches Holocaust
was certainly not the only eligible path; Szigetvri Hrlap (Szigetvr News) reported
on the death marches in dramatic articles on its front page, and though it could
not openly side with Jews it published fulminatory opinions on the petty and profitmongering Christians who demanded Jewish property.163
4. Conclusion
It seems that the positions taken by ecclesiastical newspapers on the Jewish issue
were determined by the changes in the national and international political situation. Numerus clausus and the 1st anti-Jewish Act lay well with the societal needs
articulated by these papers, but the weight of the issue in itself would not have
provided impetus either to the editorial offices or the local society. In my opinion,
this is substantiated by the fact that none of the newspapers developed any independent arguments in favour of additional anti-Jewish acts and, mainly, of the
deportation of the Jewry, and were unable to make reference to any local details or
developments. Newspapers represented their own values as long as they could, but
after the spring of 1944, they either turned their backs on public issues or became
mouthpieces for power.
163 E.g.: Beteljesedett (It is done). Szigetvri Hrlap, year 6, issue no. 18 (6 May 1944) p. 1 A zsidkrds.
Vlasz egy nvtelen levlre (The Jewish issue. Answer to an anonymous letter). Szigetvri Hrlap, year 6, issue
no. 22 (3 June 1944) p. 4
150
CEC_konyv.indd 150
2016.06.10. 8:36:56
Gabriel Andreescu
The creation of Greater Romania after the First World War, in 1918, had a major impact on the Romanian Orthodox Church (ROC). On 23 April 1919, the Metropolitan
of Transylvania and the Holy Synod of Bucharest united, and in 1925 the ROC was
organized as a Patriarchate. This resulted in a new dynamism within ROC structures
and the Orthodox clergy, and in an increased interest in publishing. Each diocese
wished to have its own magazine, or at least a newssheet, with an unofficial literary
section, along the church magazines with a long history and renown. An important
number of parishes even printed their own parish newssheet, meant to disseminate
among the faithful the thoughts and advice of a priest, who feels too few listen to
his words from the pulpit.1 In an article from 1928 Al. T. Bogoane summarizes the
atmosphere that led to a multiplication of religious publication under ROC aegis:
After the war, new horizons open [for the religious press], with many current interests. The establishment of new dioceses, as well as the different religious needs
of the parishioners, and then there are academic considerations to add to this all
these led to an increase in the number of religious periodicals after the war, a large
increase over the number of those before the war.2
The theologian adds several thoughts on the main purpose and the characteristics of the religious press: pursuing a program that is very broad and varied,
which could have as its final goal the religious education of future generations,
collaboration towards the development of different theological disciplines, that are
lagging behind in our country and the fight against other religious movements:
as a result of the war, a wave of faithlessness came over the Christians here;
there are attempts to topple old beliefs; different sectarians have created nests here
1 The Religious Press, Revista Teologic, 1925, p. 221.
2 Al. T. Bogoane, Publicaiile religioase perioodice din Romnia de dup rzboiu [Religious Periodicals in postwar Romania], Biserica Ortodox Romn, no. 3 (564), March 1928, pp. 270.
CEC_konyv.indd 151
151
2016.06.10. 8:36:56
Churches Holocaust
and there and, taking advantage of the poverty and wavering faith of the faithful, they
attract many proselytes. And from this a new interest for the theological literature:
stopping and combating the different deviations from the Orthodox faith (which can
be observed in the dioceses from Transylvania and Bessarabia).3
The characterization of the religious press made by Al. T. Bogoane in 1928 is
true of Orthodox publications throughout the entire interwar period: Looking at it
from this perspective, we cannot expect from our church press an eminently scholarly character, nor a purely religious one, instead it has, rather, a very pronounced
character of social Christian press, within the bounds of the program sketched and
still being sketched by the ethnic life of our people, of course. This social character is concentrated, to a surprising extent, on expressing hostility towards all
that is perceived as an opponent of Orthodoxy. Almost all publications not entirely
dedicated to printing official decisions and internal ROC issues call for combating
Protestants, freemasons and atheists, Greek-Catholics and Roman-Catholics, etc.
One can also notice a slow evolution of the attitude towards Jews, which becomes
more and more hostile with the passage of time.
One issue that deserves special attention is the fact that the publications printed under the aegis of the ROC are just one segment of the press interested in religious topics. One example can suggest the scale of the phenomenon. On the topic
of faith and under this name, between 1920 and 1944, the following periodicals
were published: Credina [The Faith] in Arad (1940-1943), a weekly student publication in Brila (1923), one publication in Bucharest (1927-1928) and another
publication from Bucharest with the same title but published between 1933-1938,
the publication of the National Party of Nicolae Iorga (1927), one publication in
Hui (1932-1935), a national, cultural, economic and social news sheet in Reghin
(1933), a news sheet belonging to the National Party organization in Rmnicu Srat,
a news sheet belonging to the Nationalist-Democratic Party in Trgu-Jiu (19211923). Titles mentioning faith also include: Credin i fapte [Faith and Facts],
in Iai (1932), Credina Gorjului [The Faith of Gorj], an independent publication for
cultural action and citizen militancy (1935), Credin i munc [Faith and Labor], a
magazine of the Romanian Youth, a magazine of the (Girls-only) School for Teachers
in Buzu (1940) and another with the same title for the School for Teachers in Cluj
(1939), Credina Naional [The National Faith], news sheet of the National Party
in County Tutova, Brlad (1925) and another with an identical name belonging to
the National Party in Covurlui, Galai (1931), Credina Naionalist [The Nationalist
Faith], a news sheet of the Nationalist -Democratic Party in County Covurlui, Galai
(1922-1923) and the one in Trgu-Jiu (1921), Credina Noastr [Our Faith], an independent gazette for spiritual and national militancy from Bli (1936-1937), an3 Ibidem.
152
CEC_konyv.indd 152
2016.06.10. 8:36:56
by Gabriel Andreescu
other in Bucharest (1933), a publication for nationalist militancy of the same name
in Rmnicu-Vlcea (1925-1937), a publication for the support of cultural and national issues in Rmnicu-Vlcea (1943-1944), Credina Ortodox [The Orthodox
Faith], from Bucureti (1942-1943) and a news sheet for spiritual development
with the same name from Roman, Cernui and Bli (1931-1932, 1940), Credina
strmoeasc [The Ancestral Faith], a religious news sheet for the people, Galai
(1937) and one in Hui (1934-1944).
Leading the pro-Orthodoxist secular press are the well-known magazines Gndirea [The Thought],4 Cuvntul [The Word],5 Sfarm Piatr [Stone-Crusher],6 and
others, published under the aegis of well-known Orthodoxist cultural personalities,
like Nichifor Crainic and Radu Gyr, or as propaganda arms of the Legionary Movement. Inevitably, the publications appearing under the aegis of the ROC discuss
and find inspiration in their secular sisters. The latter are constantly quoted and
mentioned in the religious press. Some ROC periodicals, chief among them the official magazine of the Synod, Biserica Ortodox Romn [The Romanian Orthodox
Church], have sections dedicated to reviewing the content of pro-Orthodox secular
publications.
The types of secular messages that are most interesting to ROC magazines
are exemplified by the article signed by Nichifor Crainic in the magazine Sfarm
Piatr [Stone-Crusher] and then republished by the magazine of the Romanian Orthodox diocese in Oradea, Legea romneasc [The Romanian Order]. The Orthodox magazine felt drawn to the following paragraph stroking its ego: In a country
where all national institutions are slowly ground away by the mildew of democracy,
the Orthodox Church alone is a great force that builds a civilization and develops
souls. It is the glory of our priesthood at a time when it is most struck by the masonic
villain.7 But together with the praise, it embraces the other conclusions of the
philosopher: We are anti-democratic. Today any Romanian who loves his country
has to be anti-democratic. Our aversion towards this cursed regime doesnt stem
from a theoretical reason. Because in theory democracy is a sublime regime, if you
want. In practice, it is the safest method: to destroy slowly and stealthily a state, a
country, a people.8
4 From 1926 on, the editor-in-chief position at the magazine Gndirea was occupied by Nichifor Crainic, who
instilled an Orthodox-traditionalist orientation.
5 The magazine Cuvntul had as editor-in-chief the pro-legionary philosopher Nae Ionescu. Some Orthodoxist
authors like Mircea Vulcnescu and Nichifor Crainic also published in this magazine.
6 Sfarm-Piatr (Stone-Crusher), was an anti-Semitic magazine published during the late 1930s and early
1940s.
7 Nichifor Crainic, Democraie i altar [Democracy and the sanctuary], Legea romneasc, no. 7-8, 1-15 April
1936, pp. 82-84.
8 Ibidem.
CEC_konyv.indd 153
153
2016.06.10. 8:36:57
Churches Holocaust
The religious press also references non-religious publications, when the latter
discuss relevant topics. For example, the monthly Tomis republished an article from
the newspaper Universul [The Universe] when the title and content supported its
policies: The fight against the sects in Transylvania.9
The articles of Orthodox theologians like Dumitru Stniloae also find their
way into magazines like Gndirea [The Thought] and Cuvntul [The Word]. It can be
assumed that the ROC press had some influence, in this manner, over the secular
Orthodoxist press and that, correspondingly, the content of the ROC press reflected in a significant way the debates and assumptions of the entire Orthodoxist press.
154
CEC_konyv.indd 154
2016.06.10. 8:36:57
by Gabriel Andreescu
were the pagans, the second line of enemies is an atheist who hurls at the Church
of Christ all kinds of forced misconstructions of the Christian doctrine, misrepresent
the teachings of the Lord through various convolutions entirely alien in fact to the essence of divine truth13. Enemies also are some artists who have greatly offended
religious sentiment and belief in general and their work: Fine arts through their
generous shapes and the nakedness of human bodies, drama, through some of
its plays frivolous to the point of immorality, choreography, through its scandalous
games of today, decorative arts, through the images of naked bodies, film, through
its nerve-wracking, passions-inciting, cruelty- and crime-inducing movies, graphic
arts, through the pornographic and humorous literature depicting some weaknesses of the clergy, inseparable from human nature 14.
Socialist, Communist and Bolshevik parties are added to this list, as well as
cremation men who trample and decide that man shall no longer return into the
ground, but into fire and shall become ash 15. The behavior towards the Freemasonry, seen as a dangerous adversary by the ROC, deserves a separate discussion, given the stereotypes regarding the relationship between the Freemasonry
and the Jewish people.
The internal enemies are seen as extremely dangerous: the schismatics, the
heretics and the members of sects (or even unworthy priests): The strikes against
our religion do not only come from those, previous sons of the ancestral Church,
who have strayed, but also from wicked priests, snipped off the body of the militant
Church by embracing Protestant views and beliefs, welcomed and encouraged by
sectarians and heretics, happy with the diversion and the laceration right into the
Orthodox priestly corps. Their emergence on the frontlines of the fight against the
mother Church, just like that of traitors of a country against their brothers, can be
judged and classified by any unbiased and sane man16.
The official publication of the ROC states itself that the other great denominations are also very dangerous:
With the Roman-Catholics of the Pope in Rome and later the Protestants however, the Romanian Orthodox Church had life-and-death-heavy battles. And not only
did it have such battles in the past, but it is threatened even today, in its dogmatic
and missionary canonic organization, within the unified state of the Romanian nation, by Roman-Catholics, through the existence of their subversive Church in our
13
14
15
16
Idem, p. 415.
Idem, p. 416.
Idem, p. 417.
Idem, p. 420.
CEC_konyv.indd 155
155
2016.06.10. 8:36:57
Churches Holocaust
midst and especially through the apple of discord thrown between us Romanians
and the United Church in Transylvania; and by Protestants through the numerous
sects with the same tendencies toward dissolving and destroying both church and
nation17.
There is almost no year without the publication of articles that accuse nonOrthodox religious groups, and the hostile references to sects often appear in
series of successive issues of the magazine. The word combat is one of the most
frequently used words by Orthodox theologians. Tolerance is castigated. Transylvanian publications are also anti-Hungarian and hostile to Transylvanian Saxons. Within important publications, throughout the interwar period, positions against religious
minorities number in the hundreds, while anti-Semitic articles number in the tens.
One significant aspect is the almost general support for the intervention of
the police forces of the state. The expulsion from the country of sects is supported
even by the more balanced publications, like Foaia diecezan from Caransebe:
The ultimate interest of the Romanian state prevails over any kind of compassion
for some of its citizens that want to secure their frontline places among the chosen
on the back of the state. Within the state, which is accountable to no one when it
defends itself against dangers, the slow and gentle evangelism of priests may be
discussed from all sides.18
Thinking of social life in exclusionary terms was an integral part of the ROC
life, to the point where the Synod decreed that believers should be stopped from
reading the so-called anti-Christian press, and Orthodox publications supported
such an idea.19
It is interesting that anti-Muslim articles were rare. Once in a while neutral information was published on, for example, Islamism20 or the reform of the religion of
Mohamed.21 One single unfriendly reference to Turkish people can be found in the
magazine Tomisul, which belonged to the Diocese of Constana: The Turkish, in
their fanaticism for their law, want to introduce the Gregorian calendar and our peo-
17 Arhiereu Grigore L. Botoneanu, Biserica Ortodox Romn i celelalte confesiuni [The Romanian Orthodox Church and other confessions], Biserica Ortodox Romn, no. 5 (566), May 1928, p. 387.
18 Dr. tefan Cioroianu, Statul i sectele [The State and the sects], Foaia diecezan, no. 8, 25 February 1940,
pp. 1-2.
19 See Rzboi mpotriva presei anticretine [War against the anti-Christian press], Foaia diecezan, no. 49, 5
November 1937, p. 2: Against this press us the defenders of the Church have the duty to assume a defensive
stance, to denounce the danger and to prevent it in the world of believers.
20 C. Rudnean, Islamismul [Islamism], Foaia diecezan, no. 25, 30 June 1929, pp.2-3.
21 Reforma religiunii mohamedane [The Mohammedan religion Reform], Foaia diecezan, no. 32, 5 August
1928, p. 5.
156
CEC_konyv.indd 156
2016.06.10. 8:36:57
by Gabriel Andreescu
ple dont want to understand especially those in Bessarabia22 One reason for
this peaceful attitude is that the ROC didnt perceive Islam as a competing religion.
Another is the century-old tradition of cooperation between the Ottoman Empire
and Christian states on protecting Muslims and Christians, respectively.
CEC_konyv.indd 157
157
2016.06.10. 8:36:57
Churches Holocaust
ironic,26 up to the point where it started to highlight their guilt.27 Some events involving Jews were presented in a neutral manner: the Vaticans statement against antiSemitism,28 the preparation of a revised edition of the Bible.29 In 1928 Bishop Grigore
L. Botoneanu explains the hostility against Jews in national, not religious, terms:
With regard to the Jews, who infiltrated the Romanian states much later and
inconspicuously, there was never a question of a religious fight. It is only in our times
that a national fight emerged, with a moral and religious background, because the
invasion of Jews from all sides over our borders and their tendency to dissolve and
discredit have started to be a serious threat to us.30
Two articles by theologian I. Mihlcescu, published a few years apart, made an
analytical but also empathetic effort regarding Jews. One of his texts from 1923 is a
rather positive account of the presence of Jews throughout Romanian history.31 But
the theologian stays within the Orthodox dogmatic view. Writing about the relationship between Christianity and Judaism, Mihlcescu concludes: The superiority of
Christianity and the areas of disagreement are easily seen.32
The most important work published in the official publication of the Synod (Biserica Ortodox din Romnia) is an article from 1937 about Freemasonry, which is
described as a group of organizations dominated by Jews.33 The article embodied
the official discourse of the Romanian Orthodox Church on this topic and preceded
its series of actions meant to outlaw the organization. This position goes against the
opinions expressed in the 20s in the magazine by theologian I. Mihlcescu.34 The
view of the Orthodox press regarding the relationship between Jews and the Freemasonry has such important stakes that it deserves a separate discussion.
26 Ceva mai practic pentru dezlegarea chestiunii evreieti [Something more practical for addressing the Jewish
Problem], Biserica Ortodox Romn, no. 10, July 1923, p. 735.
27 Antisemitism cretin? sau cea mai cumplit erezie a veacului [Christian anti-Semitism? Or the worst heresy of the century], no. 10, 1926, pp. 619-620; Zbrleal evreiasc n aprarea unui haham [Jewish tantrum
in defense of a Jewish innkeeper], Biserica Ortodox Romn, no. 5, May 1931, p. 471.
28 Vaticanul contra antisemitismului [The Vatican against anti-Semitism], Biserica Ortodox Romn, no. 5,
May 1928, p. 474.
29 Teologii evrei prepar o ediie revzut a Bibliei [Jewish theologians are preparing a revised edition of the
Bible], Biserica Ortodox Romn, no. 1 (574), January 1929, pp. 124.
30 Arhiereu Grigore L. Botoneanu, Biserica Ortodox Romn i celelalte confesiuni [The Romanian Orthodox Church and the other denominations], Biserica Ortodox Romn, no. 5, May 1928, p. 387.
31 I. Mihlcescu, Iudeii n Statul Romn [Jews within the Romanian State], Biserica Ortodox Romn, no. 8,
May 1923, pp. 545-554.
32 Pr. I. I. Mihlcescu, Raportul dintre cretinism i iudaism [The relationship between Christianity and Judaism],
Biserica Ortodox Romn, no. 3, March 1925, pp. 137-143.
33 Ce este Francmasoneria [What is the Freemasonry], Biserica Ortodox Romn, no. 1-2, 1937, pp. 1-22.
34 I. Mihlcescu, Francmasonii i Biserica [Freemasons and the Church], Biserica Ortodox Romn, no. 11,
August 1923, pp. 756-554; I. Mihlcescu, Din trecutul francmasoneriei [The past of Freemasonry], Biserica
Ortodox Romn, no. 12 (510), September 1923, p. 791.
158
CEC_konyv.indd 158
2016.06.10. 8:36:57
by Gabriel Andreescu
CEC_konyv.indd 159
159
2016.06.10. 8:36:57
Churches Holocaust
Diocese Bulletin] has the richest material, but it is ambivalent. Neutral articles are
published,43 as well as positive44 and anti-Semitic ones: a critical text regarding a
complaint filed by Romanian Jews with the League of Nations,45 one about the danger represented for [Christians] by Judaism with its billions of tentacles.46
Lumintorul [The Luminary] from Bessarabia is almost entirely hostile to Jews:
The fight between Jews and Christianity is not just economic and even less just
political,47 Jews regard all old religions with contempt, considering true only the one
given by God to its chosen people ,48 the Talmud, proves the hate and the malice
that Jews feel towards the goyim [non-Jews],49 Judaism creates animosity between
Christians and all other religions,50 the Jews have an atavistic inclination to pervert
the truth, to present everything to the world in a manner required solely by their predatory interests, and in particular in their well-known tendency to call all Romanian leaders `anti-Semitic`,51 Judaism with all its ramifications, as a religious concept, is by
principle an enemy of Christianity and could never be friendly to it,52 priests should
not welcome into the Christian community the Talmudic devils.53
Priest Codrat Ra expressed his enthusiasm that splitting Palestine into three
parts, out of which only one of the smaller parts, the size of one of our counties, became the Jewish state, signifies the death of the Jewish national state.54 There
was also one positive article however. In his long article from 1928, spread over
43 Elevii evrei scutii [Jewish students exempt], Foaia diecezan, no. 4, 22 January 1933, p. 7; Evreii nu mai
pot fi botezai [Jews cannot be baptized], Foaia diecezan, no. 31, 4 August 1940, p. 7; Reglementarea
situatiei evreilor in Romnia [Regulating the Jewish situation in Romania], Foaia diecezan, no. 32, 11 August
1940, p. 7.
44 Recldirea Palestinei [The rebuilding of Palestine], Foaia diecezan, no. 30, 25 July/7 August 1921,
p.5.; Not only can Jews enter the empire of grace of the Savior, but they must do so. (Pr. Marcu Bnescu,
Mesianismul Israelului convertit [The Messianism of converted Israel], Foaia diecezan, no. 4, 23 January
1938, pp. 2-3).
45 Plngerea evreilor la Liga Naiunilor [The complaint filed by Jews at the League of Nations], Foaia diecezan,
no. 6, 6 February 1938, p. 8.
46 Cretinism i iudaism [Christianity and Judaism], Foaia diecezan, no. 51, 22 December 1935, pp. 7-17.
47 Demidechi Grigorie, Rolul evreilor n adventism [The Role of Jews in Adventism], Lumintorul, no. 19-22,
July-August, 1924, pp. 76-84.
48 C. Popovici, Biserica lui Hristos i dumanii ei (I) [The Church of Christ and its enemies (I)], Lumintorul, no.
22, 15 November 1929, pp. 31-37.
49 Bishop Alexei of Saratov (translated by Pr. Codrat Ra), Morala Talmudului [The morality of the Talmud],
Lumintorul, no. 12, 15 June 1931, pp. 648-656.
50 St. I Bejan, Cretinismul i mosaismul ca factori sociali [Christianity and Judaism as social factors],
Lumintorul, no. 24, 15 December 1931, pp. 1216-1223.
51 C.T., Problema palestinian [The Palestinian Issue], Lumintorul, no. 9, September 1937, pp. 522-528.
52 St. Sergiu Bejan, Cretinismul i dumanii lui [Christianity and its enemies], Lumintorul, no. 2, February
1940, pp. 72-79.
53 D. Cndu, Ce spun canoanele despre primire n Cretinism a Evreilor [What the canons say about welcoming Jews into Christianity], Lumintorul, no. 7-8, July-August 1942, pp. 196-205.
54 Preot Codrat Ra., Prbuirea sionismului [The collapse of Zionism], Lumintorul, no. 10, October 1937,
pp. 611-612
160
CEC_konyv.indd 160
2016.06.10. 8:36:57
by Gabriel Andreescu
three issues of the magazine, I. Tocan described the role played by Jews in the
religious evolution of the world in these terms: The Jewish people was chosen by
God for a certain providential purpose. Among others the main purpose was for this
people, uniquely defended and protected by God, to be the light for all peoples, that
is to receive for keeping the true monotheistic religion.55
At the pinnacle of Orthodox anti-Semitism we find the publications from Transylvania. I have already mentioned the weekly (later bimonthly) Legea Romneasc
[The Romanian Order], which published anti-Semitic texts only in the 20s, with one
exception. Revista Teologic [The Theological Journal] took over in the 30s with
three texts. In an article from 1931, Prof. Nicolae Neaga concluded that Israel fulfills its religious role and stops existing as a chosen people.56 In an article in which
he made the point that the entire Freemason nomenclature, being Jewish, proves
yet again the great influence of Jews within the Freemasonry, Grigorie T. Marcu
concluded: Freemasonry is put in the pillory.57 And this was a commentary by
prof. Nicolae Neaga: As anti-Semitics fighting Jews, I think we should not stop with
the Jews, but also fight the Old Testament, in order to save our traditions.58
The most aggressively anti-Semitic publication, from the country and from
Transylvania, was Telegraful roman [The Romanian Telegraph]. The importance of
this publication within the Orthodox press and within the anti-Semitic movement was
so significant that it deserves a separate analysis.
Regional differences
The impact of regional differences on the attitudes promoted by Orthodox publications is easily discernable. One sensitive issue was the situation of Bessarabia,
seen as a backward region or, at best, one in need of guidance from the Center.
The inferiority-superiority complex at the basis of the relation between the two
Orthodox communities is perfectly captured by the answer given by priest Mihail
Vasilache in an article from 1930 to some criticisms from Archimandrite Scriban59
55 . Pr. I. Tocan, Influena religioas a mozaismului asupra lumii pgne (I) [The religious influence of Judaism
over the pagan world (I)], Lumintorul, no. 13, 1 July, 1928, pp. 47-55.
56 Prof. Nicolae Neaga, Mai exist popor ales? [Is there still a Chosen people?], Revista Teologic, no. 3,
March 1931, p. 82.
57 Grigorie T. Marcu, Fracmasoneria pus la stlp [Freemasonry put in the pillory], Revista Teologic, no. 7-10,
July-October 1936, pp. 349-353.
58 Prof. Dr. Nicolae Neaga, Antisemitism i Vechiul Testament [Anti-Semitism and the Old Testament], Revista
Teologic, no. 4, April 1937, p. 147.
59 Archimandrite Scriban had the important function of editor-in-chief of the magazine Biserica Ortodox Romn
[The Romanian Orthodox Church], the magazine of the Holy Synod.
CEC_konyv.indd 161
161
2016.06.10. 8:36:58
Churches Holocaust
regarding the clergy from Bessarabia. Wondering Why so much disdain?, in the
beginning, filled with a certain indignation, the priest remembers that a big part
of the press and the public opinion always shows this duplicity towards Bessarabia:
on one hand they sing the praises of this forlorn province, which is ours and which
cannot be stolen by anyone, and on the other hand, they shout with indignation
and disdain towards the innocent Bessarabians, always labeling them as Asian
Bolsheviks!60.
In Banat and in Dobrogea the impact of a multicultural tradition is discernable. Foaia diacenez [The Diocese Bulletin] of the Diocese of Caransebe mentioned communities other than the Orthodox one. It promoted the weekly Glasul
minoritilor [The Voice of Minorities], from Lugoj, which discussed minority issues in the Romanian language. Tomis [Tomis], the publication of the Diocese of
Constana, published empathetic articles on the Armenian, Bulgarian and Greek
community. Their Orthodox religion was certainly a factor.
The regional differences can also be noticed in the choice of groups and attitudes that these publications combat. Mitropolia Moldovei [The Metropolitan of
Moldavia] of the Archdiocese of Iai was particularly concerned with the sect of
stylists. The magazine ngerul [The Angel] of the clergy in the Diocese of Buzu
concentrated its anti-sectarian propaganda on the Adventists. All the publications in
Transylvania included numerous articles hostile to Catholicism, the Vatican Concordat, Greek-Catholics and Hungarians.
Given the small number of instances, it is difficult to quantify the regional variation in the anti-Semitism of publications. The Transylvanian press is an exception,
because it published anti-Semitic texts with a much higher frequency than the rest
of the country. This variation suggests that the anti-Semitism of publications was not
so much a motivation itself, as a result of the exclusivist nationalism that dominated
the Romanian Orthodox Church.
All Orthodox publications are exclusivist, but some dont publish anti-Semitic
articles
Many Orthodox publications, like the Calendar of the Archdiocese of Bucharest,61
only made place for religious decisions, statistics and announcements regarding in60 Priest Mihail Vasilache,De ce atta desconsiderare!? [Why so much disdain?], Lumintorul, no. 12, 15 June
1930, p. 734.
61 Published by the Romanian Patriarchate, Metropolitan of Ungrovlahia, throughout the period 1920-1944.
162
CEC_konyv.indd 162
2016.06.10. 8:36:58
by Gabriel Andreescu
ternal issues of the dioceses. The publications relevant to us however also included
articles, studies or information for the larger community.
The annual Directory of the Romanian Orthodox Theological Academy in
Caransebe, an essentially theological magazine, didnt include any anti-Semitic
articles between 1920 and 1941, the last year of publication. Its articles concentrated on the contemporary moral crisis62, sometimes embracing an extreme
position on the danger of parties, of Theater and of Cinema, and The biggest
danger is represented by the so-called modern dance. The publication is sympathetic towards Legionarism: True education is only possible within the family,
and later in organizations like Blood brotherhoods, the Legion.63 It resonated
with the declared values of the legionary state: Our national legionary State,
understanding the sacred purpose of women, calls upon women to follow their
purpose given by God .64
Noua Revist Bisericeasc [The New Ecclesiastical Review] published constant attacks against the Adventists and other sects. It advocated for an Orthodox
evangelization of the nation, for supporting the dominant position of the ROC within
the state, for financing church activities from the public budget, and it looked at
ethnic minorities only from the point of view of ROC interests in the organization of
religious education.65 But it was uninterested in Jewish issues.
Pstorul orthodox [The Orthodox Shepherd], which militated all through
the interwar period against sects in almost all its issues and embraced radical positions on the topic,66 doesnt give space to Jewish issues either. One
article from 1942 is an exception, where Baptisms of Jews are discussed.
The author states that The Church cannot prohibit baptisms, but the latter
cannot confer rights outside the sphere of action of the Church.67 The arguments are theological in nature, but also discuss the possible competition
with other denominations that may integrate Jews. In 1940, another author
62 See Priest Octavian Tursa, Chemarea i lupta pstorului de suflete mpotriva imoralitii timpului nostru [The
call and the fight of the pastor of souls against the lack of morality of our time], Anuarul Academiei Teologice
Ortodoxe Romne, pp. 270-324.
63 Anuarul Academiei Teologice Ortodoxe Romne, 1920-1939, p. 299.
64 Idem, p. 305.
65 Priest C. Gh. Vartolomeu, Minoritile etnice fa de biserica noastr naional [Ethnic minorities and our national church], An answer to an article by Cioranu Reforma colar; laicizarea nvmntului [School reform;
secularization of education], Noua Revist Bisericeasc, 1922, pp. 220-222.
66 The magazine supports a measure to force students belonging to different religious sects to attend Orthodox
religious education or that of another religious denomination: nc o msur salutar, cu care statul vine n
ajutorul Bisericii n lupta cu sectele [Another salutary measure, by which the state helps the Church in the fight
against sects], Pstorul ortodox, no. 3-4, March-April 1944, p. 194).
67 Iconom Marin D. Preoescu, Probleme delicate [Sensitive issues], Pstorul ortodox, no. 2-3, FebruaryMarch 1942, p. 54.
CEC_konyv.indd 163
163
2016.06.10. 8:36:58
Churches Holocaust
wrote about the positive social outcomes of Italian fascism,68 but without
discussing Jews.
The only article on Jewish issues in the magazine Tomis [Tomis] of the Diocese
of Constana in the entire interwar period is one that comments on the theology of
Israelites. On the other hand, the magazine is virulent against Adventists, Baptists
and other sectarians, as well as against Catholics, Greek-Catholics and Hungarian
revisionists at the other end of the country.
68 Dr. P. Popescu, Fascismul i religia [Fascism and religion], Pstorul ortodox, no. 6-9, June-August 1940,
pp.217-220.
69 Autorii atentatului de la Senat [The authors of the violent attempt on the Senate],, Legea Romneasc, no.
2, 14/27 November 1921, p. 5. The leader of the group, Max Goldstein, was indeed Jewish.
164
CEC_konyv.indd 164
2016.06.10. 8:36:58
by Gabriel Andreescu
Jewish materialism and the essence of Pharisees 70 and Jews in Palestine are
atheists.71, but one with a positive message also appeared: a Jewish problem
will exist as long as we live alongside each other. The solution of the problem is
not to convert Jews to Christianity but to find the conditions for a peaceful coexistence with them. Our attitude towards them can be none other than the one shown
by Christ: peace.72 The magazine published four anti-Semitic texts in 1923, three
hostile texts in 1924 and one short anti-Semitic text in 1925. Later Prof. Dr. V.
Lzrescu became editor-in-chief. Under his leadership no anti-Semitic texts were
published in Legea Romneasc. From 1933 on, Ioan Evuian, a diocesan councilor, took the helm of the publication. The only offensive text of the 30s was published at that time, Crucea i zvastica [The Cross and the Swastika], which stated
that Because the Christian people are in danger today in their being, peace and
culture from Jews, who are [] the deadly enemies of Christian law, the swastika is
the universal sign of the fight against Jews73
In January 1937, the editor-in-chief changed again: prof.dr. tefan Munteanu,
then prof.dr. Dimitrie Belu and later A. Drban, diocesan secretary. During these
years, when other mass media frequently found place for articles and short texts
hostile to Jews, Legea Romneasc didnt publish any anti-Semitic materials.
CEC_konyv.indd 165
165
2016.06.10. 8:36:58
Churches Holocaust
Exclusivist nationalism
Between 1934 and 1944 Dumitru Stniloae was solely in charge of the flagship
periodical Telegraful roman [The Romanian Telegraph]. In this biweekly magazine
that became a must-read of Transylvanian priests,76 the theologian promoted the
ideas of assimilationist nationalism: Nationalism is the Romanian soul permeated
by the consciousness of its rights and its mission on this Earth.77 Dumitru Stniloae
advocated for a nationalism centered on Orthodoxy and the ROC, in which the political power was called upon to assure nationalist and Christian discipline.78 He
was an ardent anti-Semitic, but fought equally against any religious community that
endangered the absolute domination of the Romanian Orthodox Church. He called
for outlawing Freemasons with an extraordinary harshness: ...Freemasonry [was]
like worms consuming the body of our State, bringing apathy into souls and decay of
our national unity, pouring the winning corrosive over the love of nation. Between all
of them there is a connection, all of them were united by the malicious conspiracy to
lead this nation to the grave.79
The opposition towards religious minorities is a widespread attitude among
the ROC clergy, but the Telegraful romn magazine expressed an ethnic hostility towards everything non-Romanian. Sending the Roma into work camps was
considered a welcomed act. News like we are told that in Ortie 74 local
Gypsies, old and young, that became a material and moral burden upon the city,
were transported to work camps are conveyed with undisguised satisfaction.80
The German and the Hungarian ethnic minorities were attacked constantly in the
magazine.
Dumitru Stniloae, called by his apologists the theologian of love,81 viewed
sectarians with anger: Sects are all that is most dangerous for the unity of the people and its future. They grind slowly the massive rock of Romanism, turning it into
dust that will easily be swept from existence by the first wave from the outside, or
scattered in all directions by the first brisk wind.82 He asked for the repression of
Baptists, Adventists, Pentecostals and the other religious groups treated as sects:
when the government comes with an ordinance to disband the sects that split
76 Ctlin Bogdan, Omorul serafic (II) Cazul Stniloae [The seraphic murder (II) The case of Stniloae], Revista
22, 2 February 1996.
77 Dr.D.S., Biserica i naionalismul [The Church and nationalism], Telegraful romn, no. 28, 5 July 1936,
p. 2.
78 Editorial, Disciplina naionalismului [The discipline of nationalism], Telegraful romn, no. 2, 9 January 1938.
79 Dumitru Stniloaie , Restaurarea romnismului n destinul su istoric [Restoring Romanism and its historic
destiny], Telegraful romn, no. 39, 22 septembrie 1940.
80 Scpai de o povar [Get rid of a burden], Telegraful roman, 27 September 1942.
81 Ctlin Bogdan, [The seraphic murder (II) The case of Stniloae], Revista 22, 2 February 1996.
82 Editorial, Pericolul sectelor [The danger of sects], Telegraful romn, no. 10, 6 March 1938, p.1.
166
CEC_konyv.indd 166
2016.06.10. 8:36:58
by Gabriel Andreescu
our nation and create anarchy within our state, we will be able to greet a new act of
great national importance.83
The theologian called Catholicism the mask and the instrument of Hungarian
irredentism and asked that the Vatican concordat should be denounced. Beyond
the thesis itself, the language shows the intensity of the hate towards Catholics,
whom he condemns for ... the shameless audacity, the wickedness and the scorn
with which we have been treated as a state by the leaders of the Catholic State.84
Dumitru Stniloae is a totalitarian thinker that has fought for making the Orthodox religion a state religion, and for education to follow Orthodox principles85.
According to the theologian, attending an Orthodox church should become a national obligation.86 He asked that education be Christianized by Christianizing
the pedagogy professors in universities.87
Towards the end of the war, when the Soviet troops had entered the country, Dumitru Stniloae adapted the policy of the magazine to the new situation. He
exhibited an unexpected opportunism, given the haughty posture of this militant
theologian: it is no wonder that the meeting at that time [the passing of the Russian armies through Transylvanias towns and villages in 1848] between our people
and the Russian army was engraved into the hearts of our elders as a most powerful
memory. Ever since, our people have been convinced the Russian people have a
good and kind heart.88 All of a sudden, the nationalistic magazine began to discover the qualities of the working mans soul.89 At the same time, the texts about
Hitler, previously complimentary, became contemptuous.
At the end of the 1940s, Dumitru Stniloae actively participated in the activities aimed at destroying the Romanian Church United with Rome (Greek-Catholic),
a goal of the ROC that he also supported during the interwar period. Outlawing
83 Editorial, Disciplina naionalismului [The discipline of nationalism], Telegraful romn no. 2, 9 January 1938,
p. 1.
84 D. Stniloaie, Catolicismul: masca i unealta iridentei maghiare [Catholicism: the mask and the gear of the
Hungarian irredentism], Telegraful romn, no. 9-10, 30 January 1932 pp. 1-2,.
85 In this sense, the contention that Stniloae disliked especially the Jews is irrelevant (see on this Ctlin
Bogdan, Omorul serafic (II) Cazul Stniloae [The seraphic murder (II) The case of Stniloae], Revista 22, 2
February 1996).
86 Editorial, Mersul la biseric obligaiune naional [Going to church - national bond], Telegraful romn no.
11, 13 March 1938, p.1.
87 Editorial, ncretinarea nvmntului [Christianization of education], Telegraful romn no. 21, 18 May
1938, p.1.
88 D. Stniloaie, Rusia i Ardealul [Russia and Transylvania], Telegraful romn, no. 37, 13 September 1944,
p. 1.
89 D. Stniloaie, Sufletul muncitorului [The soul of the worker], Telegraful romn no. 76, 24 October 1944,
p. 1.
CEC_konyv.indd 167
167
2016.06.10. 8:36:58
Churches Holocaust
the RCUR was only possible once the totalitarian Communist regime came into
power in 1948.
Blatant Anti-Semitism
From 1920 to 1934, under the editorship of George Proca, Telegraful romn had a
complicated policy towards the Semitic theme. In 1922, Tr. Scorobe published an
extensive article, over three issues of the magazine, discussing in a positive way the
historical importance of Jews. According to the writer, the Jewish people had the
merit of becoming famous in human history for the valuable services it had provided
to human life and progress.90
After around a year and a half, a short text amalgamates Bolshevics and
Jews and states that The Russian colossus will at some point wake up from the
state in which it was brought by Jews and then it will shake itself and crush all
the Semitic parasites that have climbed onto its head.91 In 1924, a short text
decries the fact that after a brawl in a Jewish tavern the Police found the fault
was on the part of the Romanian.92 In 1927, N. Neaga praised the old Jewish
way of educating children and more generally the attitude of the Jewish community: Looking at the ancient and troubled history of this people, we can
notice an extraordinary phenomenon: because it values its ancestral faith and
fights to preserve its national customs.93 But a year later, another short text
accuses Freemason lodges of being the concealed political weapon of Jewish
international finance.94
From 1934 on, once Dumitru Stniloae became editor-in-chief of the magazine, no new positive texts on Jews were published. Only anti-Semitic texts were
now available in the pages of the Telegraful romn, as the theologian scrutinized not only ideological leanings, but also every single line published there.95
90 Tr. Scorobe, nsemntatea istoric a Evreilor [The historical significance of the Jews], Telegraful romn no.
31-32, 22 April (5 May) 1922, p. 3-5 and no. 33, 26 April (9 May) pp. 2-3, no. 34, 29 April/ (12 May) pp.
1-2, 1922.
91 Liga pentru lupta in contra antisemitismului [The League for the fight against anti-Semitism], Telegraful
romn no. 83, 10-23 October 1923, p. 3.
92 ndrzneala unor evrei [The audacity of some Jews], Telegraful romn no. 40-41, 23 May 1924.
93 N. Neaga, Educaia copiilor la vechii evrei [The education of children of ancient Jews],, Telegraful romn
no. 66-67, 16 September 1927, pp. 2-3.
94 Despre Fracmasonerie [On Freemasonry], Telegraful romn no. 70, 3 October 1928, p. 1.
95 Ctlin Bogdan, Omorul serafic (II) Cazul Stniloae [[The seraphic murder (II) The case of Stniloae], Revista
22, 2 February 1996.
168
CEC_konyv.indd 168
2016.06.10. 8:36:59
by Gabriel Andreescu
The anti-Semitic propaganda took many forms, direct and indirect. The pages
of the Telegrafului romn defended the most representative anti-Semitics of the interwar period: writers shed tears in remembrance of Ioan Moa and Vasile Marin96,
and celebrated professor A.C. Cuza.97 Ion Antonescu, often eulogized, is usually
called the Leader.98 Adolf Hitler was himself mentioned and praised as a great
statesman.99. Under his leadership, the German people traverses a new and characteristic era [] It could be said that the main point of the Hitler revolution resides
in the words of its undisputed leader: You are nothing. Your people are everything .100 In particular, Hitler was also praised for ending the political power of the
Catholic Church in Germany.101
As for the anti-Semitic discourse of the magazine and its editor-in-chief, it contains extremely violent phrases. In 1938, Dumitru Stniloae made statements that
would soon gain a tragic connotation: All countries should see that it is in their interest and that of world peace that they do not become tools of International Jewry,
but to start by mutual agreement to clean the air of a microbe that fosters continued
discord among peoples.102
Dumitru Stniloae welcomes signs of this cleansing every time they can be
seen in the country: The measures taken or announced during its first days in power
[of the Octavian Goga government] validate this belief. Through one of these measures he purified Romanian intellectual life of the poisonous miasma of Judaism. The
cancellation of over hundred thousand licenses from rural Jewish tavern owners will
banish poverty and disease from the villages of Moldova and Maramure. By decongesting our cities and our commercial and industrial enterprises of the colonies of
parasites that came to our country after the war we will provide health and breath to
the entire Romanian life.103
96 Lacrimi n amintirea lui Ioan Moa [Tears in memory of Ion Mota], Telegraful romn, no. 5, 31 January 1937,
p. 1.
97 Srbtorirea dlui profesor A.C. [Celebrating Professor A.C. ], Telegraful romn, no. 16, 18 April 1937, p. 2.
98 D. Stniloae, Cuvntul Conductorului [The word of the Leader], Telegraful romn, no. 15, 6 April 1941,
p. 1.
99 Ce a spus marele brbat de stat Adolf Hitler [What said the great statesman Adolf Hitler], Telegraful romn,
no. 12, 22 March 1942, p. 1; Darul fcut de Fhrerul Adolf Hitler [Fuhrer Adolf Hitler`s gift], Telegraful
romn, no. 38, 20 September 1942, p. 4.
100 D. Clugr, Ideea social i tineretul din Germania [The social idea and the youth in Germany], Telegraful
romn, no. 1, 2 January 1938, p. 1.
101 Dr. N.T., Biserica Romei n Germania lui Hitler [The Church of Rome in Hitlers Germany], Telegraful romn,
no. 52, 15 December 1935, p. 4.
102 Editorial,Necesitatea soluionrii problemei evreeti [The need to solve the Jewish Problem], Telegraful
romn, no. 3, 10 January 1938, pp. 1-2.
103 Editorial, Disciplina naionalismului [The Discipline of Nationalism],, Telegraful romn, no. 2, 9 January
1938.
CEC_konyv.indd 169
169
2016.06.10. 8:36:59
Churches Holocaust
At the end of the 1930s, the Jewish issue had become an obsession of the
magazine. One example appears in this paragraph: The Jewish issue is the order
of the day all over the world. It would be natural and good if it, this issue, with all its
seriousness, would not delay too much here either, because we are, in terms of the
proportion of Jews, the second country on Earth.104
The preparations for war are blamed on the Jewish finance. It fuels the war
propaganda. For years this finance has worked to make national states capitulate
before its money, so powerful in the past. Its efforts are supported by the stock exchange, the press and many news agencies.105
Dumitru Stniloae welcomed the seizure of Jewish property, describing it as
an expression of the will of the people: General Ion Antonescu put his finger on
the problem through these words; he gave voice to the feeling that dominates the
breadth of the Romanian soul.106 The theologian of love went as far as to welcome
the final solution in its Transnistrian version: The newspaper Raza from Bessarabia prints the joyful news that the last Jewish convoy from Chiinu is heading towards the Russian steppe, and thus the city got rid of the Jewish cancer. According
to the aforementioned newspaper, the departure of the Jews took place with the
same swiftness in the other cities of Bessarabia. So it should be in Bessarabia
and all the other provinces of the country.107 The Romanian public opinion was
informed with satisfaction that: The Jewish population, eliminated from the villages,
is guided towards concentration camps, so it would no longer exploit the work and
the products of Christians.108
In fact, Dumitru Stniloae and his magazine went further concerning the Jewish problem than the domestic nationalist leanings in whose name they pretended
to speak. They supported all actions against Jews outside the country: The removal
of all Jews from the trades that are important to the life of the people, said the [Slovak] minister, is the commandment of this moment. The Jews excluded from mainstream activities will be used, to the last one, in other fields of work, where they will
only do manual labor.109. They supported a final solution throughout Europe: the
fate of the Jews in Europe is already decided. The fact that one can still see, here
and there in Europe, Jews with or without the Star of David is a temporary situation
created by the war. After the end of the current great battle and after the complete
104 Problema jidoveasc [The Jewish Problem], Telegraful romn, no. 22, 28 May 1939, p. 3.
105 Finana jidoveasc [The Jewish financiers], Telegraful romn, no. 8, 19 February 1939, p. 3.
106 Proprieti ce trec n patrimoniul public [Nationalized Properties], Telegraful romn, no. 15, 6 April 1941,
p. 1.
107 Au plecat! [They left!], Telegraful romn, no. 47, 16 November 1941, p. 4.
108 Cernui i Chiinu [Cernui and Chiinu], Telegraful romn, no. 32, 3 August 1941, p. 3.
109 Chestiunea jidoveasc [Jewish Issue], Telegraful romn, nr. 14, 5 April 1942, p. 4.
170
CEC_konyv.indd 170
2016.06.10. 8:36:59
by Gabriel Andreescu
realization of the new order, these last Jews will also disappear from the European
firmament.110
Dumitru Stniloae and Telegraful romn, published under the authority of the
Metropolitan of Transylvania, Nicolae Blan, were central sources of chauvinism,
xenophobia and anti-Semitism during the interwar period. Paradoxically, the theologian and the magazine are embraced to this day as historical models of honorability
in the tradition of the Romanian Orthodox Church.
CEC_konyv.indd 171
171
2016.06.10. 8:36:59
Churches Holocaust
press to fight with more courage against the organization: It is even a duty of
the religious press especially since the position occupied relative to the national
Church, by the Freemasonry, is directly destructive, these are not simple suspicions
but facts that lead us to believe that the entire endeavor to unravel the soul of the
people, all the social misfortunes masked as Communism, sectarianism, atheism
etc. all began within the Freemason lodges.114
Other Orthodox articles discuss the Freemasonry-Jewish connection questioningly. In a text from Pastorul ortodox [The Orthodox Shepherd] (1935), priest t.
M. Udrescu criticizes three books on the subject and comments I think it is not
happenstance that the authors of these two books, as well as the translator of the
first, are Jews.115
Other Orthodox publications stated that an important connection existed between Freemasonry and Jews. According to Revista Teologic [The Theological
Journal], it is known that Jews are present within all lodges in great numbers
and are the most decisive factors in Freemasonry. [] Freemasonry is closely connected to the Bnai Berith organization, a purely Jewish Freemasonry. The Jewish
members of Freemasonry are also part of the lodges of Bnai Berith, whose ideas
they bring into Freemason lodges. The entire nomenclature of the Freemason rite,
by being Jewish, proves again the great influence of Jews within Freemasonry.116
The flagship Orthodox publication, Biserica Ortodox Romn [The Romanian Orthodox Church], returns in 1937 to the Freemasonry theme, with a material
that establishes a doctrine, written by Metropolitan Dr. Nicolae of Transylvania, and
which received the approval of the Holy Synod. The article includes a full chapter on
Freemasonry and the Jews.117 It is stated that Jews have an important, and even
dominant, role within Freemasonry, and all the high ranks were created by them. In
England, says the article, out of 300.000 Freemasons, 43.000 are Jews. In the
Great Orient lodges in Romania, a branch of the Great Orient in France, the proportion of Jews reaches 90%. The Romanian national great lodge, which also includes
Jews, was established according to the article by the Freemasonry of Soviet Russia. The entire Freemasonry is run by Jews through the purely Jewish Freemason
114 Pr. D.V. Anuoiu, Francmasonerie i comunism [Freemasonry and Communism], Foaia diecezan, no. 25,
21 June 1936, pp. 2-3. The violence of the words is surprising in a publication that is usually more restrained.
In a text on Outlawing Freemasonry in Switzerland Foaia diecezan, no. 2, 10 January 1937, p. 7) Freemasons are called werewolves.
115 Priest t. M. Udrescu, Din aciunile francmasoneriei [Actions of Freemasonry], Pastorul ortodox, no. 5,
May 1935, p. 173.
116 Grigorie T. Marcu, Francmasoneria pus la stlp []Freemasonry put in the pillory], Revista Teologic, no.
7-10, July-October 1936, p. 351.
117 Ce este Francmasoneria [What is Freemasonry], Biserica Ortodox Romn, no. 1-2, January-February,
1937, pp. 1-22.
172
CEC_konyv.indd 172
2016.06.10. 8:36:59
by Gabriel Andreescu
order, Benai Berith. The members of the latter lodge are also part of the lodges that
include Christians, the article states.
As a corollary to these facts, the article concludes that Freemasonry has
a Jewish Character, an idea reinforced with a quote from the Freemason magazine
Symbolisme: The most important mission of Freemasonry is to glorify the Jewish
race which has kept pure the Godly essence of knowledge. Then it should support
the Jewish race in erasing national borders.118
With the conclusion that Freemasonry fights against the natural law, wanted
by God, according to which humankind is made up of nations, the article decides
which are the duties of the ROC: to lead a persevering oral and journalistic activity
of unmasking the purpose and the nefarious activities of this organization and to
urge Romanian intellectuals who are part of the lodges to leave them, otherwise the
Church will refuse to perform their funeral ceremonies; priests will advise the people
to avoid Freemasons and not to vote for them; the Holy Synod and the organizations
of the Church will try to convince the government to outlaw Freemasonry, and if the
government doesnt, it will take care to get a Parliamentary initiative in this respect.119
However, even after this official statement of the ROC Synod, the connection
between Freemasonry and Jews is not mentioned as a rule. In an article from the
magazine ngerul [The Angel] from the fall of 1937, priest C. Negu firmly condemns
the organization without belittling it as a manipulation initiated by Jews: The Freemason lodges gather together Jews and Christians and Freemasonry states that
only those gathered in its lodges know the truth and rise above other people. This
would imply that Christianity provides no advantage in knowing the truth and achieving salvation to its members. The Church cannot watch quietly as no other than the
mortal enemies of Christ are considered superior to Christians, from the point of
view of knowing the greatest truths of salvation.120
6. Conclusions
All the periodicals published under the aegis of the ROC include texts whose purpose is to combat certain social and political attitudes, some religious minorities
118 Idem, p. 4.
119 Idem, p. 22.
120 Priest C. Negu, Condamnarea Francmasoneriei [Condemning Freemasonry]], ngerul, no. 3, March 1937,
p. 137.
CEC_konyv.indd 173
173
2016.06.10. 8:36:59
Churches Holocaust
174
CEC_konyv.indd 174
2016.06.10. 8:36:59
by Gabriel Andreescu
most tolerant judgment seems to have been: The superiority of Christianity and
the areas of disagreement are easily seen.122
One of the leading promoters of anti-Semitism among Orthodox publications
was Telegraful romn [The Romanian Telegraph], from the moment that theologian
Dumitru Stniloaie became its editor-in-chief. In this periodical the anti-Semitic policy reached new heights: Telegraful romn [The Romanian Telegraph] welcomed
the seizure of Jewish properties, announced the joyful news that Jewish convoys
were sent to Transnistria, cheered the internment of Jews in concentration camps,
expressed happiness at the removal of Jews from all important professions in Slovakia, and hoped that in the future these last Jews will also disappear from the
European firmament.123
The systematic and intense incitement to anti-Semitism that characterized Telegraful romn [The Romanian Telegraph] is however an exception. In general, the
Orthodox press showed marginal interest in Semitic topics, and when references to
Jews appeared they expressed a background hostility. The most important result
of this overview of the Orthodox press is the observation that its anti-Semitism is
just a peripheral part of its outpouring of ethnic and religious chauvinism; and respectively, a peripheral component of the anti-Semitism of the period 1920-1944.
The interwar Orthodox nationalism strengthened its aggressiveness by exercising
it on everything that was alien to Orthodoxy: Protestants, Roman-Catholics, GreekCatholics, Freemasons, atheists. The fate of Romanian Jews was the result of a
political manipulation of anti-Semitism in the context of an exacerbated exclusivist
nationalism that intersected tragic international trends.
122 Pr. I. Mihlcescu, Raportul dintre cretinism i iudaism [The relationship between Christianity and Judaism], no. 3 (358), March 1925, p. 139.
123 Au s dispar din Europa [They will disappear from Europe], Telegraful romn, no. 40, 4 October 1942,
p. 4.
CEC_konyv.indd 175
175
2016.06.10. 8:36:59
CEC_konyv.indd 176
2016.06.10. 8:36:59
Dr Artur Lakatos
CEC_konyv.indd 177
177
2016.06.10. 8:37:00
Churches Holocaust
tion between the three churches. The third and closing part contains my conclusions, and essentially presents the essence of the Jewish issue in all its complexity.
178
CEC_konyv.indd 178
2016.06.10. 8:37:00
by Dr Artur Lakatos
Based on the 1930 census, between the two World Wars 4.2% of the population of Greater Romania was of the Jewish faith. Looking at the historical provinces, their number and proportion was the lowest in Transylvania: while in Bessarabia,
Moldova, in the Krsvidk-Mramaros region, in Muntenia and Bukovina their
numbers came to 206985, 168268, 97287, 94216 and 96101, respectively, in
Transylvania the number of registered Jews was only 83503.3 The Jewish community in Romania was far from unified; there were cultural, linguistic and religious
fault lines between Hungarian and Romanian speaking Jews, between the Orthodox and the Reformed and also based on political orientation. As noted by
two nationalist Romanian authors, Ioan Scurtu and Gheorghe Buzatu4 in their welldocumented history of Romania, although the Jews were the third largest minority in Romania after the Hungarians and the Germans, they were not unified by
culture. The Jews of the Old Kingdom of Romania (Regat) were influenced primary
by Romanian, those residing in Transylvania by Hungarian, those in Bukovina by German and in Bessarabia by Russian culture, i.e., while preserving their Jewish identity; they also carried these cultural characteristics.5 Some Jews followed the Zionist
ideology; others would have preferred to opt for the path of assimilation and mostly
in Transylvania many Jews, while holding on to their faith, identified with Hungarian
values. In one of his books, Dniel Lwy identifies a number of them, including Jen
Janovics, library director Farkas Gyulai, writer Ben Karcsony, art historian Jzsef
Br in Kolozsvr (Cluj),6 or the young Andrs Arat (born Ackersmann) in Nagyvrad
(Oradea) .7 For instance, in his poems Andrs Arat expresses his dual Hungarian
and Jewish identity as follows:
I am a Jew. I have never denied my ancestors out of cowardice and depravity.
My forebears were born, had lived and were buried in other parts.
Berzsenyi was my Testament, Petfi my Bible
and I fled to Sztregovr to escape the blows I suffered.
In Szigetvr I was the one tearing down the ironclad gate,
And at Mohcs I too collected marsh plants to sooth my burning wounds.
3 Cristian Gojinescu: Situaia demografic a cultelor dup 1918, Etnosfera, 2009, issue no. 4, pp. 26-32.
4 The above statement is particularly true to Gheorghe Buzatu, who was deputy-chairman of the Greater Romania
Party, and one of the most ardent followers of the rehabilitation of marshal Ion Antonescu.
5 Ioan Scurtu, Gheorghe Buzatu: Istoria romnilor n secolul XX ( 1918-1948), Bucureti, Paideia, 1999 p. 40.
6 Dniel Lwy: A tglagyrtl a tehervonatig, (From the brick yard to the cattle-carriage) Erdlyi Szpmives Ch,
Kolozsvr, 1998. passim
7 It is true, there were opposite examples as well. Such was Fnyes Samu (born Feierlicht Salamon), who wrote a
book in his Bucharest years entitled Ungaria revizionist (A revizionista Magyarorszg The revisionist Hungary).
CEC_konyv.indd 179
179
2016.06.10. 8:37:00
Churches Holocaust
(This is a rough translation, conveying only the literal meaning of the two poems
the translator)
8 Andrs Arat: Mshol szlettek hseim (My ancestors were born in other parts) in Andrs Arat: Terjedelmes
valloms (Extended confession). Versek, Szigligeti Trsasg kiadsa, Sonnenfeld, Oradea-Nagyvrad, 1938,
pp. 46-47.
9 Ibid., p. 40.
180
CEC_konyv.indd 180
2016.06.10. 8:37:00
by Dr Artur Lakatos
Obviously, even Hungarian-speaking Jews did not unanimously profess proHungarian nationalist sentiments; there were assimilates and movements that imagined a future for the Jewish people as a separate nation outside the HungarianRomanian framework. From the 1920s the Romanian state made vigorous efforts
to drive a wedge between the Jews from the Hungarians. Special schools were
established where teaching was conducted in Rumanian and Hebrew, with the elimination of Hungarian. The effects of this policy were also perceived by Hungarian
politicians. Elemr Jakabffy had the following to say about this problem in 1932,
roughly 13 years following the collapse of the Austro-Hungarian Empire:
Lets not delude ourselves into believing that we can count on the Jewish vote
to the same extent as 13 years ago.
We should not forget that in these 13 years a new Jewish generation had
emerged whose education had no longer been steeped in Hungarian culture.. We
cannot blame this young Jewish generation for taking a different path and can only
take offense at the alienation of those who had enjoyed the blessings of Hungarian
culture for which they are bound by eternal gratitude.10
This kind of holding to account Jewish individuals taking a stance against Hungarians started already in September 1940. On September 11, 1940 Bla Jvor in
Nagyvrad (Oradea) denounces Venetian blinds manufacturer, Grnwald, for saying
in a private conversation: God forbid Hungarians return to this area.11 In another instance the journalist attacks a tobacconist claiming he had once said the following:
This land ... could be owned by anyone, except Germans and Hungarians. Much
rather by the Russians if it means the withdrawal of the Romanians.12
Aside from humiliating some individuals, this kind of holding to account had
little effect and was not limited to Jews: some Hungarians (like the leaders of the anti-revisionist league) or Romanians (those remaining in the area after the re-annexation, nationalists abusing Hungarians during Romanian rule) received the same,
and in some cases even worse treatment.13 Later claims, definitely undeserved by
pro-Hungarian Jews living in Northern Transylvania, were apparently much more
10 Erdlyi Lapok (Transylvanian Gazette): June 18, 1932. Dr. Elemr Jakabffy on Jews, p. 3
11 Magyar Lapok (Hungarian Gazette): September 11, 1940, Bla Jvor: A zsid nagyiparos s a magyar
munks (The Jewish industrialist and the Hungarian worker), p. 6.
12 Magyar Lapok (Hungarian Gazette): January 29, 1941 , Ki legyen Erdly fldje s ki a trafik (Who should
own Transylvanian land and the tobacco shops?, p. 2
13 Fleeing the Hungarian occupation, Lszl Bnyai (later to become rector of Bolyai University) moved to Romania, as did Gza Kiss, a politician of the Romanian National Liberal Party. Some paid for staying with their
life, such as writer Bla Jzsa, who, following his arrest, under suspicious circumstances lost his life in 1943,
probably beaten to death. After the annexation, the Hungarian population lynched a number of Romanian nationalists, including some Orthodox priests.
CEC_konyv.indd 181
181
2016.06.10. 8:37:00
Churches Holocaust
damaging. Soon after the entry of the Hungarians Ferenc Fiala wrote an insinuating article in Magyar Lapok (Hungarian Gazette) criticizing Jews collaborating with
Romanians. However, at that time he still did not deny that in Budapest Samu Stern
said that Along with Jews in Hungary, the Jewish population of Nagyvrad (Oradea)
and Kolozsvr (Cluj) welcome the re-annexation, and people like Lipt Kecskemti,
Benk Gombos and Vajszlovics remain steadfast Hungarian patriots and loyal Hungarian Jews.14 However, in a short while the loyalty of Hungarian-speaking Jews
living in areas cut off from Hungary came under question in respect to their relationship with majority populations in post-Trianon states. In the period of the occupation when it was not opportune to identify with Hungarians, obviously Jews were the
first to leave the Hungarian lines. And they left in droves denying all fellowship with
Hungarians, going over to the enemy or withdrawing behind their peculiar, so-called
Zionist lines an anonymous contributor writes in Nagyvrad (Oradea).
Other articles made statements in the same vein:
There have already been many efforts at explaining or at least understanding
Nagyvrad (Oradea)s shameful Jewish character ;
Perhaps, Jews have done more to eviscerate Hungarian vitality than official
Romanian policy decisions;15 or
Trianon, a 20-year Romanian suppression would not have done so much
damage among us if we had formed a closed economy, if, instead of the Jews, our
kind had made up the merchant, craftsman, industrialist and intellectual classes.16
In fact, in some cases commentators demeaned assimilated Jews identifying
with Hungarian culture in the following way: Jewish and non-Jewish public opinion
in Anglo-Saxon countries considers Jews as a nation and deeply despises assimilated Hungarian Jews.17
This kind of generalization was unfair and it is no accident that Andrs Arat,
mentioned above, addressed the following desperate words in 1944 from the Budapest ghetto to the president of Transylvania Party, Bla Teleki:
14 Magyar Lapok (Hungarian Gazette): 26 September 1940 Ferenc Fiala: Erdly s a zsidsg (Transylvania
and the Jewry) p. 4.
15 Magyar Lapok (Hungarian Gazette): November 14, 1940. Nagyvrad (Oradea) zsid vros. (Nagyvrad
(Oradea) City of Jews) pp. 1-2.
16 Magyar Lapok (Hungarian Gazette): January 25, 1941. Istvn Polyk:ttrsek-visszatrsek-megtrsek
(Conversions-reconversions.) p. 5.
17 Magyar Lapok (Hungarian Gazette): January 28, 1942. A zsidsg kivndorlsval foglalkozik a msodik
zsid Srgaknyv (The second Jewish yellow book deals with Jewish emigration). p. 6.
182
CEC_konyv.indd 182
2016.06.10. 8:37:00
by Dr Artur Lakatos
I cannot conceive that mercy has left all human hearts and I believe I have the
right to shout my truth in the face of all honest Hungarians. I was ready to sacrifice
my life for the Hungarian nation, when called on I went to the limit, to prison, and
not a Hungarian government sends me to my death. Sir this is not my issue, not our
issue, this is the issue of the Hungarian national, of a few brave and honourable
Hungarians. If we perish, the Hungarian nation would lose its most cherished asset,
its chivalry and sense of justice, and shall leave an indelible stain on its own honour!
Your Excellency must be aware that Romanian press attach Gombos Ulipu Traian,
crisscrossed Transylvania and told Nndor Hegeds with a smirk on his face: we
received 50-years worth of propaganda material on Hungarian ingratitude. Sir, are
you aware that a group of some 350 Zionist in Kolozsvr (Cluj) and Budapest were
spared deportation? And finally, does your Excellency understand that if instead of
in Hungary, I was born in Slovakia or Croatia and fought against Czech or Serbian
oppression, today I would be safe because Mack Sanyo and Ante Pavelic treat their
own Jews with more fairness than todays Hungarian Government.18
Gombos Ulpiu Traian, cited by Arat, was mistaken: the collaboration of the
Hungarian authorities with the Nazis in 1944 created a security risk not for 50, but
many more years.
CEC_konyv.indd 183
183
2016.06.10. 8:37:00
Churches Holocaust
184
CEC_konyv.indd 184
2016.06.10. 8:37:00
by Dr Artur Lakatos
or people of the church there were no material changes in respect to the Jewish
issue either in content or message.20 In fact, one may even notice a cautious approach, best illustrated by the most important publication of the Unitarian Church,
the Keresztny Magvet (Christian Sower) with a history of over 100 years. In the
period between 1940 and 1944 the word Jewish is mentioned all but once,21 and
even then only in connection to Ferenc Dvid and the foundation of the Sabbatarian
Church.22 Compared to publications in Northern Transylvania, this was even more
the case in respect to periodicals published in Southern Transylvania and the Regat
where all forms of expression became more restricted under an increasingly heavyhanded Romanian rule.23However, it must also be noted that this only holds for journals and the situation was fundamentally different when it comes to the daily Magyar
Lapok (Hungarian Gazette, originally called Erdlyi Lapok, Transylvanian Gazette)
partly under church control.
In effect, the Erdlyi/Magyar Lapok should be considered as a borderline between secular and church publications. The daily launched in 1932 and edited in
Nagyvrad (Oradea) lent its support to and, in turn, was supported by the Magyar
Prt (Hungarian Party) and was heavily influenced by the Roman Catholic and Calvin Protestant churches. rpd Pal was the editor-in-chief and Elemr Gyrfs the
senior correspondent at the daily, and influential pieces were published by such
prominent church-affiliated individuals as the Jesuit monk, Bla Bangha and Calvin Protestant bishop, Istvn Sulyok. The name of the daily was changed in 1936
to Magyar Lapok (Hungarian Gazette). Following the Hungarian re-annexation, the
number of anti-Semitic articles increased in Magyar Lapok, although this was not
the only change: in contrast to earlier coverage on Transylvania and all of Romania,
the focus is turned to local affairs and church-affiliated journalists are replaced by
secular journalists.
20 In fact, some form of censorship and self-censorship was not limited to the church media, but is also evident
in secular dailies when events of major importance are involved. For instance, the evacuation of Jewish ghettos
and the subsequent transportation of their residents to death camps were passed over in silence even by Ellenzk s Keleti jsg (Opposition and Eastern Paper) published in Kolozsvr/Oradea with regional distribution in
Northern Transylvania. See: Dniel Lwy: a tglagyrtl (From the brick yard) p. 205.
21 The periodicals online archive may be accessed here: http://epa.oszk.hu/html/vgi/boritolapuj.phtml?id=2190
22 Keresztny Magvet (Christian Sower) (Christian Sower): 1943, bound copies 4-5. Pl Benczdi: A szombatossg vdja. (The charge of Sabbatinism) pp. 164-172.
23 Regarding the position of Hungarians living in Southern Transylvania a concise and for the most part accurate summary is provided in a 1943 report by Jzsef Mliusz. See: Artur Lakatos: Mliusz-jelents 1943-bl
(The Mliusz report from 1943) in Lt, nr. 11/2013, November, pp. 68-75. On Hungarians in Southern
Transylvania see more in: Bni L. Balogh: Kiszolgltatva. A dl-erdlyi magyar kisebbsg 1940-1944 kztt
(Exposed, Hungarian minority in Southern Transylvania between 1940 and 1944). Pro-print Knyvkiad, Cskszereda, 2013.
CEC_konyv.indd 185
185
2016.06.10. 8:37:00
Churches Holocaust
186
CEC_konyv.indd 186
2016.06.10. 8:37:01
by Dr Artur Lakatos
This piece ends with this conclusion, although in this case the sarcasm is aimed
not so much against the Jews, as against strict Jewish religious prescriptions.
Similarly, at first glance the Szatmrnmeti (Satu Mare) Katolikus let (Catholic
Life) presents the Budapest Jews effort at being admitted to the Order of Vitez
objectively, although its final conclusion is steeped in mockery. On December 1,
1930 a member of the Hungarian Parliament Pl Sndor says that in 1848 twenty
thousand Jews fought in the Hungarian army and 460 Jews also died nationwide
in the conflict with the Hungarian Republic of Councils. According to Pl Sndor,
there are so many valiant Jews that instead of one, there should be several Orders
to make room for all the Jews.28
At other times, mockery was aimed at Samu Fnyes, widely hated by the
Hungarian public.29 In some other cases, harm befalling a pro-Romanian Jewish
community in distant America offers a measure of satisfaction. An article published
in Katolikus let (Catholic Life) on April 21, 1929, When Jews profit, reports a
story of Jews commemorating the 10th anniversary of the unification of Romania in
a Synagogue in Chicago, when five armed robbers break into the building. The congregation was lucky because, instead of Hungarian or Bulgarian nationalists, it was
ordinary bandits that came to rob, leaving with a booty of USD 80 000.30
This kind of casual irony is still a far cry from violent anti-Semitism. That first appears in the years after 1940, primarily on the pages of Magyar Lapok (formerly
Erdlyi Lapok). While specifically ecclesiastic publications for the most part hid
behind theological topics, taking scrupulous care in times of war to avoid taking
a position on issues beyond their power, similar to other secular publications
with strong church backing, Magyar Lapok made an effort to join trends already
rife in Hungary. As Zoltn Tibori Szab stated in one of his lectures: Part of
the Hungarian media in Transylvania is becoming a mouthpiece of anti-Semitic
propaganda, and the same is heard from the pulpit.31
In news briefs and reports the word Jewish comes up with increasing
frequency, in most cases used in a negative context and associated with pejorative definitions. In the reports involving common law offenses where one of the
28 Katolikus let (Christian Life): 7 December 1930. A Vitzi rend s a zsid vitzek (Vitz Order and Jewish
braves) p. 3.
29 Erdlyi Lapok (Transylvanian Gazette): January 27, 1934. Marakodnak a koncon. (Fighting over the spoils)
Rabbi Pater Erwin rabbi kiszrta dr. Fnyes Samu szemt (Rabbi Erwin Pater stuck it to dr. Samu Fnyes) p. 6.
30 Katolikus let (Christian Life): April 21, 1929. Mikor a zsidk jl jrnak (When Jews profit), p. 3.
31 Transindex online news portal, Kolozsvr/Cluj, Mindannyian tudjuk, mit jelentettek a deportlsok (We all
know what deportations meant). May 23, 2014. http://itthon.transindex.ro/?cikk=23416. Viewed: March
21, 2016.
CEC_konyv.indd 187
187
2016.06.10. 8:37:01
Churches Holocaust
parties is a Jew, the identity of the suspect is given special emphasis. In other
cases involving a mundane, trivial conflict with a Jewish participant, the author
makes it clear that the other party must be in the right. In most cases, the titles
already speak for themselves..32 Since there are no statistics available from the
period, today it is difficult to get an insight as to what extent such polemics affected
the reading publics thinking and to what extent people inured to Romanian nationalism and censorship considered these terms as mandatory protocol, where one
should not look for truth. It is likely, however, that while articles using incendiary
language did not result in fundamental changes of heart, they did not remain
without effect either.33
Theological articles
This is the area where a discussion involving Jewry, Jewish religion and people
is inescapable. Anti-Semitism is present here and there, although its scale is
negligible. In pieces written mostly in a neutral tone, when they appear antiSemitic views are presented briefly, in a few fragmented sentences. The major
themes are as follows: Jews killed Christ; as the chose people, they consider themselves superior to others; have no respect for Christian symbols and values. In one
example, Jews consider themselves Gods chosen people and reserve Yahweh for
themselves .34 At the end of the 1920s, Salamon Csif describes early Christianity
by saying that the Jews persecuted early Christians in the Roman Empire. Apostle
Paul rescued Jesus from Jewish law and ethnicity and made him universal.35
According to another article, while the Jews are guilty of rejecting Christ,
one must pray for their conversion and at the end of times they too will have a
32 Examples for this: Magyar Lapok (Hungarian Gazette): September 11, 194. Bla Jvor: A zsid nagyiparos s
a magyar munks (The Jewish industrialist and the Hungarian worker), p. 6; January 4, 1941. A keresztny ipar
s kereskedelem gondjai (The woes of Christian industry and commerce) p. 5; January 21, Ismt jelentkeznek
a zsidk (The Jews are here again) p. 5; May 21, Br Gerliczy s Goldstein r igazsga (The cases of Baron
Gerliczy and Mr. Goldstein) p. 2; October 29, Zsid fiatalembereket hamis orvosi bizonytvnyokkal hztak ki a
munkaszolglat all. (Young Jewish men exempted from forced labour with false medical papers), p. 5; March
3, 1942, rurejtegetsrt eljrs indult Molnr Pter s Schwartz Ern zsid asztalosok ellen (Probe launched
against Jewish carpenters, Pter Molnr and Ern Schwartz for hiding goods) p. 2; March 17, t Nagyvrad
(Oradea)i zsid rdijt kobozta el a rendrsg (Police confiscates radio sets from five Jews in Nagyvrad (Oradea)) p. 6 ; November 26. Zsid tke- magyar forgat, jhzak adja - vgvri let (Jewish capital Hungarian
endorser, tax on new housing life in the boondocks, p. 5; etc.
33 In this context, see Dniel Lwys relevant chapter cited above, with the revealing title of Visszatrt, de nem
hazatrt (He returned without finding a home). pp. 68-81.
34 Keresztny Magvet (Christian Sower): Volumes 1, 2, 1929. Albert Vri: Isten orszga s a keresztny
egyhzak (The country of God and the Christian churches), pp. 1-23, p. 20.
35 Keresztny Magvet (Christian Sower) (Christian Sower): Volumes 1, 2, 1929. Salamon Csif: Egyhz s
llam . (State and church) pp. 33-45.
188
CEC_konyv.indd 188
2016.06.10. 8:37:01
by Dr Artur Lakatos
place in Heaven as Jews, as the chosen ones and inheritors of the religion revealed by God.36
This special status is expressed in the Keresztny Kzlny (Christian Bulletin)
as follows: In Jewry we can perceive one of the miracles of God and witness his
eternal fidelity, realising that with all their sins God has stood patiently by these people over the centuries.37
The mention of shared religious roots is not uncommon either. For instance,
in a 1937 issue of a womens association periodical published in Arad the following
argument is presented in a question and answer format: Even though the Jews are
guilty of rejecting Christ, they are not lost from the point of salvation. One must pray
for their conversion and baptism, and at the end of times they too will be admitted
to Heaven as Jews and the chosen ones for they are the bearers of the religion
revealed by God.38 The same idea also in Nap (Sun) penned by Bla Barth
returns in 1941. 39
A Calvin Protestant publication expresses a similar thought stating that the
Jews are a chosen people, awarded by God above all others.
Why? Thats a secret.40 In 1943, Ferenc Farag writes in Catholic Erdlyi
Tudst (Transylvanian Reporter) about Jews, while forsaking God, have not been
denied divine grace41; and later adds The fact that the Redeemer is of their flesh
and blood is an undeniable glory of the Jewish people.42 And in the Calvin Protestant Kis Tkr (Little Mirror) the anonymous author states that Todays Jewish
religion is the cradle of Christianity, and the church of Israel carried the spirit of
genuine prophecy. 43
While rarely, the Jewish man is at times also portrayed as someone showing disrespect for the Christian faith and its values. Ann article in this vein is pub-
36 A Nap (The Sun): issue 2, 1937. Az Egyhz majd megfelel (The church shall respond) pp. 18-19
37 Keresztyn Kzlny (Christian Bulletin): December 1935, A zsidsg s a Messis (Jewry and the Messiah)
pp. 15-16.
38 A Nap (The Sun) : 1937, issue 2, Az Egyhz majd megfelel (The church shall respond) pp. 18-19.
39 A Nap: August 1941, issue 6, Bla Barth: A zsidtrvnyek s a katolicizmus (Anti-Jewish laws and Catholicism) pp. 6-7
40 Reformtusok Lapja (Calvin Protestant Paper): Nagyvrad (Oradea). March 9, 1929. Az elny (The advantage) pp. 116-117
41 Erdlyi Tudst (Transylvanian Reporter): March 1943. Ferenc Farag: A zsidkrds az jszvetsgi
Szentrsban (The Jewish issue in the Gospels) pp. 41-43
42 Erdlyi Tudst (Transylvanian Reporter): April 1943. Ferenc Farag: Krisztus s a zsidsg (Christ and
the Jews) pp. 58-61.
43 Kis Tkr (Little Mirror): December 7, 1929. Israel a csodanp (Israel, the people of miracles) pp. 209-211 (1-3)
CEC_konyv.indd 189
189
2016.06.10. 8:37:01
Churches Holocaust
lished in December 1929 in Katolikus let (Catholic Life) under the title of defiler of
the Madonna. The rampage of a Jewish journalist and his exemplary punishment.
The article reports that the Budapest Jewish journalist, Jen Wallesz was given a
sentence of eight days in jail and a fine for profaning the Madonna in an article. He
said things like general Nobile has no idea where the North Pole or the Madonna
is. The journalist pleaded innocent claiming that he did not profane the Madonna
or make any reference to the faith of believers, while the judge ruled the lack of
remorse as an aggravating circumstance. In his indictment the prosecutor claimed
that the defendant trampled on the souls of all Hungarians when he presented the
Madonna to us in the form of such a dialogue.44
The most extensive coverage is perhaps given to comparisons and the illustration of religious differences. In this context, Christian theologians naturally emphasize the excellence of the Christian religion, even if such comparisons were not
derogatory in all cases. For instance, in an article comparing Christianity (focusing
primarily on Unitarian Arianism within that) with Islam and Judaism Unitarian pastor
Kroly rmsi comes to the conclusion that while the Jewish Yahweh is a revengeful
God and Allah has a national bent, the Christian God is merciful.45 And in an article
published in 1927, Calvin Protestant Istvn Kecskemthy explains that on account
of his religion a Jewish person is essentially a man of the past, and only because his
religion is tailored for the corporal man and not for a new spiritual man, whose arrival
had been announced by Jesus. He sees the problem that Christians have also fallen
to the level of the man of the past, for Christians following the teachings of Christ
should refrain from all forms of hatred and greed. The more we snarl at the Jews,
the faster we sink46- he writes.
An analysis of the war years shows that while in public life anti-Semitic discourse grows louder, in specifically church-affiliated publications, especially those
under the central control of dioceses, make a point of avoiding any mention of Jewry
even in pieces dealing with biblical topics. A case in point is the superb Keresztny
Magvet (Christian Sower) published monthly and edited by the Unitarian diocese,
where between 1940-1944 the term Jew is used rarely and haphazardly, and
even then in texts irrelevant relative to the crisis at hand. In fact, pieces discussing
the future of Christianity and the crisis of Christian values predominate.
44 Katolikus let (Christian Life): December 15, 1929. Madonnagyalz. Zsid jsgr vesszfutsa s plds
bnhdse (Defiler of the Madonna. The rampage of a Jewish journalist and his exemplary punishment) p. 3.
45 Keresztny Magvet (Christian Sower): Volume 4, 1927. Kroly rmsi, Jr.: Mirt van az Unitriusizmusnak
jvje? (Why Unitarianism has a future) pp. 272-276.
46 Kis Tkr (Little Mirror): May 14, 1927. Istvn Kecskemthy: Az antiszemitizmusrl (On anti-Semitism) p.
81 (1).
190
CEC_konyv.indd 190
2016.06.10. 8:37:01
by Dr Artur Lakatos
CEC_konyv.indd 191
191
2016.06.10. 8:37:02
Churches Holocaust
speak for themselves, the Jewish retailer referred to either by name or as a member of the community of Jewish merchants is presented as the enemy, once as the
enemy of the Hungarian Christian merchant and then as a saboteur of the national
economy. Perhaps, the best example for this is an article published on January 11,
1941, entitled Christians are sacked, where the journalist complains that Christian
employees referred by The National Employment Agency are the first to be fired by
Jewish employers:
The firing of Christians has been started even by Jews where the salary of a
small employee makes absolutely no dent in the corporate payroll. Christian Hungarian employees have been fired with a familiar and ruthless Jewish reserve, on
principle, out of revenge and without mercy the author of the article claims.51 Some
articles maintain that Jewish origin is a ground for disqualifying as a Hungarian patriot, and place the issue in the business context to illustrate the point. When the
Hungarian friends of hotel owner, Emil Veiszlovich, stand by him and praise his generosity and intelligence, and mention that during Romanian rule he remained a Hungarian, the anonymous author hopes to brush off the collective position of prominent individuals and ordinary people with a single statement steeped in prejudice:
Here we are not concerned with Emil Veiszlovichs merits or demerits, whether or not he is an Hungarian patriot. One thing is certain: he is a Jew. And by now
the debate whether a Jew can or cannot be a through-and-through Hungarian has
been settled for good, the author states in his far from subtle argument.52
Hungarian worker) p. 6; October 2, Kaphatnak-e a zsidk iparengedlyt? (Should Jews be issued a business
license) p. 7. ; November 14, Nagyvrad (Oradea) zsid vros (Nagyvrad (Oradea) city of Jews) pp. 1-2;
January 4, 1941, A keresztny ipar s kereskedelem gondjai (The woes of Christian industry and commerce)
p. 5; January 29, Ki legyen Erdly fldje s ki a trafik? (Who should own the lands of Transylvania and
tobacco shops?) p. 2; March 5, Istvn Polyk: j magyar kereskedk az j magyar letben (New Hungarian
merchants in a new Hungarian life) p. 2; May 21, Gerliczy br s Goldstein r igazsga (The truth of Baron
Gerliczy and Mr. Goldstein) p. 2; May 24. Keresztny piaci rusok panasza (The complaints of Christian vendors at the market) p. 3; June 3, Zsidk s a budapesti ptkezsek (Jews and constructions in Budapest) p.
6; June 11, Keresztny kezekbe kerl a Nagyvrad (Oradea)i br- s cipkereskedelem (Nagyrads leather
and shoe business passes into Hungarian hands) p. 2; July 25. Augusztus elsejn nem lesz zsid rus a Nagyvrad (Oradea)i piacon (Following August 1, there will be no Jewish vendors in Nagyvrad (Oradea) markets)
p. 2; September 5, Bla Jvor: A keresztny kereskedelem s ipar trfoglalsa Nagyvradon az els szabad
esztendben (The expansion of Hungarian industry and commerce in Nagyvrad (Oradea) in the first year of
the reoccupation) p. 2; February 23, 1942, Tejdrgts miatt internlt a rendrsg egy vradi zsidasszonyt (A
Jewish woman incarcerated for milk price gouging) p. 6; April 29, Tibor Marjalaky: Zsid szellemtl mentes j
magyar kereskedelmi, gazdasgi let van kialakulban Vradon (New Hungarian business and economic life on
the ascent in Nagyvrad (Oradea), free of Jewish mentality) p. 5 ; etc. The titles and articles cited here are far
from covering all pieces featuring such topics common in those years, although they document the relentless
process of insinuation.
51 Magyar Lapok (Hungarian Gazette): January 11, 1941. Utcra kerlnek a keresztny alkalmazottak (Christian employers are sacked) p. 6.
52 Magyar Lapok (Hungarian Gazette): October 20-21, 1941, Prtfog gyszmagyarok (Protective mourning
Hungarians) p. 1.
192
CEC_konyv.indd 192
2016.06.10. 8:37:02
by Dr Artur Lakatos
There is no doubt that in the years of the second World War, at the time of
strict and often irrational rules regulating employment and business licenses,
when small and large businesses alike were hit by raw material shortages, disruption of supply chains and other problems, bitter competition and business
rivalry often ending in hostility were enough to turn people against on other,
regardless of financial position, religion or national identity.53 In this context, I
believe incitement fell on fertile ground: following the deportation of the Jews,
many tried to get their hands on the property left behind.
Pouring over bound volumes of different periodicals issued over many years, I
managed to find a single incident where honest Jewish merchants are cheated by
common criminals. The poem was written under the assumed name Igric, and the
real name of the author was Bla P. Jnossy.54 The story related by the poem goes
as follows: two Jewish merchants standing back to back are selling porkers in the
market, and they are robbed by three thieves. While two of them are bargaining with
the merchants distracting them, the third ties together the tails of their kaftans. After
receiving the porkers, his accomplices run off.55
Aside from the absurdity and naivety of the ditty religious Jews are not in
the business of selling porkers it is interesting to note that in 1943 it depicts two
Jews as honest businessmen that, rather than cheating others, become the victims
themselves.
CEC_konyv.indd 193
193
2016.06.10. 8:37:02
Churches Holocaust
ity and venerable Unitarian periodical, the Keresztny Magvet (Christian Sower),
when the unknown author analyses the international scene. He reaches the conclusion that while Western Zionists expect support for the reestablishment of a Jewish
state in Palestine from Britain, German Zionists reject that and see a solution in an
agreement with Turkey. The British governments commitment to establish a Jewish
state in Palestine is seen as a grievous insult not only by the Catholic Church but by
the entire Christian world, the author concludes.56 It must be said in his defence
that at the time the author was still under the spell of World War I, and between the
1920s and 1930s Zionist ambitions in Palestine were given a rather ambivalent
reception. However, with time the picture becomes more complicated for a number
of reasons. For one thing, Hungarian-speaking Zionists in Transylvania were not
on bad terms with Christian Hungarians who also found themselves in the minority.
Moreover, Palestinian Arabs, who came into conflict with Jewish settlers, did not
necessarily enjoy the sympathy of Transylvanian Hungarians. Thirdly, the British
Empire proved to be a more convenient whipping boy than the Jews.
A good example for the first statement is an article in the Unitarian Church
periodical published in Szkelykeresztr (Cristuru Secuiesc) that presents a highly
ambitious Zionist movement as an example for Christians suffering from an identity
crisis. The article also refers to relations with Zionist Jews with sympathy. The Zionists come together and emphasize that the land of Transylvania has been made
lovely by a harmonious spirit manifested in respect for a Transylvanian spirit and
cultural commitment, Vilmos Blny writes in 1926.57 Even though this kind of
Hungarian-Jewish sympathy fades by the 1930s, Jewish ambitions in Palestine are
not followed by the minority Hungarian media with aversion, and in this respect
the church media is no exception either. The only periodical subject to our review,
the Erdlyi Lapok discusses and follows developments in Palestine in a number of
analytical pieces. In fact, some relevant articles are translated from English58, or
French59, and published in a serialized form.
Newspapers filed regular reports from the various Zionist congresses, and other publications with a different profile reported from time to time when they felt that
these conferences had a bearing on important developments or when decisions of
major consequences were made. for instance, in one of its editorial pieces Katoli56 Keresztny Magvet (Christian Sower): Volume 1, 1918. Volume 1, 1918, pp. 31-32.
57 Unitrius Egyhz (Unitarian Church): March 15, 1926. Vilmos Blny: Korunk keresi a maga keresztnysgt. (Our age in search of its own Christianity) pp. 20-22.
58 Cf.: Erdlyi Lapok (Transylvanian Gazette): August 14, 15, 1934, William George Compton: The Zionost
Palestine. The generosity of rich Jewry supplies it with state-of-the-art equipmnet. In both issues, the article
is found on p. 4.
59 Erdlyi Lapok (Transylvanian Gazette): April 31, 1939, A cionizmus. A zsidsg nemzeti mozgalmnak
trtnelmi fejldse (Zionism. The historical development of the Jewish national movement) p. 10. The study
originally published in French is reprinted in subsequent issues, e.g., on May 4, p. 6, May 9, p. 6, May 12, p. 6.
194
CEC_konyv.indd 194
2016.06.10. 8:37:02
by Dr Artur Lakatos
kus let (Catholic Life) reports that at the American Zionist congress held in Detroit
the American Zionists asked the government to take action against the persecution
of Jews in Russia by expressing concern, and in Germany rising anti-Semitism must
be countered in the cultural sphere and the simple contempt and mocking of antiSemitic rhetoric is not the right choice of weapon.60
The twists and turns of the Jewish-Arab conflict are not left unnoticed either,
although there are no signs that the media would side with one side or the other. In
this context, blaming British policies is a recurring tendency. Already in 1936, rather
than in Jewish settlers, Ferenc Rajniss finds the underlying causes of the violence
in a two-faced British policy61.
From this point, the article by Tivadar Mlnsy published in the Roman Catholic
cultural monthly, Vasrnap (Sunday)62 is an interesting case in point where he depicts both the Jewish and Arab participants of the conflict as people of good faith,
and puts the blame for the clashes on duplicitous British imperial policy. Britain did
not keep its promise and gave the land pledged to the Arabs to the Jews. However,
this gifting was also only a show, In other words, Britain not only misled the Arabs
and colonel Lawrence, but the Jews as well Under the flag of the British Empire,
a struggle claiming thousands of lives erupted between Jews, who emigrated to the
country in good faith, and the Arabs who had been disappointed in the words and
promises received and agreements signed.63
The story becomes complete if we note: an aggressive piece published in
1942 in Katolikus Vilg (Catholic World) already outlines the connection between
Western capital and Zionist ambitions.64 However, a shift in perspective may go in
the other direction as well: in 1942, Magyar Lapok (Hungarian Gazette), known for
its inflammatory language, carries a respectful and even friendly piece by Istvn
Polyk about the Jews of Nagyvrad (Oradea) shipped to labour camps and also
notes: The Jews deserve to have their own state and live their national life. They
are preparing for this independent state and national existence, and the Jews will
60 Katolikus let (Christian Life): 15 September 1929 A cionistk az orosz s a nmet antiszemitizmusrl
(Zionists on German and Russian anti-Semitism) p. 1.
61 Erdlyi Lapok (Transylvanian Gazette): June 18, 1936. Ferenc Rajniss: A cionizmus csdje Palesztinban
(The fiasco of Zioism in Palestine) p. 13.
62 Tivadar Mlnsy (1894-?), businessman, journalist. In this latter capacity, editor of Keleti jsg s Szphalom
in Kolozsvr (Cluj).
63 Vasrnap (Sunday): August 1940. Tivadar Mlnsy: Mirt kerlt a Szentfld a hadak tjba? (How did the
Holy Land turn into a battleground?) pp. 266-267. The position taken by the author is all the more interesting
because he completed some of his studies in London.
64 Katolikus Vilg (Catholic World): 1942. Mit akar a zsidsg? Bepillants a cionista mregkeverk
mhelybe (What does Jewry want? An insight into the den of Zionist troublemakers) pp. 244-245.
CEC_konyv.indd 195
195
2016.06.10. 8:37:02
Churches Holocaust
deserve this through their work on the many fronts of an emerging new Europe,65
he writes. One of the reactions to the article written in a tone already rare at the
time was at least as reported in the readers section that a Jewish woman with
Hungarian sympathies subscribed to the paper.66
65 Magyar Lapok (Hungarian Gazette): 5 October 1942. Istvn Polyk: Zsidk a fronton (Jews at the front) p. 4.
66 Magyar Lapok (Hungarian Gazette): 10 October, 1942. Zsidk a fronton (Jews at the front) p. 7.
196
CEC_konyv.indd 196
2016.06.10. 8:37:03
by Dr Artur Lakatos
means.67 In 1941, a brief critique of Jud Sss gives a much shorter summary of the
essence of Jewish mentality: The Jud Sss gives a concise description of all
the aspects of the manifestation of Jewish mentality in our midst.68
That Jewish mentality as a concept was a rather well integrated part of
the mental landscape of the age is well demonstrated by some relevant references. Regardless of religious affiliation, those using this concept felt the need
to combat this mind-set. For instance, in a publication of the Catholic womens
association, in Nap (Sun) Bla Barth sums up the problem as follows: The fight
against Jewish mentality, that in many of its practitioners subverts Christian culture, takes radical forms, promotes the most revolting tendencies and may also
aspire for a leading role in economic life through unacceptable practices, yet in
many cases may be a means of justified and legitimate national self-defence.69
And in 1927, a Calvin Protestant pastor advances a similar position on Jewish
mentality: We consider this form of defence more necessary than even the
most rabid racist anti-Semite leader: but we also make no secret of the fact that we
consider defence in its current form harmful or at least ineffective. The foreign policy
analyst of Magyar Lapok (Hungarian Gazette), Elemr Rdy equates the fight against
Jewish mentality with anti-Semitism: the ideology defined by Jewry as anti-Semitism is a struggle against a mentality that is antithetical to the teachings of Christ and
everything that may flow from these towards nations, communities and individuals.
At the same time, it is evident that the fight against Jewish mentality does not
simultaneously imply physical violence. Aside from the article by Istvn Kecskemthy referred to above (an oblique answer to Iron Guard atrocities given by the author
possibly to slip by the censors) Bla Barth makes similar comments in his article
cited above where he takes a stance against German National Socialisms violent
manifestations:
However, all such and similar defence measures must keep in mind that in
a final analysis one injustice cannot be put right by another injustice and, instead,
in the spirit of fairness all reform movements must work for the establishment of a
new order that removes the stigma of Jewish mentality and replenishes it with fresh
spirit.70
At the same time, for those talking about Jewish mentality, the common
values of Jewry are not identical with the set of ideas referred to as Jewish
67 Klvinista Vilg (Calvinist World): May 15, 1930, Egyhz s a zsidsg. Dniel Borbth: A mi zsidkrdsnk
(Church and the Jewry) (Our Jewish issue) pp. 76-77
68 Magyar Lapok (Hungarian Gazette): 1 July 1941 Jud Sss, Nagyvrad (Oradea). p. 5.
69 A Nap(The Sun): 1933, issue 5 Bla Barth: A Hitlerizmus s az Egyhz (Hitlerism and the Church) pp. 3-5.
70 A Nap (The Sun): 1933, issue 5 Bla Barth: A Hitlerizmus s az Egyhz (Hitlerism and the Church) pp. 3-5.
CEC_konyv.indd 197
197
2016.06.10. 8:37:03
Churches Holocaust
mentality in the interwar period. With all that, it has been unwise to use a broad
brush and associate a set of sharply different intellectual currents with a single
people. For this may lead to incitement and even if not having led directly to the
Holocaust, it may have greatly contributed to facilitate it - by whipping up sentiment against the Jewish community and especially by desensitizing part of the
general public to the sufferings of those branded as Jews. Perhaps, it is also no
accident that there were some who, while similar to their Jew-baiting colleagues,
opposed various Marxist schools of thought, liberalism, atheism and other ideologies associated with Jewish mentality, did all this without slandering the Jews. The
best example is ron Mrton, the by now legendary Bishop of Gyulafehrvr (Alba
Iulia) who in one of his articles written in 1933 on the principles of public education
also used some expressions like the philistine worldview of liberalism or Bolshevism is the love child of liberalism71, while he never uses the term Jew. Apparently,
ron Mrton was not only generous and well educated, but also had the good sense
to realize, going against the fashion of the age, that identifying people with abstract
concepts is wrong even if practiced by many.
198
CEC_konyv.indd 198
2016.06.10. 8:37:03
by Dr Artur Lakatos
In 1933-1934, in the first years of Hitlers rise to power, some articles were
published in the church media that take a sympathetic view of Hitler and his movement. An anonymous contributor to Katolikus Vilg (Catholic World) among others,
lists prejudices against the Jews as some of the positive aspects of Hitlers program.
He saw through pretences already as a young man. He was quick to realize that the
workers movement was also under the control of Jewish capitalists, he writes.73
And a Calvin Protestant journalist from Nagyvrad (Oradea) Lajos Papp, published a
series of articles in the spring of 1934 in Reformtus Jv (Calvin Protestant Future)
with the title, A walk through the Third Reich. In these articles, among others, he
waxes lyrical about the social justice brought by the new regime. In Germany all the
unemployed, Christians and Jews alike, receive unemployment benefits. In Leipzig
I lived in the home of a Jewish widow who had a two-room apartment in the centre
of town. This Jewish window received DM 32 (1600 lei) a month in unemployment
benefits. In this respect there is no discrimination between the Aryan and Jewish
population. The charity collection box featuring the swastika serves all the starving
people, he writes among others.74 At the same time, these voices quickly disappear and are replaced with almost exclusively critical articles based on religious
doctrine and humanistic principles attacking and challenging Nazism church policies, ideology and practices.
For instance, Imre Sndor, one of the editors at Erdlyi Iskola (Transylvanian School, also published under the leadership of ron Mrton) reacts relatively
early, in the spring of 1933, to the major features of Nazi ideology. The article is
noteworthy as it is among the first to draw a parallel between Italian fascism and
German National Socialism in Transylvanias Hungarian-language media, at a
time when the friendship between Hitler and Mussolini is still off in the future. At
the same time, he emphasizes that Catholic ethos rejects both totalitarian ideologies: Due to its extreme positions and dictatorial policies in all spheres of life,
several tenets of the Fascist regime are diametrically opposed to Catholic teaching.
This has led to a number of clashes with the Holy See and the fact that fascism has
softened considerably since its inception is due, aside from Mussolinis discretion,
to the firm stance taken by Rome, he says about Italian fascism. In respect to Hitler
he notes that many aspects of his program are at variance with Catholic ideas and
the Conference of Bishops had to condemn his statements made during the development of his movements on many occasions.75
73 Katolikus Vilg (Catholic World): March 1933. pt munksbl-kancellr. Hitler Adolf Nmetorszg kancellrjnak lete s terve (From construction worker to Chancellor of Germany, Adolf Hitlers life and goal)
pp. 119-122.
74 Reformtus Jv (Calvin Protestant Future): April 29, 1934 Lajos Papp: Sta a Harmadik Birodalomban (A
walk through the Third Reich) p. 5.
75 Erdlyi Iskola (Transylvanian School): May 1933 Imre Sndor: Mussolini, Hitler. pp. 199-205.
CEC_konyv.indd 199
199
2016.06.10. 8:37:03
Churches Holocaust
200
CEC_konyv.indd 200
2016.06.10. 8:37:04
by Dr Artur Lakatos
In the same issue of the periodical, Endre Ivnka dismisses the principle of
race-based discrimination on similar grounds: we, Catholics find it difficult or
at least, by our faith should find it difficult to believe that in theory and by its own
nature one species of man could be inferior to another race; or: could it be possible that at times todays racist national socialism is more Jewish than the Jews
themselves?82
Calvin Protestant theologians and pastors take a similarly vehement stance
against Nazi ideas also starting from 1933. For instance, in Kis Tkr (Little Mirror)
he edited Istvn Kecskemthy said the following in 1933: If Kis Tkr were to comment on politics, first and foremost it should reveal all the deceptions attached to
politics National Socialism is a ship sailing under equally false colours as Christian Socialism had done not that long ago.83
In 1934, in the first issue of Reformtus Lelkipsztor (Calvin Protestant Pastor),
serving parishes with a scattered Hungarian population, Kroly Harnyi feels the need
to challenge a number of national socialist theses in a long article. German biblical
criticism, instead of objectivity, has straitjacketed itself into the most chauvinistic nationalism and subjected to criticism scientific statements that left an unsuspecting
world in the state of shock. along with the books of the old testament, German
anti-Semitism torpedoed the racial origin of Christ and announced to the world with
the cry of eureka: Christ was an Aryan!... so, Christ is of Aryan (indo-German)
stock, and not Jewish according to the latest German invention!! the new German swastika-branded theology sails on treacherous waters, he writes.84
The Unitarians took a similar view of Nazism. Keresztny Magvet (Christian
Sower) and Unitrius Kzlny (Unitarian Bulletin) criticized and attacked Nazi ideology primarily on the grounds of Christian values. A powerful Germany first declared
war on Jewry and expelled from its lands a large number of valuable Jews. Christian churches will be next. The ancestral home of Luther no longer needs Luthers
faith, or any other Christian faith, perhaps also because its founder, Jesus, was a
Jew,85 a prominent member of the Unitarian Church, Gyrgy Boros writes. Two
years later Imre Filep already uses a more cautious language and appears to cosy
up to National Socialism, while he also takes apart Rosenbergs worldview. If the
cornerstone of Rosenbergs followers religious faith is anchored in an optimistic
82 Erdlyi Tudst (Transylvanian Reporter): September 1941, issue 9 Endre Ivnka: Nemzeti szellem s
zsidsg (National soul and Jewry) p. 38.
83 Kis Tkr (Little Mirror): 22 July, 1933 Istvn Kecskemthy: Hitlervalls (Hitler cult) p. 1.
84 Reformtus Lelkipsztor (Pastor): Kroly Haraszy: Az rja Krisztus. (The Aryan Christ), 5 May 1934, Volume
I, issue 1.
85 Keresztny Magvet (Christian Sower): 1937, Volume 6, Gyrgy Boros: A keresztny valls jvje. (The
future of Christianity) pp. 263-168.
CEC_konyv.indd 201
201
2016.06.10. 8:37:04
Churches Holocaust
view of the world, the rejection of predestination, unlimited progress and belief in
mankinds call to good and greatness, etc., faith emanating from the one and only
God then here we are, Unitarians, he states among others. In another place he
talks about dogmatic churches when he declares that he considers Rosenberg
and his followers as heretics and the destroyers of Christianity.86
As shown above, Hungarian Christian opinion-makers in Transylvania openly
rejected parts of the Nazi ideology for a long time as illustrated by the above citations. It has to be noted, however, that similar voices gradually disappeared after
1940. The condemnation of Nazism did not automatically translate into philo-Semitism, and simply signified a preference for rationality over excessive aggression.
At the same time, these voices proved to be less critical of ideas coming from
Budapest because the hopes of the Hungarian minority in Transylvania were
inextricably tied to the current Hungarian leadership.
202
CEC_konyv.indd 202
2016.06.10. 8:37:04
by Dr Artur Lakatos
nians have said about Romanian Jews if, following the occupation of Romania they,
enjoying the same rights we have enjoyed under Hungarian rule, would have sided
with the occupying power?87 In 1937, at a popular assembly of the Romanian Jewish minority the same Tivadar Fischer already said the followings: Abandoning an
attempted assimilation that proved to be illusory, the Jewish issue may be resolved
satisfactorily only by national emancipation. Jewry has the obligation to come clean
and present itself as an autonomous minority in Romanian public life.88
Although a closer look reveals significant differences between the two statements separated by a long stretch of time, Fischer remained loyal to his Hungarian
mother tongue, he made an effort to develop a constructive relationship with the
Hungarians and Romanians alike, never betraying his Zionist identity and never losing sight of the struggle for the recognition of his own Jewish entity. Fischers statements well illustrate the attitude of Hungarian-speaking Jews in Transylvania who
had no intention to assimilate in any other national or religious community, stood up
for their rights and were ready to form an alliance of convenience with anyone in the
Romanian political arena, of course primarily with any community motivated by similar objectives, such as Hungarian minority communities. even as due to the particularities of the Romanian electoral system a Hungarian-Jewish political alliance had
no relevance when it came to the election of national legislative bodies,89 in local
elections various election cartels had an important role to play. One such cartel won
in 1933 in Kolozsvr (Cluj). On one side there was the Hungarian Party, the national
Peasants Party, the Social Democratic Party and the Jewish Party, and on the other
side the National Liberal Party that formed an election alliance with the Romanian
far right, the ultra-Romanians, as the article reporting on the election described
them. Even as the ultra-Romanians added 1000 non-resident Romanian students
to the electoral roll, the election was won by an alliance led by Victor Deleu and,
as a result of a deal, dr. Andrs Kovcs became his deputy. 90There were other
instances when Hungarian politicians tried to stand by the Jewish community in
87 Mihly Sebestyn: Nylgt az id ellen (Emergency dike against time), Marosvsrhely, Mentor kiad,
2000, p. 140.
88 Magyar Lapok (Hungarian Gazette): June 13, 1937. A nmet s a zsid npkisebbsgek orszgos gylsei
(National assembly of German and Jewish ethnic minorities) pp. 1-2.
89 In the interwar period, members of the Romanian Parliament were elected as follows: the King, following the
expiration of the governments mandate or its dissolution before term, appointed a new Prime Minister usually
coming from the potentially strongest party, and afterwards made arrangements for elections. The elections
were democratic according to the spirit of the time, i.e., violence, manipulation and electoral fraud were considered the norm and in this respect the party of the appointed Prime Minister enjoyed an advantage over the
other parties thanks to its control over state law-enforcement bodies and the administration. As a result, the
governing party typically achieved 40% at the polls (officially), automatically guaranteeing a two-thirds parliamentary majority. Thus, it was under no pressure to form a coalition with other parties and bargaining for the
opposition, not to mention the minorities, was all but impossible.
90 Erdlyi Lapok (Transylvanian Gazette): 5 March 1933 Htfn vlaszt Erdly fvrosa (The capital of Transylvania votes on Monday) p. 5. Othrerwise, Deleus mandate ends this November.
CEC_konyv.indd 203
203
2016.06.10. 8:37:04
Churches Holocaust
the face of the Romanian leadership, as happened in 1938 when the nationalist
government led by the poet, Octavian Goga stripped some Romanian Jews of
their citizenship. In response to Hungarian appeals, Goga simply commented: Im
going to respond to this with the wisdom of Solomon. If the Hungarians wish to offer
privileges to the Jews, let them come to me and declare their intention in the open.
Then we are going to discuss it. We, unlike the liberal-democratic system, take a
much tougher stance on internal and subversive communist teachings91
It must be noted here that the Goga governments measures led to protests by
Jewish organizations that took their case to the League of Nations, although their
efforts were not met with success. In one of its articles Magyar Lapok (Hungarian
Gazette) reports that Hungarian envoy extraordinaire, Velics supported his Romanian counterpart, Micescu in putting up a defence,92 indicating that Hungarian and
Romanian diplomacy managed to cooperate when racial issues were involved.
As a general rule, contemporary church media, while remaining silent, intimated that the excesses of Romanian nationalism pose threats for Hungarian and
Jewish minorities alike. One of the correspondents of the Calvin Protestant Egyhzi
jsg (Church Paper) published in Bucharest only gives his initials and reports of a
disheartening story from a grammar school in the city. The story is about the forced
assimilation of Hungarian children in Bucharest and the nationalist and anti-Jewish
slogans used by the kids speak for themselves:
I am in the largest grammar school, attended by some 1000 children, on the
outskirts of the city. As I enter one of the classrooms, the kids jump up and scream
at the top of their lungs:
zbnd pentru Romni i moarte pentru Jidani! . I ask Calvin Protestant kids
to stand up. No one moves.
Is there not a single Hungarian Calvin Protestant in this class?
There is deep silence, then Romanian kids stand up and point at five or six
other kids: i el e ungur! i el e ungur!93 However, despite all the kicking and
shoving, those stigmatized do not stand up and, with cheeks burning with the insult,
screamed: Eu nu sunt ungur, domnule nvtor, eu sunt ortodox!94
91 Magyar Lapok (Hungarian Gazette): January 30, 1938. A reversion of citizenship does not apply to Hungarians, only Jews the prime minister said. p. 1.
92 Magyar Lapok (Hungarian Gazette): February, 1938, pp. 1, 2
93 Translation of the quoted Romanian sentences: Victory for Romanians, death to the Jews!, He too is Hungarian!, Mr. Teacher, I am not a Hungarian, I am an Orthodox. Translation by the author.
94 Egyhzi jsg (Church Paper): 27 December 1936 G. L.: Gyermekeinkrl (About our kids) p. 2.
204
CEC_konyv.indd 204
2016.06.10. 8:37:04
by Dr Artur Lakatos
It also happened that verbal violence testing the patience of Hungarians resulted in strong reactions and a firm stance, a sign of solidarity perhaps motivated by
a shared minority status. One such piece was published in 1937 in Kilt Sz (Out
loud) in Kolozsvr (Cluj) in reaction to the anti-Semitic diatribes of Miron Cristea,
the Romanian Orthodox patriarch. The author of the article notes with sadness that
Orthodox priests express their solidarity with their patriarch even on these matters.
Knowing the structure of the Orthodox Church, the consternation is nothing more
than some moralizing and is rather addressed to the readers of the publication.
Considering the spirit of the times, its a small miracle that censorship let the article
pass.95 It must also be noted here that this is far from the most aggressive invective
coming from patriarch Miron Cristea. On July 12, 1938, he expressed his views
relevant to this topic in the Romanian daily, Curentul:
Where is it written that only you, Jews can live on the backs of others and on
Romania like some parasites?
Where is it written that we must look on as you suck the blood of the people
and Christians until our sons have no choice but to leave the family home and go
into exile?
Where is it written that we have no right to rid ourselves of this threat and shake
off these parasites?
You have some international organizations, as much money as you want, you
are talented and intelligent, you can solve any situation, in other words you have all
the ability and means to find a piece of uninhabited land to call your country and
home. Populate and cultivate the land, and sweat under heavy labour.
Live among your own kind, support each other, defend and exploit each other.
Do this to each other and not the other people whose property you acquire with
the help of the Talmud and methods unique to your race. Im not sufficiently familiar
with geography as to recommend you a specific place. however, I believe there is
enough room in Africa, Australia, Asia or on some islands, etc. expelling others from
their home and land, like the Arabs in Palestine, is neither just nor human. They also
have a right to a homeland, and you cannot ask someone to leave his home and
generously invite you, just because you are a Jew, to occupy his place while he can
go wherever he wishes.96
95 Kilt Sz (Outloud): November 1937 A romn ortodox patriarcha s a zsidkrds. (The Romanian Orthodox patriarch and the Jewish issue) p. 123.
96 Carol Iancu: Evreii din Romnia de la emancipare la marginalizare, 1919-1938. Bucureti, Editura Hasefer,
2000, pp. 269. Translation by the author.
CEC_konyv.indd 205
205
2016.06.10. 8:37:04
Churches Holocaust
206
CEC_konyv.indd 206
2016.06.10. 8:37:04
by Dr Artur Lakatos
ety, and the other is emigration to Palestine.100 While this approach is far from the
virulent anti-Semitic tone that will appear on the pages of Magyar Lapok (Hungarian
Gazette) in the years of World War II,101 it is interesting to note that neither the competent leaders of the Jewish community see Tivadar Fischers statements cited
above nor relevant Hungarian intellectuals see a solution in the assimilation of
Jewry or, alternatively, in the viability of a project calling for an arrangement separate from all religious considerations, yet integrated in all other respects. Whether
the differences (be they genuine or imaginary) were brought to the surface by topics
considered relevant in the 1930s, or had been dormant all along, as was common
knowledge and never probed by anyone, today is impossible to decide conclusively. In my opinion, any researcher aiming for objectivity will continue to face many
challenges in this area.
CEC_konyv.indd 207
207
2016.06.10. 8:37:04
Churches Holocaust
all Bangha Bla can say is: A solution can only be achieved through a religious
rapprochement. Christians and Jews have the common interest and obligation
to facilitate such a move with love and without prejudice.105 In 1939, one of the
contributors of Magyar Lapok (Hungarian Gazette) applauds that the police apprehended Arrow Cross members who attacked the Dohny Street synagogue.106
True, the tone of voice changes radically by the 1940s when articles with titles:
Zsidsiratk,107 (Mourning the Jews) appear, where Jnos Gresy Lber berates Hungarians acting humanely towards Jews; or Tnjenek el a zsidk s
a zsid szellem keresztnyek (Out with Jews and Christians with a Jewish
mentality.108 However, this is more a result of a shift in political winds than a
change in church attitudes.109
In this chapter i have to make a special mention of the reverberating echo of the
Tiszaeszlr trial. In this context, i wish to call attention to three articles published in the
interwar period at three different dates and in different places in the Hungarian church
media in Transylvania. In 1923, Katolikus let (Catholic Life) already describes the
blood libel as in part certainly fabricated and exaggerated stories populated by Jews,
i.e., desecrators of the holy wafer, ritual child killers and well poisoners. 110. In 1932
Erdlyi Lapok (Transylvanian Gazette) condemns the return to the blood libel in relation to an article published in another Hungarian periodical, the Nagyvrad (Oradea).
What was the purpose of that piece? What was the spiritual motive moving the hand
of the author disturbing caskets turning to dust in tombs. And now the entire file of
the Tiszaeszlr trial has been returned to court after almost fifty years. But this could
unearth documents and secret deals made at the top that while never serving to
prove the libel case this time may give a different colouring to the trial that would
have been best buried instead of used forever to bludgeon souls, Christian and Jewish alike,111 the author writes.112 And Kis Tkr (Little Mirror), in 1933 published an
105
106
107
108
109
110
111
112
208
CEC_konyv.indd 208
Magyar Lapok (Hungarian Gazette): April 12, 1934 A zsidkrds legmlyebb alapja a vallsi
klnbzds. P Bangha eladsa a konvertitk rszre.(Religious separation lies at the depth of the Jewish issue Bla Banghas lecture to converts) p. 6.
Magyar Lapok (Hungarian Gazette): February 18, 1939, A rendrsg elfogta a budapesti Dohny-utcai
zsid-templom mernylit (The police apprehended the attackers of the Dohny street Synagogue in
Budapest) p. 2.
Magyar Lapok (Hungarian Gazette): June 14, 1941. Jnos Gresy Lber: Zsidsiratk (Mourning the
Jews) p. 5.
Magyar Lapok (Hungarian Gazette): March 19, 1942. Tnjenek el a zsidk s a zsid szellem keresztnyek (Out with Jews and Christians with a Jewish mentality) p. 5.
Demonstrated by the fact that in weekly and monthly publications under obvious church control the Jewish
issue did not become a central issue, and they also refrained from the use of aggressive language. The case
of the daily Magyar Lapok (Hungarian Gazette) is an exception as it functioned as a political mouthpiece.
Katolikus let (Christian Life): 20 May 1923, Egyhz s a zsidsg. Vlasz egy sokat vitatott krdsre
(The church and the Jews. Response to a much-debated issue) p. 1.
Erdlyi Lapok (Transylvanian Gazette): April 18, 1932, A tiszaeszlri vrvd ismt trvnyszk el kerl
(The Tiszaeszlr blood libel case is back in court) p. 7.
It must also be said in fairness that Erdlyi Lapok (Transylvanian Gazette) came under attack already and its
2016.06.10. 8:37:04
by Dr Artur Lakatos
article on the same topic in its customary lucid style, saying: The court in its own
judgment had to hand down a ruling based on the merits of the case ending in an
acquittal. With this it performed one of the highest achievements in Hungarian legal
history. Those casting a shadow on the Tiszaeszlr verdict wish to obliterate that glorious feat. Yet, they should take a moment to consider that by warming up half-witted
hearsay, instead of doing harm to the Jewish community; they simply demonstrate the
inferiority of the community to which they dare to feed this nonsense. The Tiszaeszlr
story is damaging to those trumpeting it, and not to its intended target. Yet, a Christian
man should fight it as a Satanic practice.113
All the above show that on the whole open violence, absurd charges and visceral anti-Semitism were rejected in the church media.
launch from Budapest liberal circles and not quite without reason, see Bla Banghas January 3 article, Isnt
it a shame? including one of the key figures behind the publication, Elemr Gyrfs, member of the Hungarian Party and president of the Roman Catholic Status. In response, following the launch of Erdlyi Lapok
(Transylvanian Gazette), on March 19, 1932 Elemr Gyrfs is forced to publish an article on the defensive,
entitled Reactionary showing of the colors in Transylvania (pp. 1-2). Skirmishes and explanations continue
thereafter (See Mrton Fehr: April 1, 1932, Kt hrlapi cikk margjra (On the margins of two magazine
articles, p. 6). In this light, the editorial board of Erdlyi Lapok (Transylvanian Gazette) coming under attack
already at its inception would have found itself in an awkward position if, along with charges claiming political
anti-Semitism, its position on the Tiszaeszlr case were to offer another front for attack.
113 Kis Tkr (Little Mirror): April 29, 1933 Eszter Solymosi. p. 16.
114 Ferenc Lng (1889-1950) historian of Szatmr, Catholic church historian, history/Latin teacher.
CEC_konyv.indd 209
209
2016.06.10. 8:37:05
Churches Holocaust
the churches, the Jewish man defends the role of religion. The article carries a
clear message:
An old morose Jew shakes his head in discomfort and asks his partners: Tell
me, what the world would come to without pastors? Are you sure people wouldnt
devour each other?
I find the Jewish mans statement showing more sophisticated ideas and
more thorough knowledge about the mission of priesthood than dialogue of the two
other men.115
In another instance, Zionists sympathizing with Hungarians and the spirit of
Transylvania are given a positive treatment in a piece penned by Vilmos Blny in a
Unitarian periodical published in Szkely Land.116 In other places the idea is echoed
that there are many well-intentioned and charitable people among the Jews, and
they deserve to be treated the same:
In contrast, i know a number of Christians that had been helped by Jews, that
have received and continue to receive bread from Jews. In fact, there are Jewish
men whose life of integrity could be an example for many Christians. These Jews
are all but Christians. This being the case, a Christian cannot be anti-Semitic117, the
writer known for his fairness, Imre Balnyi, states in Erdlyi Lapok (Transylvanian
Gazette), a publication that otherwise is characterized by highly critical views on
Jews.118
The mention of shared religious roots is not uncommon either. For instance,
in a 1937 issue of a womens association periodical published in Arad the following
argument was presented in a question-and-answer format: even though the Jews
are guilty of rejecting Christ, they are not lost from the point of salvation. One must
pray for their conversion and baptism, and at the end of times they too will be admitted to heaven as Jews and the chosen ones for they are the bearers of the religion
revealed by god.119
115 Hitlergrda. October 10, 1932, no. 10, Dr. Ferenc Lng, Flix s a zsid (Flix and the Jew) p. 3
116 Unitrius Egyhz (Unitarian Church): 15 March 1926 Vilmos Blny: Korunk keresi a maga keresztnysgt (Our age in search of its own Christianity) pp. 20-22.
117 Erdlyi Lapok (Transylvanian Gazette): 29 September 1935 Imre Balnyi: szvetsg s antiszemitizmus
(Old Testament and anti-Semitism) pp. 1-2.
118 In the 1930s, Erdlyi Lapok (Transylvanian Gazette) was engaged in hard-hitting skirmishes with some
liberal publications in Budapest, and that was about the extent of its Jew-baiting at the time. It reported on
developments affecting Jews in Romania in a relatively correct and impartial fashion. This changes starting in
1940, when in many pieces the Jew, individually and as a group, is routinely demonized.
119 A Nap: 1937, issue 2 Az Egyhz majd megfelel (The church shall respond) pp. 18-19.
210
CEC_konyv.indd 210
2016.06.10. 8:37:05
by Dr Artur Lakatos
CEC_konyv.indd 211
211
2016.06.10. 8:37:05
Churches Holocaust
XIV. 12-15) that the Lord Jesus Christ honoured the Jewish holidays and followed
Jewish rites to the last minute. Who then follows the example of Christ?
Each Saturday Christ faithfully and punctually went to the synagogue of the
Jews, he loved the house of the Lord where he learned of his heavenly Father. Well
then, who follows the example of the Lord Jesus, the one who yearns to attend the
house of the Lord, or the one who never visits?123
The most intriguing is perhaps when unwittingly or rather on purpose the example of Jewish survival through the millennia is set up as a model for minority
Hungarians. In a lecture delivered at a 1936 youth conference Sndor Bokor drew
a parallel between the fate of Jewry and the Mors settled on the Iberian Peninsula,
in favour of the former by arguing:
We must treat the affairs of God with the same reverence as had been done
by the sons of Israel, who never treaded on a discarded piece of paper lest it has the
name of the Lord written on it and they should step on it by accident.
Today, this is the only divinely ordered path set before the Hungarian Calvinist
youth living in minority, the other is the fate of the Saracens ... And there is no
third path..124
Examples like these clearly explain why the Hungarian church media in Transylvania were devoid of virulent and widespread anti-Semitism.
212
CEC_konyv.indd 212
2016.06.10. 8:37:05
by Dr Artur Lakatos
One finds not a single article on Jewish mission in the periodicals of the small
Unitarian church. As a special feature, it must be noted here that Unitarianism is closer
to Judaism than the two other Christian denominations because the Unitarians do not
accept the holy trinity or the divine nature of Jesus Christ. Consequently, in their writings Unitarian theologians often find a common platform with Jewry, even as they point
out the differences. For instance, in 1927 Istvn Borbly says nothing less than that
the first Christians were Jewish themselves, and not only in origin, but also in respect
to liturgy. The only thing distinguishing them from the Jews was their messiah cult. In
1939 Sndor Szent-Ivnyi promotes the brotherhood of Unitarians, Sabbatarians and
Jews in a few words: my Sabbatarian by now already Jewish brethren.126
A demand for Jewish mission is given the most emphasis on the pages of Calvin Protestant periodicals, especially in Kis Tkr (Little Mirror) with two converted
Jewish staff members, Adolf Klein and Pl Klein A. In 1926 an article is published
under the pseudonym of Jeremiah perhaps by Adolf Klein or someone else on
the topic of Jewish mission, where the author was converted from Judaism to Christianity himself. Jeremiahs final conclusion goes as follows:
Therefore, if we wish to solve the Jewish issue, there is but one way: through
love. If this people experiences the love of Christ in Christianity and feels its warmth,
its hatred of Christ will vanish and it cannot do other than fall down before his love
and feel the blessings of the ancient cry of ancestors His blood shall be on
us and on our children!(Mathew, 27:25) .127 Starting in 1930, Adolf Klein writes
about his personal missionary work, its achievements and failures, and on another
occasion he drafts the following bitter thoughts on the occasion of a conference by
Galician Jews converted to Christianity:
By the grace of god i can also be present at this conference, although i have
to admit i go with a heavy heart for Im the only one to attend from Transylvania, and
i alone will have to convey the expectations, yearnings, suffering and pain of Transylvanian Jewry.
I have confidence that this conference will motivate us to carry on, and the
human soul will wake up and understand that 9,878,800 souls in Europe cannot
light-heartedly and carelessly be left in an agonizing state of hopelessness.128
126 Unitrius rtest (Unitarian Report): February 1939, issue 2 Sndor Szent-Ivnyi: Dvid Ferenc s a szombatossg (Ferenc Dvid and Sabbatinism) p. 14.
127 Kis Tkr (Little Mirror): May 15, 1926, pp. 81-82 pp. (1-2) Jeremis : A zsidkrds helyes megoldsa.
(The right solution of the Jewish issue) p. 81-82 (1-2).
128 Kis Tkr (Little Mirror): April 11, 1931 Adolf Klein: Krisztushv zsidk konferencija Galacban. (The
conference of Christ-believing Jews in Galac) pp. 57-58.
CEC_konyv.indd 213
213
2016.06.10. 8:37:05
Churches Holocaust
Unknowingly, these lines appear as a prophetic vision of the future, well before
the rise of institutionalized anti-Semitism in Europe and the Nazi takeover in Germany another article by Pl Klein A. reveals that the integration of Jews converting
to Christianity was far from easy. There was plenty of evidence that Christians were
suspicious of converted Jews.129
Not only in Kolozsvr (Cluj) did the Calvin Protestants believe in the viability
of the Jewish mission. In 1939, on the pages of the Calvin Protestant Lelkipsztor
(Calvin Protestant Pastor) Arthur Tompa130 ponders Christian-Jewish relations in an
increasingly aggressive environment. In his view two things distinguish Jewry from
other nations: the notion of being chosen and their propensity for detachment.
Both are motivated by religion, although as a result of materialistic thinking they
became distorted and secularized, eliciting the loathing of the majority of Christians. It is a mistake not to proselytize and evangelize the Jews, because he
believes once Jewry accepts Christ, the Jewish issue will have found a radical
and positive solution. Just as Jewry has the privileged obligation to evangelize the
non-Christian peoples of the world, the church of Christ has the equally privileged
task of evangelizing the Jews The final resolution of the Jewish issue by divine
will lies in partaking and participating in this mutually inter-related missionary work,
he writes.131
While the efforts of missionaries did not offer a fundamental solution for the
Jews as demonstrated by the events of World War II articles like these offer
evidence for a desire to bridge the gap, even if the desired result is tied to baptism.
Conclusions
As illustrated by the selection presented above, the Jewish issue receives a rather
complex treatment in the interwar period in Transylvanias Hungarian church media. The highlighted examples clearly point to a duality: the simultaneous existence
of certain prejudices and a measure of sympathy towards the Jews. To complete
the picture it must be noted that the number of articles involving the Jewish issue
in these publications is negligible compared to that in pieces dealing with, for instance, the organization of agricultural work or the future of religious communities
in a population scattered over a wide area. In many cases years pass before Jews
129 Kis Tkr (Little Mirror): December 19, 1931, Pl A. Klein: Zsidmisszi. (Jewish mission) p. 203.
130 Arthur Tompa (1872-1945), Calvin Protestant pastor, economic journalist. Killed in 1944 by an Iron Guard
gendarme.
131 Reformtus Lelkipsztor (Calvin Protestant Pastor): Volume VI, 1939, February 5, issues no. 2-3. Arthur
Tompa: Krisztus egyhza s a zsidkrds. (The Church of Christ and the Jewish issue) pp. 25-31.
214
CEC_konyv.indd 214
2016.06.10. 8:37:05
by Dr Artur Lakatos
are mentioned in some form or another. The exception to this is Erdlyi Lapok (Transylvanian Paper) that covers current political events.
Until 1940, the minority churches condemned the persecution of Jews,
and solidarity among the minorities was relatively strong, Mihly Sebestyn
writes.132 However, with the second Vienna Award in 1940 the re-annexed territories become infested with Hungarian anti-Semitism. While the majority of Jews
living in Northern Transylvania were honestly happy about the return of Hungarian rule133 for two reasons: their attachment to Hungarian culture and bitter
experiences under an aggressive Romanian nationalism their happiness was
followed by disappointment within days.134 Anti-Semitic voices became louder
and following the German invasion in March 1944 and the formation of the Sztjay government, deportations got underway along the model established in
other regions of Hungary
Regarding the church media specifically i.e., journals, weekly and daily
publications published by church people even in this period one finds no material difference in content or topic in respect to the Jewish issue. At the same
time, when it comes to the Transylvanian Gazette later renamed as Hungarian
Gazette primarily a daily but, as i noted in the introduction, under considerable
church influence there is a notable change. Not only in the increased number of pieces dealing with the Jewish issue and an amplification of anti-Semitic
voices, but also in the increasingly personal nature of the attacks. Conflicts between Jewish and Christian merchants and retailers receive wide coverage,135
at times presented as class warfare.136 When a Jewish merchant expresses
an opinion out of line hes taken to task by name, for instance when the paper
predicts137 a huge scandal when it reports the ironic comment by the drugstore
owner, Mr. Lwenstein on a shortage of supplies: We also have some Transylvanian candidates here. With all that, even in these years we have examples of
132 Mihly Sebestyn: Nylgt az id ellen (Temporary dike against time) Marosvsrhely, Mentor kiad, 2000,
p. 155.
133 On this see more detail: Artur Lakatos: The Jews from Cluj in September 1940, in Transylvanian Review,
Vol. XIX, Supplement no. 5/IV/2010, pp 197-204.
134 In this context, see: Lajos Erdlyi: Tlls. Egy fotogrfus visszaemlkezse (Survival. The memoir of a photorapher) Zachor Knyvek, 2012. Second, expanded edition, pp. 47-48
135 Magyar Lapok (Hungarian Gazette): 4 January 1941. A keresztny ipar s kereskedelem gondjai (The
vows of Hungarian industry and merchants) p. 5; 24 May 1941 Keresztny piaci rusok panasza (The complaints of Christian market vendors) p. 3; May 24, June 6, 1941 Zsid Knan a Nagyvrad-i (Oradea)
piacon (Jewish Canaan on the Nagyvrad (Oradea) market) p. 2.
136 Magyar Lapok (Hungarian Gazette): 11 September 1940, A zsid nagyiparos s a magyar munks The
Jewish industrialist and the Hungarian worker) p. 6; January 11, 1941, Utcra kerlnek a keresztny alkalmazottak Christian employees are sacked) p. 6.
137 Magyar Lapok (Hungarian Gazette): October 3, 1941, Lwenstein s az erdlyi indul (Lwenstein and
the Transylvanian candidate) p. 4.
CEC_konyv.indd 215
215
2016.06.10. 8:37:05
Churches Holocaust
138 Magyar Lapok (Hungarian Gazette): 5 October 1942 Zsidk a fronton (Jews at the front) p. 4.
139 Ellenzk (Opposition):1940-1944, passim.
140 A telling piece in Ellenzk (Opposition) related to the deportations and entitled Ne sajnljuk ket. (Dont feel
sorry for them) stands out.
216
CEC_konyv.indd 216
2016.06.10. 8:37:05
by Dr Artur Lakatos
Appendix
The list of reviewed periodicals for the project The Jewish issue in the Transylvanian
church media
1, Careii-Mari (Nagykroly) Executive Committee, Calvin Protestant diocese, 1922
2, A Nap (The Sun). A Catholic Womens Association publication, Arad, 19331944
3, A Szent Kereszt (The Holy Cross), a Franciscan publication, Kolozsvr (Cluj)
1926-1942
4, Bihari Protestnsok Lapja (Calvin Protestant Gazette for Calvin Protestants in
Bihar County), Nagyvrad (Oradea) 1942-1943
5, Egyetrts (Consensus), publication of the Brass (Brasov) Calvin Protestant
congregation, 1934-1941
6, Egyhz s let (Church and Life), publication of the Gyulafehrvr (Alba Iulia)
Theological Seminary, 1939-1940
7, Egyhz s papsg (Church and priesthood), Calvin Protestant, Kibd (Chibed),
1932-1934
8, Egyhzi rtest (Church Bulletin), bi-weekly bulletin published by the Nyrdszereda (Miercurea Nirajului) Calvin Protestant church, 1926
9, Egyhzi Hrad (Church Reporter), Calvin Protestant, Szatmr (Satu Mare),
1922-1930
10, Egyhzi Hrad (Church Reporter), Unitrius, Brass (Brasov), 1941-1942
11, Egyhzi Kzlet (Church Public Life), Ds (Dej), Calvin Protestant, 1925-1930
12, Egyhzi jsg (Church Paper) published by the Bucharest Calvin Protestant
Diocese, 1934-1941
13, Egyhzkzsgi Tudst (Church Congregation Reporter), Roman Catholic,
Brass (Brasov), 1940-1942
CEC_konyv.indd 217
217
2016.06.10. 8:37:06
Churches Holocaust
218
CEC_konyv.indd 218
2016.06.10. 8:37:06
by Dr Artur Lakatos
29, Protestns Egyhzi let (Calvin Protestant Family Life), Nagyenyed (Aiud),
1935-1944
30, Protestns Gyermekknyvtr (Calvin Protestant Childrens Library), 1940
31, Protestns Gylekezeti let (Calvin Protestant congregational life), Szkelyudvarhely (Odorheiu Secuiesc), 1939-1940
32, Protestns Egyhzi Hrad (Calvin Protestant Church Reporter), Nagyvrad
(Oradea) (Oradea), 1923
33, Protestns Ifjsg (Calvin Protestant Youth), Marosvsrhely (Tirgu Mures) later
Kolozsvr (Cluj), 1933-1944
34, Protestns Jv (Calvin Protestant Future), Nagyvrad (Oradea) (Oradea),
1933- 1937
35, Protestns Lelkipsztor (Calvin Protestant Pastor), Zilah (Zalau), 1934-1939
36, Protestns rll (Calvin Protestant Guard), Nagybnya (Baia Mare), 19331934 (after merger with Egyhz s papsg/Church and priesthood, it continues as Protestns Lelkipsztor/Calvin Protestant Pastor)
37, Protestns Lapja (Calvin Protestant Gazette), Kolozsvr (Cluj), 1926-1937
38, Protestnsok Lapja (Calvin Protestant Gazette), Nagyvrad (Oradea) (Oradea), 19271936
39, Unitrius Egyhz, Szkelykeresztr, 1922-1939
40, Unitrius Evanglium (Unitarian Gospel), Kolozsvr (Cluj), 1933-1935
41, Unitrius rtest (Unitarian Bulletin), Budapest, 1939-1940
42, Unitrius Hrnk (Unitarian Messenger), Bucharest, 1933-1938
43, Unitrius Jvend (Unitarian Future), Brass (Brasov), 1939-1940
44, Unitrius Kzlny (Unitarian Bulletin), Kolozsvr (Cluj), 1920-1944
CEC_konyv.indd 219
219
2016.06.10. 8:37:06
Churches Holocaust
220
CEC_konyv.indd 220
2016.06.10. 8:37:06
Izabella Pter
CEC_konyv.indd 221
221
2016.06.10. 8:37:06
Churches Holocaust
up with Nyregyhza as its seat in 1912, consecrated by Pope Pious Xs bull starting
with Christifidelisgraeci. This was protested by the Romanian Greek Catholics.
After the Treaty of Trianon, Transylvania was attached to Romania2, which, in
spite of having signed the Minority Treaty, failed to create a legal framework to regulate the new situation. The situation of Catholic bishoprics in Transylvanian territories
was defined only after the signing and ratification of the treaty concluded with the
Holy See (Concordat).
The 1922 Romanian Constitution settled the constitutional status of churches
existing in the territory of Romania. In the new situation, churches of minorities were
given an important role in strengthening Romanias national consciousness. The
Greek Catholic church played an important role in this process. Therefore, Article
22 of the Romanian Constitution declared two churches to be Romanian churches: the Orthodox and the Greek Catholic churches. The 1928 Act on religious denominations recognised only these two as churches, and called all others cults.
Based on this, five different types of churches were distinguished in Romania:
1. dominant church (Orthodox)
2. privileged church (Greek Catholic)
3. historical churches (Catholic churches of Latin, Ruthenian, Greek and Armenian liturgies, Calvinist, Lutheran, Unitarian, Armenian, Jewish, etc.)
4. recognised church (Baptist)
5. unrecognised churches (Nazarenes, Adventists, etc.)3
Though the Greek Catholic church had priority over all other religions except for
Orthodoxy, the Act on religious denominations considered it an independent religion
separate from the Roman Catholic church, and although the two churches basically
represented a single religion and differed only in their rites, it granted an opportunity
to convert from one another. However, this started a very special fight aimed at proselytising followers: the Orthodox made every effort to convert Greek Catholics, while
Greek Catholics directed their efforts at winning over Roman Catholics.4
In this competition, the Romanian Orthodox church (the national church) was
a great promoter of Romanisation. This is why Roman Greek Catholics, in an effort
2 Mihai Brbulescu, Dennis Deletant, Keith Hitchins, erbanPapcostea, Pompiliu Teodor IstoriaRomniei,
Corint Kiad, Bukarest, 2005, p. 345
3 Lukcs, Imre Rbert, A grgkatolikusok helyzete Erdlyben az els vilghbor utn (The Position
of Greek Catholics in Transylvania after World War I)
4 Ibidem
222
CEC_konyv.indd 222
2016.06.10. 8:37:06
by Izabella Pter
to prove their loyalty to the nation, often exhibited an even more nationalistic behaviour than representatives of the Orthodox church.
The new change was brought about by the Second Vienna Award, as a consequence of which some one million Romanians came under Hungarian authority. This
meant about 450,000 Orthodox and 550,000 Greek Catholic believers, while Blaj
(Balzsfalva) remained in Romanias territory. The Lugoj diocese remained in Romania, while the Maramures (Mramaros), the Cluj-Gherla (Kolozsvr-Szamosjvr),
and the Oradea (Nagyvrad) dioceses were attached to Hungary, under the leadership of Oradea Canon Iosif Pop.5
Greek Catholic bishop of Cluj-Gherla Iuliu Hossu (Hossz Gyula) attempted to
reintegrate in the Hungarian church. He represented Greek Catholics in Parliament
as a member of Hungarys Upper House, and in the Hungarian Council of Bishops
along with Sndor Rusu.
The history of the Greek Catholic church has been characterised by a series
of changes in rites caused by political changes. In the period after the Treaty of
Trianon, Hungarian-speaking believers adopted the Latin rite because Romanias
Constitution considered Greek Catholic believers to be of Romanian nationality. In
order to prevent this, a relatively high number of people opted for changing their religion. At the same time, many Roman Catholics under Romanian authority converted
to Greek Catholicism to be able to keep their jobs. Similarly, Greek Catholics often
chose to convert to Orthodoxy to attest their loyalty to the state. However, this trend
was reversed after the Second Vienna Award, and those who had left their original
faith tried to return to the old liturgy. Documents held in the Roman Catholic Archdiocese from 1942 contain a huge number of applications for baptising completed on
a template by those re-converting from Greek Catholicism to Roman Catholicism.
As the Greek Catholic church wished to secure a leading position within the
new post-Trianon state, it proved to be a pioneer of nationalism.6Priests who spoke
no Hungarian were deployed in parishes, Hungarian was not permitted to be used as
the language of liturgy, and Hungarian priests were harassed.7 Romania welcomed
all the help it received in strengthening and forcefully spreading Romanian national
consciousness, be it from the Orthodox church or minority churches. In this period,
national churches evolved into increasingly important factors of the cultural, social
5 Gergely, Jen, Az erdlyi grgkatolikus romn egyhz (The Romanian Greek Catholic church of Transylvania)
6 Lukcs, op. cit.
7 Pirigyi, Istvn, A grgkatolikus magyarsg trtnete (The history of Greek Catholic Hungarians) Grgkatolikus Hittudomnyi Fiskola, 1982, p. 66
CEC_konyv.indd 223
223
2016.06.10. 8:37:06
Churches Holocaust
and political spheres.8Greek Orthodox and Greek Catholic bishops all became
members of Romanias Senate ipso facto, which increased the ability to influence them. In Romania, the church has always been a state church, which also
meant that political parties guided and used them for their own purposes.
It is important to stress that during this period, Greek Catholics were more
Catholic than the Pope, meaning they occasionally represented an extremely
nationalistic opinion in the supremacy fight with Orthodoxy. To attest their national loyalty, their attacks in this competition were directed against Hungarians
just as against other nationalities, particularly Jews. This also means that in the
first part of the period in question, i.e. in the early 1920s, the attacks of many
articles published held Jews in the target mark as well, as accomplices to Hungarians.
The anti-Semitic political parties and groups set up between the two World
Wars tried to exploit the Greek Orthodox and the Greek Catholic churches on
the basis of this orientation. A spectacular example for this was the attempt by
L.A.N.C.9, the National Christian Defence League set up in 1923 by A. C. Cuza,
to enrol the clergy of both national churches as ideologists of the party. Highly
anti-Semitic Cuza has pursued an active propaganda to win over Orthodox believers and priests from the outset. However, this attempt failed initially, because his
booklets The teachings of Jesus and The warriors booklet, distributed in front of the
Orthodox Metropoly in 1925, twisted and falsified the Christian faith to such an extent
that they provoked Patriarch Miros Cristeas rage, who labelled Cuza a heretic.
In spite of this, they continued to pursue their propaganda, as a result of
which a part of the Orthodox church clergy actively participated in the parliamentary representation of the All for the Homeland party, the political party of
Archangel Michael Legion, a faction that left the League. According to Radu
Ioanid, in 1937, 33 of the partys 103 candidates were priests, and about 55
Orthodox priests were given leading roles in the Legion.10
This widespread representation is quite possible to imagine, because the
anti-Semitism latently present in traditional Romanian Society has always been
fed by the different legends, proverbs, and the representation of Jews in clerical
texts.11
8 Lukcs, op. cit.
9 Abbreviation of Liga AprriiNaionaleCretine
10 GeorgetaPan, Antisemitismul religios din perspectiva Holocaustului - analizcomparativ: Polonia, Ungaria,Romnia unpublished Ph.D. thesis, p. 149
11 Pan, i.m. 149.o.
224
CEC_konyv.indd 224
2016.06.10. 8:37:06
by Izabella Pter
This is exactly the anti-Semitism extreme right-wing parties and groups counted on when they wished to secure a mass base. Each of the Fascist movements
created in the 1920s built its rhetoric on the same national Orthodox values,
which they then tried to re-write according to their own ideas.
A. C. Cuza presented the League as a Christian brotherhood of all good Romanians who resolved to defend their Christian laws against the Jews, because
getting rid of Jews was a national and not a party issue.12
A. C. Cuzas politics is a strange mixture of spluttering anti-Semitism and
falsified Christian principles. This politician, who said, before I die, I would like
to see the blood of Jews mingle with mud,13 accused even the church of not
having denied the Old Testament that came from Jews, thereby helping Satan
gain ground, with Satan obviously embodied by Jews, of course.14Cuza did not
hesitate to falsify the Bible in the Leagues publications later on, either. Unfortunately, however, he was able to preach his theories undisturbed, in the absence
of firm action by the churches.
In 1927, Corneliu Zelea Codreanu founded the Legion of Archangel Michael,
the paramilitary branch of which adopted the name Iron Guard in 1930. The Iron
Guards programme was based on nationalism and Fascism mixed with mystic
religiosity, with highly anti-Semitic and anti-Communist features. The Iron Guard
was officially dissolved in 1933 but continued to function in fact, and transformed into a political party under the name All for the Homeland in 1935. The
government had an ambivalent approach to the movement, persecuting it once,
then granting the status of recognised political party to the Legionary Movement
as the only one of that kind, and in 1940, Romania officially became a National
Legionary State.
Over time, both L.A.N.C. and the Iron Guard operated with strong religious
symbols, and priests of the various (but mostly, Orthodox) churches were apt to
take part in ceremonies of benediction of party flags and mass christenings held in
villages on holidays. The Orthodox church welcomed the religiousness of legionary youngsters with pleasure, while for Guard members, their social recognition
depended greatly on acceptance by the national church.
The anti-Semitism of the Orthodox church was a well-known fact; even Patriarch Miron Cristea, who initially condemned A. C. Cuzas religious falsifications,
12 Pan, op. cit. p. 128
13 Ibidem
14 A.C.Cuza, Aprarea Naional, 1928, issue no. 16
CEC_konyv.indd 225
225
2016.06.10. 8:37:06
Churches Holocaust
later proceeded to set Cuza as an example for Romanian youth. However, Greek
Catholics did not consider this trend to be the one to pursue, probably partly
due to the competition they were in with Orthodoxy, in which they pronounced
many things done by Orthodoxy to be bad, if only by wishing to differ from them,
rather than with real conviction. However, Greek Catholics also used the rhetoric
of the age, recognising the existence of a Jewish issue for which they urged a
solution, but when it came to the means of finding the solution, they have always
emphasised the need for Christian, humane solutions, in significant departure
from the public thinking of the era.
226
CEC_konyv.indd 226
2016.06.10. 8:37:07
by Izabella Pter
CEC_konyv.indd 227
227
2016.06.10. 8:37:07
Churches Holocaust
228
CEC_konyv.indd 228
2016.06.10. 8:37:07
by Izabella Pter
a. Incitement to anti-Semitism
A part of the articles from 1920 and 1921 found is characterised by fierce antiSemitism, as they generally depict Jews in a negative tone, with disdain. On the
other hand, Jews are often identified with Bolsheviks and freemasons.
Here, scandalous news are published, such as the item on a red Jew who
had a statue of Judas of Iscariot erected in Russia,15, or that Georgy Chicherin,
Soviet minister for foreign affairs, threatened with war if Romania ceased to put an
end to its anti-Bolshevik propaganda. Naturally, there is no answer to such Jewish
impertinence.16 The article reporting the leader of Jewish Bolsheviks of Bessarabia, Abraham Bezate, called upon Jews to fight against the Romanian army that
united Bessarabia with Romania, which immediately put all Jews of Bessarabia in
the army of enemies.17
The ultimate outcome of these articles could be none other than they will not
rule on us as they did in Hungary. And those who do not like this are welcome to go
to Hungary or Palestine, we will even collect money to fund their travel.18
Identification of the Jewry with freemasonry which is, obviously, none other
than the Satans church aimed at setting up a world republic that destroys religions,
states and national armies under Jewish leadership, is a similar strain.19The harbingers of the Antichrist played an important role everywhere, were depicted as present wherever something bad happened, in the resolutions of Austria, Hungary and
Germany in 1918 and 1919 just as in the 1931 Spanish revolution and, of course,
the Soviet revolution.20
Unfortunately, this identification is very harmful because repetition fixes these
stereotypes, and from that point on, anything about freemasons is automatically
associated with Jewry, even though the word Jew does not appear in some of the
articles.
15 Unirea, 1921/40, p. 5
16 Unirea, 1921/35, p. 3
17 UnireaPoporului, 1920/6, p. 2
18 UnireaPoporului, 1920/5, p. 5
19 Unirea 1941/41, p. 4
20 Corneliu Zasloi, Precursoriilui Antihrist, Unirea, 1934/9, pp. 2-3
CEC_konyv.indd 229
229
2016.06.10. 8:37:07
Churches Holocaust
These articles encompass all sorts of topics, from warning believers not to
read the Jewish or Jewified (jidovit) press and heeding them to read only Christian
newspapers21, up to the wail that the numerous Jewish invaders threatened the
Romanian national character of Balzsfalva. An army of little Jews (jidnai), young
and old, with or without earlocks, live like in the Canaan, helped by the old Hungarian power and due to the indifference of the current Romanian power (...). This is
why action is needed against them to keep Balzsfalva the natural centre of our
Romanian church of pure air, as its founder intended.22
230
CEC_konyv.indd 230
2016.06.10. 8:37:07
by Izabella Pter
if the efforts are successful, and that no difficulties will be set in the course of issuing the passports required for travel.26
This issue was raised less frequently later on, although the question of how the
Jewrys dream of having its own homeland will be implemented when the source
of billions runs dry is asked with scepticism masked as objectivity,27 or reports are
published on the establishment of the Jerusalem cultural centre28, as well as on the
enormous surcharge at which Arabs sell barren lands to Jews29.
The last article of this nature was written in 1938 and discusses the possibility of setting up a Jewish state in South America, with rather a lot of scepticism.
However, the desire of getting rid of the Jews in the country, who represent a factor
that threatens Christians, lurks in the background of all these articles. Their ultimate
outcome is that though a Jewish state may be created in Palestine, Christian Bethlehem will continue to shine its blinding light on the world.30
CEC_konyv.indd 231
231
2016.06.10. 8:37:07
Churches Holocaust
Perhaps these are the articles where a consistent anti-Jewish policy appears
the most (naturally, other than the ideological disputes with L.A.N.C., to be discussed later). The author of the article, who chooses to remain anonymous, explains that this kind of protection may be achieved by the positive protection of
national values and forces, rather than by unfairly impeding others33. However, the
rest of the article fiercely contradicts the above. The author explains his hope that
the necessary pest removal appearing in the title as well will be efficient. It is not as
though we were anti-Semitic. We are not. But one must protest the invasion realised
by the infiltration of uninvited guests who have nothing to do with our land and our
spiritual heritage.34 The author calls upon domestic Jews, our Jews, to take part in
this protest, as they are interested in not becoming subject to all the negative feelings with which the public receives the invaders.
The problem with all these articles is the usual one: donning a guise of objectivity, it applies centuries-old stereotypes to Jews that readers are already familiar
with, and whatever positive is mentioned is negligible and crushed by the heap of
negative adjectives, meaning that it is actually the usual patterns that readers can
see in the texts.
Unfortunately, the ultimate outcome of these articles is what the title also stresses, namely, that pest removal is needed, and in the journalists opinion, the Minister of
Labours decree under which people of Romanian nationality may not work for Jewish
large enterprises or private individuals is nothing but a well-intended measure.35
Thus, there is actually a conflict between the Christian ethics of love cited
ever so often and the image of Jews emphasised by the articles, and the tension
thus created is far from being suitable for dampening emotions. Unfortunately,
the proportion of articles with a specific positive tone is negligible within the domain
of articles on Jews. In one of these reports with a positive tone, the chief rabbi of
Algiers shows an example of fraternity to Archbishop Leynaud. The archbishop received a donation of 700 francs for rebuilding the Catholic church of Fouka, which
had been set on fire.36
In most of the publications, however, Jews are presented in a positive light only
when their unity is to be stressed, and their evaluation may be resented in a negative context even then, as in the excerpt entitled Momente, published in issue 15 of
1933 of Unirea:
33 Ibidem.
34 Ibidem.
35 Unirea 1941/33, p. 4
36 Unirea 1935/20, p. 7
232
CEC_konyv.indd 232
2016.06.10. 8:37:07
by Izabella Pter
What a painful example the sons of Israel set for us with their effective unity. It
was sufficient to adopt a few more powerful measures against the Jews of Germany
to get world Jewry to move and to protest and to fill the five continents with wailing.
At the same time, Christian churches are aflame, the Goyim die by the hundreds in
the Soviet Union, in Mexico and Spain, and world press remains silent like a fish, as
though it were a minor matter, a little nothing worth even less than the chopped-off
earlocks of a bocher.37
CEC_konyv.indd 233
233
2016.06.10. 8:37:08
Churches Holocaust
a peaceful solution to the Jewish issue on a Christian basis, firmly condemning all
kinds of aggression, are important.
A brief discourse was published under the name Icran in 192142, which called
attention to the importance of national education, stressing the responsibility of
teachers, on the occasion of the start of the academic year:
The teacher has to distinguish between real and false patriotic feelings. He
should nurture the former by all means and on all possible occasions, and should
nip the latter in the bud.
As a result of false patriotism, a young person may believe the peak of his calling as Romanian to be the possibility of slandering the Jews at school or turning his
hatred against his co-workers of foreign nationality. He may experience the same in
public life, and will not notice that there is a difference between true patriotic feelings and patriotism as a means of political action.
True patriotism, like true religion, is a deep emotion stemming from love, and
therefore, it manifests itself in work that contributes to the good and happiness of
the homeland [...] Xenophobia is just an unnatural and passing stage of the human soul. At school, patriotism should not be demonstrated by xenophobia and
violent acts.
The same concept can be seen in each of the writings published over the
years: the Jewish issue is a real and urgent problem, but the attempts to solve it are
far from the Christian spirit and are therefore to be discarded. In August 1923, a
longer article was published on the front page, discoursing on the issue on the basis of an essay written by Nicolae Iorga. In his essay, writing about Fascia Naional
Romn43, Iorga states that this imported new Fascist movement is none other than
a singular example of a societys fall. And, because it will not hurt to express an
opinion on this issue, the articles anonymous author responds to the charges proposed by Iorga. As far as we are concerned, we are very sad about all the wrong
that has nested in the country, the reason for which is actually the harmful effect the
Jewish element has on the evolution of public affairs. It is not known just who this
we is, whether it is Greek Catholics in general, the Greek Catholic church, or just
the papers editors. This we surfaces several times in articles of a similar nature.
Everyone will understand if we are unable to side with those whose entire morality
and mentality have a disruptive impact on all Christian societies.
42 Icran: coalaipatriotismul. Foia Unirii, Unirea, 1921/35, p. 3
43 A Fascia Naional Romn was a small Fascist group in the Romania of the 1920s, founded by Titus Panaitescu Vifor. The group later merged into the L.A.N.C. set up by A. C. Cuza.
234
CEC_konyv.indd 234
2016.06.10. 8:37:08
by Izabella Pter
Even so, they cannot affirm a movement that would take society on a path to
violence because violent manifestations may cause great economic damage to the
country, considering that as a result, influential economic and political operators
abroad would withdraw their support from Romania. This is why the only way to fight
the situation and the only feasible way they push for, is to elevate societys morals:
to spread a healthy Christian mentality with the churchs help, because it would be
such a shame for a victorious people such as the Romanian people to opt for only
violence as the way to eliminate wrongs.44
However, as the fascist actions increased in Europe and Romania, the Jewish
issue and the potential responses to the problem were also covered by Unirea more
frequently. One of the strongest advocates of the issue was Prof. Augustin Popa, the
editor in chief of the newspaper, who published several articles on the topic. In 1926,
Popa raised the issue of anti-Semitism in several articles. It is a new sect. In his article
written under the title of A.C.Cuza revidelt keresztnysge [A.C. Cuza Revised Christianity] he explained why that political group could not be supported. As the movement
is Christian in its name too, we also should have been among its first warriors as we
distribute the Christian idea officially. However, this did not happen because the party
lacked a positive and constructive Christian social and political programme from the
beginning and used merely negative and destructive slogans. Popa analysed the Christian programme outlined by A.C.Cuza with acid sarcasm stating that it was nothing else
but the falsification and mixing up of Christian principles. According to Cuza, the Father
sent Jesus to the Earth to fight against the bad and the Satan who was manifested in
the Jews. Consequently, Jesus came to eliminate Judaism. The Christian theology of
twenty centuries was guilty because they did not understand the true essence of Christianity and did not continue Jesus fight against Judaism and thereby helped the Judaism, eliminated by Jesus conquer the entire world. However, these principles mean the
falsification and misinterpretation of Christianity, believes Popa, and A.C.Cuza is just a
rationalist of a sect or even more a simple politician. The Christian League which takes
inspiration from the anti-Christian aberrations of Mr. Cuza is not Christian itself and has
no Christian programme either. It is an anti-Christian sect or rather an anti-Semitic political party, even though it denies that attribute.45
Nevertheless, Popa emphasises the following: please understand: we did not
make any declaration about the Jewish issue. It exists and Mr. Cuza can object to
that as much as he wants and as much as Mr. O. Goga allows him. Naturally, he can
also come up with feasible solutions. He should do that in his own name though and
should not try to dress up his own nonsense in the flag of Christianity.46
44 Unirea 1923/34, p.1.
45 Augustin Popa, O sectnou. Cretinismulrevizuit aldluiA.C.Cuza, Unirea 1926/23, p.1
46 Ibidem.
CEC_konyv.indd 235
235
2016.06.10. 8:37:08
Churches Holocaust
In the last Christmas issue of volume 1926, a clarification by Dr. Titus Malaiu,
one of the theoreticians of Liga was also published.47With that contribution, Malaiu
intended to avoid all the attacks that their small Kuzist group suffered48 from the
non-Christian Hydra. His article revealed that he considered Augustin Popa one
of his challengers because he listed the injuries from his article quoted above, i.e.,
their noisy and fighting Christianity missed a positive Christian social and political
programme. Naturally, he interprets that as an attack in the back, but also considers
it important to state the following: even if it seemed later that being anti-Semitic was
shameful, in fact, filo-Semitism was the true disgrace for a Christian having some
self-esteem.
Then he listed arguments in six columns based on which the Jews had to be
condemned, listing the potential methods of fighting against them and concluding
that anti-Semitism was in fact an obligation for each soldier of Christianity. The second part of the article contains the response by Augustin Popa to Malaius article.
Popa starts his response by stating that it would be true irony if they threw mud at a
Christian flag. However, to Malaius question as to whether the League was Christian or anti-Christian, he only had one answer: in fact neither of the two because
it was only one anti-Semitic party according to any definition. At the same time,
the League, which promoted itself as a Christian party, was not less Christian than
any of the Romanian civic parties. The programme of each large party contained
points similar to those of the League programme: respect for religion, protection of
churches and remuneration to the priests. However, all parties respected Christianity and only League took the liberty of revising and distorting Christianity in a way
that it should certify the anti-Semitic doctrine of Cuza. Consequently, not League s
programme was based on Christian principles, but Christianity was modified to suit
the political programme. Concerning the fight against the Jews, it should not even
be mentioned: hatred, violence and noise can never be weapons of a Christian.
Consequently, League is distinguished from the other parties by its anti-Semitism and not by the Christian thought. Every second word of their programme was
against the Jews and their most important programme objective was to provide a
recipe for destroying that national disaster.
However, at the end of the article, Popa applied a master stroke and described
his ideas on the Jewish issue:
The Jewish issue is an acute problem in our country. It is not a bad thing to look
for a solution for it. Other parties are also aware of it. I, however, do not agree with the
47 Augustin Popa, Precizrintrochestie de importan, Unirea 1926/52, p. 6
48 Words used by Malaiu
236
CEC_konyv.indd 236
2016.06.10. 8:37:08
by Izabella Pter
extermination methods proposed by Mr. Cuza, quite rightly. But whatever is the case,
it is not shameful to fight for your nation even if others consider you anti-Semitic.
And then he leaves the issue open: based on what is said, the readers can
understand why the Hungarian and Romanian Greek Orthodox and Orthodox press
all attack League. On this basis, the readers can decide what the obligation of the
church is: to join in under the flag of the League or to remain in sinful neutrality.
This conclusion was not even close to the decisiveness of the article published six
months before and did not provide any guidance for decision; in fact it left it to the
readers to make their own decisions.
The newspaper preserved that moderate anti-Semitism and still kept it when
violent anti-Semitic ideas began to spread more intensively in Romania too as the
German and Austrian national socialist parties gained strength. The authors published slighting contemptuous articles about the supporters of the above movements, which was also revealed by the titles of the articles: Joy of the wise, Harmful
exaggerations, Chauvinism and Christian belief.
Some of them in 1933 quoted Iorga again and welcomed the brave statements
by the Archbishop of Paris in relation to the attacks against the Jews and emphasised that the Christian Rome was the only religion that respected the right of all
languages to life, had mercy for every person and liked the diversity that could be
observed everywhere under the Sun, in the sons of each nation, whom it was able
to embrace with motherly love.49
At the same time, they strongly objected to any statements that attacked Christianity under the protective idea of excessive nationalism.
Loving your people as a Christian is natural and is a Christian virtue. To boast
of it is revolting. Being lost in vague theories about nationalism and replacing that
feeling by religion itself is a serious error and harmful aberration.50
The famous writer IoanBrtescu-Voineti is also criticised for his aberrations.51
He denied Christianity because the Jews boasted that they gave it to the world and
returned to Christianity before the Jews (sic!). He opted for Christianity that was
exercised in the Roman provinces 2000 years B.C.
49 ovinismulicredinacretin. Unirea 1933/16-17, p. 5
50 Exagerripgubitoare, Unirea 1937/31, pp. 2-3
51 IoanAlexandruBrtescu-Voineti (1868-1946), a Romanian writer, famous for his tales written for children. He
was the secretary of the Romanian Lower House of Parliament and a member of the Romanian Academy, who
was awarded the National Prose Prize in 1945.
CEC_konyv.indd 237
237
2016.06.10. 8:37:08
Churches Holocaust
238
CEC_konyv.indd 238
2016.06.10. 8:37:09
by Izabella Pter
baptism. That, however, often involved confrontation with the government and the
Orthodox Church, which the representatives of the two churches assumed.
The restriction of the conversion of Jews to Christianity relates to a speech
delivered by Ion Antonescu at the meeting of the Council of Ministers on 4 March
1941. He said that with the conversion the Jews sneaked into leading positions and
therefore a law had to be adopted to put a stop to that.54 In response to that invitation, the Law Decree 711/1941 was adopted, prohibiting Jews to convert to Christian religions by modifying the cult law. Thus the following paragraph was added at
the end of Article 44 of the cult law: individuals of Jewish religion shall not benefit
from the provisions of this law55.
In fact the law decree is contrary to the Romanian Constitution56, which guarantees the freedom of conscience. It is also contrary to the provisions of the Concordat of 1927, which recognises the right of the Catholic Church to act as a missionary.57
Andrea Cassulo Apostolic Nuncio sent a series of submissions to the Ministry
of Foreign Affairs in order to have the right of Jews to convert approved. All those
complaints were rejected though, and in order to apply further restrictions, they
introduced the misdemeanour of unlawful conversion, sanctioned in Article 309
of the Criminal Code. That related to the punishment of religious leaders who accepted candidates who did not satisfy the legal formalities. The sanctions could lead
to the dissolution of the congregation58. Nevertheless, contrary to the Orthodox
Church, the Roman and Greek Catholic Church did not allow to be intimidated.
The conversion of the Jews continued. They complied with one aspect: the internal
spiritual need for conversion and baptised everybody, even though the new religion
was not recognised by the national legislation.
54 Extract from the minutes of the meeting of the Council of Ministers of 4 March 1941, called by Marshal Ion
Antonescu in order to prevent mass conversion of the Jews. Benjamin, Lya: Dreptul la convertire i statutul
evreilor convertii n perioada regimului antonescian, Studia et Acta Historiae Iudaeorum Romaniae, vol. III,
Hasefer, Bucuresti, 1998, p. 159
55 ComisiaInternaionalpentruStudiereaHolocaustuluinRomnia: Documente, Ed. Polirom, Iai, 2005, p. 161
56 Article 10 of the Romanian Constitution of 1938: Each Romanian citizen is entitled to the right of conscience,
free employment, free education, freedom of press, freedom of assembly, freedom of association and all the
other freedoms that originate from the rights specified by law.
57 GeorgetaPan, Antisemitismulreligios din perspectivaHolocaustului - analizcomparativ: Polonia, Ungaria, Romnia doctorate thesis, p. 203 Article 18 of the Concordat: The Catholic Church has a right to provide
any kind of religious assistance.
58 Minutes of the meeting of the Supreme Legal Council of the Romanian State of 11 July 1941 Problemaevreiasc,
272.
CEC_konyv.indd 239
239
2016.06.10. 8:37:09
Churches Holocaust
According to the statistics of the Ministry of Culture, the Roman and Greek
Catholics had not stopped their missionary work by 12 February 1943 and by the
time the statistics were published, 331 Jewish families converted to Roman Catholicism and 337 families were baptised to become Greek Catholics.59 Unfortunately,
however, that figure is misleading, because we do not know the start date of these
conversions, as the document does not specify them. Nevertheless, the Jews who
converted to Catholicism were in a slightly better situation than those who opted
for a different religion: those who converted to Calvinism were transported to Bug
pursuant to one of the decrees of Ion Antonescu.60
The government looked for a compromise with the Catholic churches on the
Jewish issue: the Ministry recognises the right of the Roman Catholic Church to
christen Jews without that switch in religion having any impact on the civic position
of the individual though.61
Even so, the two Catholic churches did not tolerate the infringement of their
rights included in the Concordat and continued their missionary work, but when the
authorities demanded to inspect the documents concerning conversions, the Roman and Greek Catholic Churches rejected that intervention. The Catholic Church
declared that they would only be willing to disclose the names of Jews who converted to Catholicism if the authorities gave up the idea of conducting direct search
in the archives.62
A change occurred in christening only when Act 800 of 6 December of 1943
amended Article 450 of the Criminal Code: Any priest of any congregation that
christens 63 or marries parties without fulfilling the formalities required under the civil
laws commits the offence of unlawful christening or marriage and is punishable with
imprisonment for one to six months and a fine of RON 10,000-25,00064.
Interestingly, the same issue was hardly covered in Greek Catholic publications. It is likely that the directives on christening are included more in the bishops
circulars, but they are not available for research from the period in question.
59 RezumatulConsiliului de ordineintern. Extrasprivindindicaiaconductoruluistatuluitransmisautoritilorlocale
pentrumpiedicareatreceriievreilor la catolicism. Problemaevreiasc, Documentul 156, p. 492.
60 Minutes of the meeting of the Supreme Legal Council of the Romanian State of 11 July 1941 Problemaevreiasc,
p. 272.
61 GyL, P. 28 cs., 591/ 13 February 1943
62 Jean Ancel, Documents Concerning the Fate of the Romanian Jewry During the Holocaust, Beate Klarsfeld
Foundation, Ierusalim, 1986, vol. 10, doc. 291, p. 695.
63 The signatory is highlighted.
64 That amount equalled a good salary for approximately two months.
240
CEC_konyv.indd 240
2016.06.10. 8:37:09
by Izabella Pter
The newspapers published only small neutral articles covering the amendments
in the law and referred to the topic, which was one of the important problems of the
Jewish issue in 1941-44 only in a short article. That article also states that since
the change in power the Hungarians following the religion of Moses were about to
be kicked out from Hungary. However, as they were informed that their situation
could change if they converted to Christianity, thousands of Jews were queuing in
front of churches and parishes (primarily Catholic ones) in order to convert to Christianism. That, of course, is impossible without prior adequate education.65
It seems that one of the most important problems of the Jewish issue took
place almost without any media reflection in Balzsfalva as well as in Szamosjvr.
Believers could also read one small article, written in a neutral tone, about
the withdrawal of the decree prohibiting the conversion of the Jews. The article
stated that, pursuant to the law decree published in issue No. 256 of the Official
Gazette, the law restricting the conversion of the Jews was withdrawn, therefore
Jews who completed 18 years of age, were again permitted by law to convert to
another religion provided that they fulfilled the formalities specified under the act
on cult.66
CEC_konyv.indd 241
241
2016.06.10. 8:37:10
Churches Holocaust
One of the important actors of these alleged rescue operations was priest
Alexandru Nicula operating with Raoul orban and Iuliu Hossu. The priests allegedly helped rescuing hundreds of Jews and agreed to be the godfather of a lot
of Jews. Priest Nicula was the secretary of Iuliu Hossu for two years, until he became archdeacon of Cluj. According to one of his stories, they collected 200 rich
and influential Jews of Cluj during one night and took them to a building on Iailor
Road. They were visited on the following day by the bishop and priest Nicula. In
fear of deportation, the Jews practically begged them on their knees to convert
to Christianity.68This statement by priest Nicula was not supported by any tangible
evidence and was also questioned by Robert Schwartz, president of the Jewish
community of Cluj. He has no doubt about the merits of the Greek Catholic bishop
and archdeacon in their endeavours to rescue Jews, but has doubts about whether
the Jews would so easily give up their religion.
Another aspect of the Jew rescuing activity of Archbishop Iuliu Hossu should
also be proved. Moshe Carmilly Weinberger, chief rabbi of the reformed synagogue
of Cluj, mentioned the Jew rescue activity of Iuliu Hossu: it was a generally known
fact that Iuliu Hossu, Romanian bishop seated in Cluj-Gherla, supplied thousands
of Jews with papers in co-operation with the Romanian authorities in order to help
them avoid being deported to the extermination camps.69
However, this generally known fact has not yet been ultimately proved, just
as we know about the bishop circular of Iuliu Hossu in which he invited the Romanians of Transylvania to assist the Jews only from the articles of Moshe CarmillyWeinberger.I am turning to you, honourable brothers and dear sons: Help the Jews
not only in your mind but also with a sacrifice, bearing in mind that we cannot do
anything else but provide Christian and Romanian assistance, stemming from warm
human love. Let assistance be the primary task of these hours.70
The researchers have questioned the existence of these documents on several
occasions and so far nothing has been found proving the authenticity of the circular.
Having reviewed the newspapers of the diocese of Cluj-Szamosjvr, we wanted to
reveal more about the issue, hoping that we would find references in the columns
of the publications that could prove the intentions of the Transylvanian bishop in that
regard. Interestingly, however, the Curierul Cretin fortnightly official religious paper of the diocese of Cluj-Szamosjvr, published in Szamosjvr, often presented
the bishops speeches given on the New Year, at Easter, Christmas and on other
68 MonikaKrajnik, PrinteleNicula, Schindler de subFeleac, Adevrul, 8 December 2010, http://adevarul.ro/
locale/cluj-napoca/parintele-nicula-schindler-feleac-1_50ae3a5a7c42d5a6639adbc9/index.html
69 Moshe Carmilly-Weinberger: t a szabadsg fel [Road to Freedom], Cluj, 1999, p. 115
70 Ibidem
242
CEC_konyv.indd 242
2016.06.10. 8:37:10
by Izabella Pter
holidays but contained no reference at all to the Jews. All sermons reflected on the
particular religious holidays and even the ones that referred to the horrible events
of the war did so only at the level of religion. The word Jew is almost completely
missing from the vocabulary of the newspaper as if they did not exist. Compared to
how intensively the newspapers of Balzsfalva covered the Jewish issue, it seems
that the newspapers of the diocese of Cluj-Szamosjvr deliberately avoided using even the word Jew. The analysis of the newspaper Viaacretin, publised by
Vasile Chindri in Cluj, could perhaps help a little in the issue but we found so few
copies of it that we were unable to draw any conclusions yet.
Summary
After the analysis of articles of five publications dedicated to the Jews and antiSemitism, accessible to us, we have reached the following conclusions:
1. The Greek Catholic newspapers tried to become the mouthpiece of the
Romanian national awareness in gaining the primary position against the Orthodox
Church. Consequently, their tone often contained features of nationalism and the
rhetoric of religious anti-Judaism and anti-Semitism may also be observed in them.
However, the majority of their articles were not aimed against the Jews but primarily against the Orthodox Church, secondarily against other nationalities, primarily
against the Hungarians. That tendency was reflected mainly in the years following
the Treaty of Trianon. In those cases, the Jews were often in the crossfire of attacks
also because they accepted a common fate with the Hungarians.
2. In fact, the Jewish issue occurred mostly in the newspapers of Balzsfalva,
where the editors also expressed their opinions. The reflected position was also
likely to reflect the opinion of the particular editor, which could be one of the reasons why articles about the Jews appeared more after the Treaty of Trianon and
during the dissemination of the Fascist ideas. Often it is impossible to know to what
extent the opinions expressed in the newspapers reflected a single Jewish policy
or to what extent they represented the opinion of the Greek Catholic Church on the
issue or perhaps were only the expressions of the individual views of the particular
editors.
The actual political situation always influences the position expressed in relation to the Jewish issue but it is a generally accepted standpoint that the Jewish
Issue exists and should be resolved urgently because the Jews had a bad influence
on the Christian spirit of the country; the process of the dissemination of Jews
CEC_konyv.indd 243
243
2016.06.10. 8:37:10
Churches Holocaust
should be reverted but in the opinion expressed by them they were against the antiSemitism of the Orthodox Church that served the state as well as the extreme views
of the Fascist-type political parties.
In this case, however, it is important to note that an opinion is expressed on
this issue only when the rhetoric represented by the political parties also represented an attack against the Christian churches and the distortion of the Christian
doctrines. Therefore, the expression of this opinion could in fact be considered
defence, which was not aimed at speaking up for the Jews but at protecting the
doctrines of their own church.
3. All in all, we cannot state that they would have been more anti-Semitic than
generally observed in that period, they only used the anti-Semitic rhetoric of the
times and in general were not malevolent. Nonetheless, as an opinion forming institution, the church has always had a huge impact on the way of thinking of the
congregation, thus contributing to the dissemination of the anti-Semitism, which
was already present in the Romanian society. Considering though that the Orthodox Church served the anti-Semitic governments and parties in almost everything,
in a strongly anti-Semitic atmosphere and in the flow of hatred speech, the Greek
Catholics were definitely moderate.
244
CEC_konyv.indd 244
2016.06.10. 8:37:10
by Izabella Pter
Bibliography
Documents of the Archives of the Bishop of Gyulafehrvr
Gergely Jen, A Magyar Katolikus Pspki Kar, az Apostoli Szentszk s a
So, [The Hungarian Catholic Order of Bishops, the Holy See and the Shoah]
http://www.magyarpaxromana.hu/kiadvanyok/soa/gergely_jeno.htm
GergelyJen, Azerdlyigrgkatolikusromnegyhz [The Transylvanian Greek Catholic Romanian Church], Regio-KisebbsgtudomnyiSzemle 1991, vol. 2, No. 3
Lukcs Imre Rbert, A grgkatolikusok helyzete Erdlyben az els vilghbor
utn [Situation of Greek Catholics in Transylvania after World War One], http://
ias.jak.ppke.hu/hir/ias/20101sz/04.pdf
Mihai Brbulescu, Dennis Deletant, Keith Hitchins, erbanPapcostea, Pompiliu Teodor IstoriaRomniei, Corint Publishers, Bucharest, 2005.
MonikaKrajnik, ,PrinteleNicula, Schindler de subFeleac, Adevrul, 8 December
2010http://adevarul.ro/locale/cluj-napoca/parintele-nicula-schindlerfeleac-1_50ae3a5a7c42d5a6639adbc9/index.html
Randolph L. Braham, Erdly zsidsga: opportunista trtnelmi beszmolk
[The Jews of Transylvania: Opportunist Historic Reports], Korunk, October 1997
http://www.korunk.org/?q=node/8&ev=1997&honap=10&cikk=6170Silvestru
Augustin Prundu - ClementePlaianu, Catolicismiortodoxieromneasc, Scurtistoricalbisericiiromneunite, Casadeediturviaacretin, Cluj-napoca1994
PirigyiIstvn, A grg katolikus magyarsg trtnete,[History of the Greek
Catholic Hungarians] Grgkat. Hittud. Fiskola, 1982
A.C.Cuza, AprareaNaional, 1928, No. 16
ComisiaInternaionalpentruStudiereaHolocaustuluinRomnia:
Ed. Polirom, Iai, 2005
Documente,
CEC_konyv.indd 245
245
2016.06.10. 8:37:10
Churches Holocaust
Quoted articles
Cultura cretin
3 March 1924 Predic pentru Dumineca a patra a postului mare.- Prof Iuliu
Major pp. 92-96
5 May 1936 Emigraia sionist (n) p. 316
Unirea
9 March 1920 /16. 0 primejdie pentru caracterul romnesc al Blajului, n.a. p. 1
16/29 July 1921 Pentru ara Sfnta n.a. p. 2
27 August 1921 / 35 Foia unirii - coala i patriotismul Icran p. 2
1 October 1921 / 40 Un monument pentru Iuda Iscarioteanul tiri mrunte, p. 4
8 July 1922 /27.Revista Bisericeasc n.a. p. 3
16 September 1922 / 37 Un congres sionist - tiri mrunte p. 4
25 August 1923 / 34 Un cuvnt de alarm n.a. p. 1
20 November - 7 December 1924 / 51-52 Lumin i umbr Foia Unirii n.a. p. 2
5 December 1925 / 49 Antisemitismul a.n - p. 1
5 July 1926 / 23 O sect nou - Cretinismul revizuit al dlui A. C. Cuza De
ce nu putem sprijini L. A. N. C. Compromiterea unei lozinci, care ne va trebui
ca mine - Dr. Augustin Popa, p. 1
246
CEC_konyv.indd 246
2016.06.10. 8:37:10
by Izabella Pter
CEC_konyv.indd 247
247
2016.06.10. 8:37:11
CEC_konyv.indd 248
2016.06.10. 8:37:11
Attila Simon
CEC_konyv.indd 249
249
2016.06.10. 8:37:11
Churches Holocaust
Slovakia towards the Jewish issue. These two denominations have been selected
mainly because the Catholic and the Lutheran churches covered the majority of the
Slovak society, since - according to the figures of the 1921 census - 71.6% of the
population of Slovakia were Catholics, 12% belonged to the Lutheran Church of
the Augsburg Confession, while Israelites made up 4.1% of the population.2On the
other hand, the two churches had a fundamentally different relationship to the current political government, which led to different stands regarding the Jewish issue.
The Slovak Lutherans were important supporters of the Czechoslovak government
of the first republic, while they played the part of a tolerated internal enemy in the
Tiso era. On the other hand, the Catholics opposed the Prague Government at the
time of the first republic, but were considered the major supporters of the system
from 1938 to 1945.
Thanks to the liberal attitude of the Czechoslovak Republic, the contemporary
press including denominational papers was quite rich. If local bulletins published
by some parishes or papers published for less than 3 years are disregarded, the
number of printed documents with Catholic connections published from 1919 to
1944 is still over fifty.3 They however included a significant number of religious papers in which topics relating to public life were completely missing. With regard to
public life, the daily and weekly papers with connections to different Catholic-style
parties represented the extremes. This analysis will cover Slovk, the official paper
of Hlinkas Peoples Party having the largest electoral basis. Slovk was published
from 1919 to the spring of 1945 at Rzsahegy (Ruzomberok) considered to be the
headquarters of the Slovak Peoples Party of Hlinka. Although it was a political daily,
it was the sounding board of a party that did not only have close links to Catholic
principles in its programme but its leading personalities included a high number of
Catholic priests.4 The first then second President of the party, Andrej Hlinka and
Jozef Tiso were also Catholic priests. Especially in the case of Hlinka it was true
that he held the paper under strict control, and it could only publish articles that corresponded to his ideas.
In addition to Slovk, we focused in our analysis to the two Catholic religious
papers that may have been the best representatives of the contemporary church.
The first of them was the semi-official paper of the Slovak Catholic clergy, Duchovnpastier (Pastor) that has been published since 1917 up to the present. The
first editor-in-chief of the monthly published by the Saint Adalbert Society was the
2 uchov, Xnia: Prlohy I - Obyvatestvo. InZemko, Milan (ed.): Slovensko v eskoslovensku 1918 1939.
Veda, Bratislava, 2004, 528.
3 A list of contemporary denominational papers is attached. The source of the data is: Kipsov, Mria (zost.): Bibliografiaslovenskch a inoreovch novn a asopisov z rokov 19191938. Matica Slovensk, Martin, 1968.
4 With regard to Hlinkas Peoples Party, cf. Letz, Robert a kol.:Slovenskudovstrana v dejinch 19051945.
Matica Slovensk, Martin, 2006.
250
CEC_konyv.indd 250
2016.06.10. 8:37:11
by Attila Simon
Catholic Priest, Jozef Buday, who also acted as a leading personality in the Hlinka
Party, being its representative in Parliament for many years, while later on Andrej
Hlinka - among others - also edited the paper. The Duchovnpastier published holiday and weekday sermons, catechisms, news related to the Slovak dioceses and to
the Catholicism of the world, literary works and a lower number of writings related
to public topics.
Another important paper was the monthly Katolickjednota (Catholic Unity)
published in Nagyszombat (Trnava) from 1920 to 1945, by a charity organisation
of the same name of a Catholic nature and targeting mainly women. The monthly
was mainly intended for women readers.
In addition to those two important religious monthlies, we included in our analysis a paper of college students with Catholic connections named Svoradov published in the students hostel of the same name. The students hostel Svoradov
was run by the Catholic Church and it was an important spiritual basis of the young
Slovak intellectuals who were to serve the Slovak Peoples Party of Hlinka. The journal was published from 1931 to 1940 initially six times a year and later eight times
a year.
The last Catholic paper analysed was the monthly named j let [New Life]
published from 1932 to 1944. The monthly published in Kosice was the paper of
the Reformed Catholic movement of the Hungarian national minorities in Slovakia
called Prohszka Ottokr Krk Szvetsge [Federation of Ottokr Prohszka
Groups]. Elemr Rdy and Ferenc Sink were its best known editors. The monthly
continued to be published after Kosice was annexed to Hungary in 1938.
Except for Slovk, we reviewed all available volumes of the five Catholic papers analysed, so in that case we can offer a possibly complete image of the articles dealing with the topic. With regard to the daily Slovk, we could not undertake
reviewing all issues of the 25 years involved. About a quarter of all issues were
reviewed keeping in mind not to omit a single year or a single month. We believe
the sample we took can be regarded representative and the conclusions drawn are
solidly founded.
In the course of reviewing the above papers, we have found 55 articles in the
journal Duchovnpastier, 22 ones in Katolickjednota, 243 in the daily Slovk, 1 in
the paper Svoradov and 16 in the paper j let that dealt with the Jewish community
and discussed it from some aspect. In that way, those 337 articles make up the
subject of this analysis.
CEC_konyv.indd 251
251
2016.06.10. 8:37:11
Churches Holocaust
Periodization
If you analyse the distribution of the above more than 300 documents in time and
also by their content, you can find that the Jewish issue was present all the time in
the period investigated (19191944) both within the Church and in the Catholic
public discourse, although its intensity and charge were different in the different
periods. Its intensity and shift in content was in close correlation with the political
evolution of (Czecho)Slovakia. Accordingly, the following four periods can be differentiated to offer an easier overview of the topic (being aware, however, that it
is subjective as every periodization is, and the end of an era and the beginning of
a new one do not in fact mean sharp transition; they are rather points in a longer
process picked at random):
1. 19191924
2. 19251932
3. 19331938
4. 19381944
The first 5 years (19191924) following the establishment of Czechoslovakia was the period of building and solidifying the republic. It was also a time (similarly
to other European states) of a re-start after the war, of social unrest triggered by the
war and the Bolshevik revolutions and a period of social and political reflection in
Slovakia. Add to this the national revolution in Slovakia that followed the dissolution
of the historic Hungarian Kingdom and the birth of Czechoslovakia, which increased
social tension.5 This economic and social context had an impact on the Jewish issue by itself ; however, it is important to note that the 1918/19 change of regime
in Slovakia was accompanied by violent anti-Semitic acts right from the beginning. They were mostly limited to looting, but they caused loss of life in some cases
as well.6 At the beginning they were instinctive acts triggered by the deterioration of
public order and the poor supplies of food, but the second phase of anti-Jewish
movements was already encouraged by the Slovak intellectuals and the public
authorities fresh in power.7At that time, the national issue was the primary motivating force, since the Jewish community have always been regarded by Slovak
nationalism to be an alien body supporting the efforts of magyarization. This is
proved by the following lines by Antonn tefnek, one of the founders of Slovak
sociology and a defining personality of contemporary political life in Slovakia: The
5 Regarding the different aspects of the contemporary evolution of future Slovakia that had been an organic part
of historical Hungary before 1918, cf. Szarka, Lszl (ed.): A multi-ethnic Region and Nation-State in EastCentral Europe. New York, Boulder Co., 2011.
6 Regarding documents on anti-Jewish movements, an important source is: Medveck, Karol Anton: Slovensk
prevrat I-IV. Bratislava, 1930.
7 Jelnek, Jeajahu Andrej: Dvidova hviezda pod Tatrami. idia na Slovensku v 20. storo. Praha, 2009, 124.
252
CEC_konyv.indd 252
2016.06.10. 8:37:12
by Attila Simon
Jews were always an alien body in the regions populated by them. They lived among
us as foreigners, they had a different language, a different religion and they made
business and behaved in a different manner. They fully exploited the advantages
originating from the political protection of the ruling Hungarian race, the economic
underdevelopment of Slovaks, their natural tolerance and the carelessness of both
simple people and the intelligentsia as well () It is a historical fact that our cities
have become magyarized so quickly because the Jews provided social support
promoting dogged but silent de-nationalising activities among the Slovaks in the
fields of language, economy and culture.8
As a result, a fairly openly expressed anti-Jewish atmosphere was present in
the Slovak society in the period from 1919 to 1924 (although with decreasing intensity). It is reflected by the media reviewed since taking into account annual averages the Jewish community as a topic was the second most frequently mentioned in
the first of the four periods. If you analyse the content of the documents involved, it
is clearly seen that the assessment of the Jewish community was the most negative
in this period, at the same time, the linguistic tools used in the documents involved
were the rudest and least sophisticated.
By the middle of the 1920s Czechoslovakia had been consolidated both with
regard to its foreign and domestic policy; living standards had increased and ethnic
tensions had been eased. At the same time, the Jewish community had accepted
the new state and responded to legal certainty with loyalty. The Prague Government and the majority of the Czech and Slovak society welcomed the step-by-step
dissimilation of the Jewish community from the Hungarian minority.9 The majority of
the Jews living on the territory of future Slovakia reported speaking Hungarian as
their mother tongue in 1910. In 1930, on the other hand, most of them said they
belonged to the Israelite minority or were Czechoslovaks and only a small part said
they were Hungarians.10Naturally, Slovak nationalists wanted more; they wanted the
Jews to be actually assimilated to the Slovaks, which was a difficult process with a
slow start. It lacked - particularly in the first years of the republic - a proper motivation since the Jewish community did not perceive that becoming Slovak meant a
step forward in society. Lacking that motivation, the Jewish community - irrespective
of its reported nationality - continued to speak Hungarian and was a player in the
Hungarian cultural space.
8 Quoted from the book by tefnek; Zklady sociografie Slovenska [Foundation of sociography in Slovakia] published in 1945 by Mlynrik, Jn: Dejiny idu na Slovensku. Praha, Academia, 2005, p. 71.
9 Regarding the relationship of the Jewish community in Slovakia and the Hungarian society in Slovakia, cf.: Attila
Simon: Ketts szortsban. A dl-szlovkiai zsidsg Trianon s Auschwitz kztt [In a double grip. The Jews of
Southern Slovakia from Trianon to Auschwitz]. Frum Trsadalomtudomnyi Szemle, 2014, Vol. 4. pp. 316.
10 At the time of the 1930 census, 53% of those identifying themselves as Israelites reported to belong to the
Jewish national minority and 32% to the Czechoslovak nation. Stn lidu v republice eskoslovensk ze dne
1. prosince 1930. Dl I. Praha, SS, 1934, p. 106.
CEC_konyv.indd 253
253
2016.06.10. 8:37:12
Churches Holocaust
254
CEC_konyv.indd 254
2016.06.10. 8:37:12
by Attila Simon
11 Regarding the anti-Semitic politics of the Slovak State of the time, cf. Niansk, Eduard: Nacizmus, holokaust, slovensktt.Kalligram, Bratislava, 2010.
CEC_konyv.indd 255
255
2016.06.10. 8:37:13
Churches Holocaust
256
CEC_konyv.indd 256
2016.06.10. 8:37:13
by Attila Simon
intrigue, he also emphasises that Christians should be pleased with the adjacent
conversion and repentance of the Jews instead of hating them.
The Jews were most often mentioned in the journal Duchovnpastier in the
column In the Catholic world. In it, there were an outstandingly high number of
news and information on the Jews immigrating into Palestine. The paper regarded
the expansion in Palestine as a mixed blessing. With regard to Palestine and immigration there - that appeared as a topic in all the papers reviewed some writings
focused on the drawbacks, but most of them took an adverse view on the process
(almost out of reflex). Many objections voiced related to the immigration to Palestine, among them the accusation that the Jews - with their traditional spirit of hoarding will push Christians out of their businesses in that land,14 and also that Zionists continuously insult and provoke Christians and fail to respect their rights. 15 In
connection with alleged attacks on Christian values, the articles in Duchovnpastier
mentioned above compare the situation to the conquest of the Seldzhuk Turks in the
Middle Ages and to their behaviour and also raise the option that another Crusade
needs to be organised not against the Turks but against the Jews this time.16
The summary of a report by an Italian monk in the Holy Land is the odd one
out of all texts related to Palestine, because it does not only report about the Jews
buying lands in the Holy Land without any negative connotations, but he underlines
that the Jews will certainly take better care of the land than the Arabs did.17
Although the re-population of Palestine by Jews was not very welcome for the
Slovak Catholic public opinion, the option that it could also involve the exodus of a
part of the Slovak Jewish community seemed to be a good idea for many. So when
in 1923, 35 Slovak families left for the Holy Land, a commentary in the daily Slovk
expressed disappointment that the figure is not larger by some zeros.18 In 1937, the
same daily - probably responding to contemporary international news - wrote it does
not matter where the Jews are moving, to Palestine, to Madagascar or Birobidzhan,
the important thing is that they should leave.19
In texts about Jews in other European countries, the Soviet Union played a
major part because it was supposed to prove the statement repeated many times by
Slovak anti-Semitism that Bolshevism is basically the Jews ideology.
14 (Z katolckeho sveta) Palestina-Seldukia. In Duchovn pastier, 15.03.1922. p. 53.
15 Dr. Zlato, J: V Palestne niet nboenskho pokoja. In Duchovn pastier, 01.02.1925. p. 910; Palestna. In
Katolick jednota. 1937/2. p. 1819.
16 (Z katolckeho sveta) Palestina-Seldukia. In Duchovn pastier, 15.03.1922. p. 53.
17 idia a Arabi vo Sv. Zemi. In Duchovn pastier, 1939/2. p. 6264.
18 idia do Palestiny. In Slovk, 03.01.1923. p. 4.
19 Ak nie Palestina, tak teda Birobidan, alebo Magadaskar. In Slovk, 25.03.1937. p. 3.
CEC_konyv.indd 257
257
2016.06.10. 8:37:13
Churches Holocaust
Writings contemplating the relationship of the Soviet system and the Jewish
community were fairly frequent both in the 1920s and 1930s, not only in the daily
Slovk, but in the womens magazine Katolickjednota as well. An evergreen topic
for them was the anti-Christian feelings of the Soviet system controlled by Jews,20
while they were trying to prove the privileged situation of Jews in the Soviet Union.
The concept of Jewish-Bolshevism continued to be repeated in the daily Slovk21,
with a writing published at the time of World War II at the peak according to which
the leader of the Soviet Union, Stalin was of Jewish decent.22
Nevertheless, the writings that are most sensitive from our perspective deal
with the situation in Slovakia, with the political and social situation and the Jewish
community in Slovakia. In these articles most of which were adverse to the Jews a
whole treasury of stereotypes related to them are presented. As it usually happens
with stereotypes, part of the writings are rooted in real social problems (alcoholism characterising Slovaks, poverty, the weakness of Slovak politics in enforcing
its interests and the expansion of leftist movements, etc.), but aversion to Jews is
reflected in the indication of their reasons and in the answers given to the problems.
258
CEC_konyv.indd 258
2016.06.10. 8:37:13
by Attila Simon
were those who became rich out of the death of our sons? Who were those who
had given cans filled with sand to our soldiers? Who were those who had given them
boots made of paper? and Who were those who had become rich when the war
was going on and on - those were the questions raised by the writing and the author
would also answer them naming the Jewry to be blamed for everything.
The accusations related to the war had strong roots in the Slovak society. This
is indicated by the fact that the topic also turned up frequently even in the 1930s,
although with less emphasis and mainly stressing the motive that the Jews were
absent from the fights.24
One of the traditional stereotypes related to Jews is the image of the Jewish
innkeeper, who keeps the Christians in serfdom with the help of alcohol and makes
his riches out of them. The motive was not missing from the contemporary Slovak
press either and it turned up particularly frequently in the years following World War
I. Alcoholism was a live problem of the Slovak society. It is clear, however, that it was
not induced by the Jews. In any case, Jewish shopkeepers and innkeepers were
frequent victims of looting accompanying the change of regime while the contemporary Slovak politics demanded a re-distribution of licences to sell alcohol - i.e., Jews
should be deprived of them.
Therefore, it was no accident that the press particularly the daily Slovk held
the issue on its agenda continuously. An article published in the paper in 1923, for
instance, expressed the authors regret that although efforts were made - Jewish innkeepers were not dealt with as part of the popular movements following the
change of regime and they could continue their actions to cripple the Slovakian
people.25 The article The Plague of alcoholism mentions alcohol and the Jews side
by side as the biggest problems of Slovaks which - according to the author - were
brought on top of the Slovaks by no other than the other big enemy - Hungarian oppression.26
In the Slovak press the Jewish innkeeper was a symbol of the foreign capital
destroying the Slovak people damaging it economically and spiritually. It was the
Jews who were depicted in the daily Slovk using really extreme language, as parasites on the body of the Slovak nation27 characterising them with adjectives such
bacilli, syphilis, leech or locust. It should be noted however that the negative fea24 idovsk urnalisti. In Slovk, 19.03.1936. p. 3. Nech sa viac nevracaj. In Slovk, 02.10.1938. p. 5.
25 Krmy na Slovensku. In Slovk, 28.07.1923. p. 2.
26 Moralkoholizmu. In Slovk, 11.10.1922. p. 1-2.
27
See pl. idia na Slovensku. In Slovk, 08.09.1921, pp. 12.; Zo slovenskho vchodu.
In Slovk, 29.04.1921, pp. 2-3.
CEC_konyv.indd 259
259
2016.06.10. 8:37:13
Churches Holocaust
tures never related to individuals but to the community, so the alleged moral image
of the Jewry was drawn up with them. It was the collective image of the Jews, who
- according to the papers reviewed - primarily hated and rejected everything else,
Christianity first of all, and whose only purpose is hoarding riches and ruling others.
As already mentioned in the introduction, anti-Semitism present in the Slovak
society was linked to the national issue and Jews were mainly regarded as the enemies of the Slovak nation, the agents of the Hungarian or later the Czech politics.
According to the accusations sounded in different articles, it was the Jews who
prevented Bratislava from becoming a Slovak city,28 Prague used them to incite
Hungarian protests against Slovak autonomy29 (an union of Czechs, Hungarians and
Jews against the Slovaks), true Slovak papers were banned from the cafes run by
them,30 and it was them who assisted the Hungarian politicians and now assist the
Czech politicians to thrust the Slovak nation into serfdom.31
The accusations that Jews considered themselves to be Hungarians were built
on a historical-social reality. Before Czechoslovakia came into being, 78% of the Israelites living on the territory of Slovakia reported to speak Hungarian as their mother
tongue,32 because the majority of Jews living there had assimilated to Hungarians,
were speaking Hungarian and consuming Hungarian culture. Following 1918, the Jewish community, which had identified itself as Israelites with Hungarian as their mother
tongue or Hungarians of the faith of Moses quickly alienated from Hungary acknowledging the advantages of Czechoslovak democracy and welcomed the democratic
legal environment offered by Prague. That was the reason why at the 1930 census
most of them reported to be Jewish or to belong to the Czechoslovak nation and only
16% said they were Hungarians, which result was heartily welcomed by Czechoslovak
politics. On the other hand, it is also true that even if the Jews dissimilated from Hungarians politically, it did not happen from a cultural perspective: the majority of Jews in
Slovakia insisted on speaking Hungarian and using Hungarian cultural facilities.
However, Slovak nationalists expected them to assimilate to Slovaks also culturally and as it did not happen, violent responses were given by Catholics. It was
true although a group of Jews who wanted to emphasise their loyalty to Slovakia established the Federation of Slovakian Jews in the mid-1920s. But the daily Slovk
was not satisfied with the step and several articles were published questioning the
28
29
30
31
32
260
CEC_konyv.indd 260
2016.06.10. 8:37:14
by Attila Simon
sincerity of the Jews intentions of friendship. They argued that it was too early to be
pleased because the Jews had failed to prove their loyalty: they spoke Hungarian in
the cities, they sent their children to German or Austrian colleges and they did not
subscribe to the paper Slovk.33 Accordingly - the conclusion went - because they
have failed to prove their loyalty with acts we should not believe them but act according to the slogan svoj k svojmu (everybody to himself!).34The anti-Slovak feelings
of Jews had been a returning topic of Slovak until the end of the period. However,
the accusation in the 1930s was not only that Jews tended to magyarize, but they
represented the interests of Czechs.35
From time to time, actual events of the public life or politics contributed to antiJewish content published in the papers revealing latent anti-Semitism. Such events
included anti-Jewish student demonstrations launched in autumn 1929 among German students in Prague and spreading to Bratislava that were echoed in the daily
Slovk. The daily did not simply report on the events but it took sides with the demonstrators unambiguously. What is more, it raised the issue of introducing numerus
clausus at universities. 36
Showing the film Golem in cinemas of Bratislava in spring 1936 had an even
bigger response and stirred up violent emotions. Slovk expressed its opinion on
the film and on the demonstrations against it in several articles.37 The paper unambiguously rejected the French film because it deemed it tendentious and it said the
Slovak people had a different opinion on Jews than the film depicting their oppression. So it welcomed the demonstrations against the film, what is more, the daily
itself was one of the stimulators of the heat.
While the political-style daily responded to current events, the topic was
pushed into the background in the other reviews, as if they did not want to express
an opinion either of the persecution of the Jews in Germany or of the anti-Semitic
atmosphere taking over public life in Slovakia. Instead they focused their attention
on the question whether or not racism and Christian teachings could be reconciled.
An article published in Duchovnpastier in summer 1938 failed to take sides in this
sensitive issue; it only reported that while the Vatican rejects racism and considers
it to be dangerous, the German daily Strmer is mocking the Pope for that.38At the
33 Slovenskm idom. In Slovk, 19.09.1927. p. 1.
34 K problmom idovstva na Slovensku. In Slovk, 06.10.1927. p. 7.
35 Kto maarizuje. In Slovk, 07.09.1933. p. 2.; idia proti Slovkom. In Slovk, 01.09.1933. p. 1.; idia na
Slovensku v minulosti a teraz. In Slovk, 10.09.1933. p. 3.
36 Numerus clausus. In Slovk, 27.11.1929. p. 3.
37 Golem. In Slovk, 24.04.1936. p. 4; Brliv demontrcie v Bratislave. In Slovk, 26.04.1936. p. 12.; Ozvena bratislavskch udalost ud dychtive pova naich renikov. In Slovk, 28.04.1936. p. 3.
38 Duchovn pastier, 1938/8. p. 284.
CEC_konyv.indd 261
261
2016.06.10. 8:37:14
Churches Holocaust
same time, the Hungarian language j let [New Life] also dealt with the topic by
publishing the addresses delivered at the Lva Congress of the Reformed Catholic
Prohszka Ottokr Groups of the Hungarian youth in Slovakia. One of them was
entitled Race and myth and the racial issue.39 In addition to describing the basic
concepts of racism without any definite stand, the author was trying to provide a
kind of catalogue of the racial characteristics of Jews. In doing so, it acknowledged
the musical or mathematical talent often to be found among Jews but - adopting
the arguments of contemporary anti-Jewish discourse - expressed an opinion that
Jews dislike manual labour, they lack any moral sense and strength of character and
therefore they are willing to do anything they hope to profit from.
In the same issue of the daily, another author disputed the book by Alfred
Rosenberg (Der Mythus des zwangiges Jahrhunderts) in an article entitled The racial myth and Christianity and called its conclusions related to Christianity to be
false.40 According to Bla Prenner, the author, there is an equality of human races
because the soul of man has been created in similarity to God. He also argues
that although every nation has good and bad characteristics, they should not be
generalised. On the other hand, it allows that you could and should protect yourself
against the harmful characteristics of certain races - and here there is a concrete
reference to Jewry.
The church papers did not directly deal with the open anti-Semitism and
persecution of the Jews pervading Slovakia under Tiso beginning from 1938-39
but they commented on the social response given to it. Several articles either
openly or covertly responded to criticism according to which what is happening to
the Jews is not Christian and not humane. The author of the article What does the
Holy Book say about the Jewish issue41, tefan Zlato, who accidentally was the
professor of the Faculty of Theology at the Bratislava University dealing with church
history, cited the original sin of Jews against Christians (the crucifixion of Jesus)
and said they had been the root cause of their fate and everything happening to
them was the will of the Lord.
The same attitude was basically reflected in a text by Katolickjednota, in
which the author called the actions against Jews to be a battle of self-defence and
welcomed them.42
39 Lornd Spalek: Faj s mtosz: A faji krds. [Race and myth: The racial issue] In j let, 1938/8-9. p. 375
390.
40 Dr. Bla Prenner: A faji mitosz s a keresztnysg. [The racial myth and Christianity.] In j let, 1938/8-9. p.
394405.
41 o hovor Psmo sv. o idovskej otzke? In Duchovn pastier, 1940/1-2. p. 2228.
42 Je to div? In Katolick jednota, 1940/9. p. 22.
262
CEC_konyv.indd 262
2016.06.10. 8:37:14
by Attila Simon
In the same period, i.e., at the time before the deportation of the Jews Slovk
continuously incited and agitated against the Jewry, which was not surprising because it was practically a government paper at the time. It also listed theological arguments on many occasions trying to provide the measures of the government with
a religious - theological support. An article by professor Zlato already mentioned
belongs here,43 in which the author explains that everything that is happening is for
the public good and under the aegis of Christian love. An interview made with the
Slovakian head of the Jesuits is also quite telling,44 in which he advises that anything
is allowed against the Jews what is demanded by the interests of the state and the
nation unless the solution is contrary to divine laws. According to him, the category
of permitted acts also includes the exclusion of the Jews from the economic and
social life as well as their removal from bureaucratic positions, from the press and
from any other jobs that would allow them to influence the Christian society.
Following the deportation of the majority of the Jews in Slovakia in 1942,
the number of articles on the topic was reduced but their content changed little. The
articles were trying to prove the moral sins of Jews committed against Slovaks. 45 A
telling example for that is a text on the future of the nation,46in which in relation to a
law passed in Slovak Parliament banning abortions the Jews were accused for being responsible for the unborn Slovak children in the preceding 20 years. Because
it was them and the Freemasons who threw the parents killing their foetus into moral
doom while Jewish doctors became rich from abortions.
In the months following the deportations, Slovk was almost bragging about
the solution of the Jewish issue. It reported that a mere 20 thousand Jews remained
in Slovakia,47 and also that Hitler himself praised the Slovak political elite for their
actions.48 It also published articles pronouncing how well Slovakian Jews settled in
the east were living.49 On the other hand, it also published opinions whose authors
missed the complete solution of the Jewish issue and believed the Jews remaining
in Slovakia still had too much influence.50
Nevertheless, the topic started to disappear from the pages of the daily, although it never completely disappeared. Its last great wave came at the time of
the Slovak National Uprising on 29 August 1944, when the daily published several
43
44
45
46
47
48
49
50
CEC_konyv.indd 263
263
2016.06.10. 8:37:14
Churches Holocaust
articles in which the fight of partisans against the regime was presented as a result
or as a consequence of Jewish machination. 51
264
CEC_konyv.indd 264
2016.06.10. 8:37:14
by Attila Simon
administration. The Jewish issue was not given space either within the church or in
the related press. In the course of this research, only one article dealing with the
Jews was found in the two Slovak papers reviewed, while Jews were mentioned
three times in the Hungarian paper.
3 out of the 4 articles mentioned are neutral in their content, and only the one
published in the journal Cirkevnlisty in 1919 by the Tranoscius Society can be
deemed negative.52The author objects that while the Jews (and their patrons) talk a
lot about equality, they in fact do not practice it, since the Talmud does not consider
the Jews and the Goys equal. He believes the Jews want to rule over other nations
and therefore Czechoslovak laws providing them with equality under the law are at
fault because the Jews exclude themselves from it with their morality. It should be
noted, however, in relation to this article of a rather negative attitude that it was written in 1919 when the anti-Semitic atmosphere started at the time of the change of
the regime could not be settled yet.
The Hungarian language Evanglikus Lap [Lutheran Paper] mentions the Jews
on three occasions in the period. The first of them is a Biblical parable on the crucifixion of Christ published in several parts. Although the text is not silent regarding
the responsibility of the Jewish high priests, the anti-Judaist elements known from
the Catholic press are missing. In the same way the two other articles reviewed
are neutral. The first of them mentions Jews in connection with the development of
Protestantism in Germany and the other in a book review.
After the autonomy and independence of Slovakia, the Lutheran Church was in
a difficult position because it found itself in a state headed by a Catholic priest (Jozef
Tiso) where another Catholic personality (Andrej Hlinka) was named the greatest
national hero and where Hlinkas Slovak Peoples Party closely intertwined with the
Catholic clergy had absolute power. It would have been sufficient in itself for the Lutheran Church to become opposed to power, which opposition was further increased
by the measures of the dictatorial regime including the gradual exclusion of Jews.
Given the circumstances, the Lutheran press could not comment openly on
this opposition, i.e., it could not distance itself from the governments Jewish policy
although it could make hints hidden between the lines. If it still expressed its objection regarding the situation in Slovakia and the Jewish issue, the revenge by those
in power was not far away. It happened so in the case when Evanjelickposolpod
Tatier reported on a decree restricting the Jews rights to own apartments, followed
by a commentary saying what had been happening to Jews recently could not be
reconciled with the values of humanity and particularly not with real Christian val52 Rovnoprvnos a idia. In Cirkevn listy, 1919. 89/184188.
CEC_konyv.indd 265
265
2016.06.10. 8:37:14
Churches Holocaust
ues.53 The paper was banned for some time due to this. It should be noted that such
a sentence published in spring 1942 could not interpreted in any other way than as
criticism of the deportation of the Jews.
Less than a month later, the paper again voiced its opinion on the Jewish issue in connection with the meeting of the Lutheran Church convent.54 It wanted
to respond to the opinion appearing in official Slovak media according to which
the churches support the measures taken by the government regarding the Jewish issue. According to the article quoted, it was not so in the case of the Lutheran
Church. Because the Universal Synod only was authorised to make a statement on
behalf of the church; nobody asked its opinion and no official statement had been
published on the subject.
In connection with the baptism of Jews, Cirkevn Listy also dealt with the Jewish issue in summer 1942.55 The article was probably in response to a criticism of
the Lutheran Church by Catholics because a high number of Jews had been baptised, although this had triggered disputes within the Lutheran Church as well. The
analysed publication practically took sides with baptism concluding it from the concept that converting Jews was a basic mission of the church. The author of the article Jn Bakoss a minister at Besztercebnya was among those who had baptised
many Jews. So it was no accident that he defended the procedure in his article, and
only condemned if somebody granted baptism in return for monetary services. He
placed his stance supporting baptism in a Biblical context and closed his article by
saying that ministers should first of all serve not men but the Lord, which was practically a kind of call to oppose the official authorities.
Summary
Having reviewed the Catholic and Lutheran press in the interwar period, we
arrived at the following conclusions:
- while the Jewry was a permanent topic often on the agenda of the Catholic
press, the Lutheran papers avoided it.
- the low number of articles published in the Lutheran papers in the interwar
period were rather neutral in their content although a strongly negative and
53 idom sa zakazuje zmena bytu. In Evanjelick posol pod Tatier, 11.04.1942. p. 145.
54 idovsk otzka. In Evanjelick posol pod Tatier, 23.05.1942. p. 213.
55 Bakoss: idovsk otzka a krst idov. In Cirkevn Listy, 18.06.1942. p. 148150.
266
CEC_konyv.indd 266
2016.06.10. 8:37:14
by Attila Simon
anti-Jewish one could be found from 1919. During World War II, however, the
Lutheran press was characterised by distancing itself from the official antiSemitism in Slovakia.
- on the other hand, the Catholic press had an adverse attitude to the Jewry in
both periods investigated although the frequency and content of the texts
involved changed from time to time in an adaptation to the political situation
in Slovakia. The articles published in the Catholic press presented almost all
stereotypes of anti-Judaism and anti-Semitism. So they described the Jews
partly as the murderers of Jesus and party as exploiters of the Slovak nation,
as means of magyarization and as harbingers of Bolshevism.
- the Catholic press continued its anti-Semitic campaign at the time of the Holocaust as well and supported the Slovak State in its anti-humane politics.
The conclusion can be drawn that while the Lutheran Church distanced itself
from anti-Semitic incitement and - albeit carefully - was trying to dissociate from the
politics of the Slovak State regarding Jews, the responsibility of the Catholic Church
is unquestionable since its press did not only grant space to foster anti-Jewish feelings but was itself an inciter of anti-Semitic emotions.
CEC_konyv.indd 267
267
2016.06.10. 8:37:14
CEC_konyv.indd 268
2016.06.10. 8:37:14
Ildik Bajcsi
The paper introduces the attitude of the Protestant Church towards the Jewish community in the 1st Czechoslovak Republic (1918-1938). Within that, it reviews the
newspaper articles of the Hungarian language Protestant Church in the given period.
The study is part of a project by Civitas Europica Centralis Foundation, which calls
attention to the responsibility of the Christian Churches Lutheran, Catholic and
Protestant - and emphasises the part played by the historic churches in the inter-war
period in connection with the anti-Semitic actions against the Jews. The research by
CEC allows the reader to arrive at an in-depth analysis of the history of the Jews of the
inter-war period in the Central-European region, and by introducing the contemporary
attitude of the churches it offers a new aspect in the field of Jewish studies that has
been a taboo in historical research almost to the present day. In that way, the study
may contribute to an in-depth understanding and new elaboration of the anti-Semitic
measures, the persecution of Jews and the Holocaust in the inter-war period.
The history of Hungarian Jews in (Czecho)Slovakia has not been revealed yet
properly. A few historians only dealt with the issue of the Jewish community living in
Southern Slovakia in the inter-war period. The research made by va Kovcs must
be underlined, who mainly researched the assimilation of the Jewish community in
CEC_konyv.indd 269
269
2016.06.10. 8:37:14
Churches Holocaust
Kassa (Kosice). She summarised her studies in her book Lopsided assimilation.
The Jews of Kassa in the inter-war period (1918-1938).1She also pointed out in her
study the deficiencies of the historical elaboration of the issue. The social history
of the Jewish community in Hungary reviewed the processes occurring in the historic territory of the country before 1920 and after 1920, the changes occurring in
the post-Trianon Hungary only. The history of the Jewish community remaining on
the annexed territories in line with the peace treaties closing World War I has not
been discussed, she remarked in her study Dissimilation, Jewish identity, regional
identity in Slovakia published in 1991.2On the other hand, some progress has been
made over the past few years in revealing the situation of the Jewish community in
Southern Slovakia. In 2014, a study by Attila Simon In a double grip. The Jewish
community of Southern Slovakia from Trianon to Auschwitz has given a comprehensive summary of the history of Hungarian Jews in (Czecho)Slovakia in the inter-war
period.3 We also have to emphasise the studies offered within the framework of
local history research regarding the past of the Jewish community in Southern Slovakia. Attila Simon, for instance, analysed local Jewish communities over the past
year such as the Jews of Dunaszerdahely. The Jewish community played a major
part in the history of Dunaszerdahely, which is reflected by the title of a publication
in 2015: Dunaszerdahely Little Palestine.4 In the same year, a short summary of
the past of the Jewish community in Komrom (Komarno) was published by Miroslav
Michela A city on the border. Guide to the history of a lost Jewish community.5
1 va Kovcs: Felems asszimilci. A kassai zsidsg a kt vilghbor kztt [Lopsided assimilation. The
Jewry of Kassa between the two World Wars] (1918-1938). Lilium Aurum. Somorja Dunaszerdahely. 2004.
http://mek.oszk.hu/02300/02384/02384.pdf
2 va Kovcs: Disszimilci, zsid azonossgtudat, regionlis identits Szlovkiban [Dissimilation, Jewish
identity, regional identity in Slovakia ] (1920-1938) Regio Kisebbsgtudomnyi Szemle. 1991/2. http://epa.
oszk.hu/00000/00036/00006/pdf/03.pdf
3 Attila Simon: Ketts szortsban. A dl-szlovkiai zsidsg Trianon s Auschwitz kzt. [In a double grip. The Jewish community of Southern Slovakia from Trianon to Auschwitz]. Frum Trsadalomtudomnyi Szemle, 2014,
Vol. 4. 3-16.
4 Op.cit: Kis Palesztina [Little - Palestine]. Dunaszerdahely. Izraelsk obchodn komora na Slovensku.
Bratislava, 2015.
5 Michela, Miroslav: Vros a hatron. [A City on the border] tikalauz egy eltnt zsid kzssg trtnethez.
[Guide to the history of a lost Jewish community.] Izraelsk obchodn komora na Slovensku. Bratislava, 2015.
270
CEC_konyv.indd 270
2016.06.10. 8:37:15
by Ildik Bajcsi
Czechoslovakia established on the pattern of France on 28 October 1918 became the most democratic state in Central-Europe. At the same time, the First Republic was severely influenced by the fact that it was the most heterogeneous state
in Europe by its ethnic pattern.6 While according to the figures of 1921 census, the
number of Czechoslovak citizens was 13,374,364, 65.51% of them only reported
to belong to the majority nation that is Czechoslovak. At the same time 23.35%
of the population reported to belong to the German, 5.57% to the Hungarian and
3.45% to the Rusyn national minority. The Jews, Romanians and Gypsies belonging
to the other national minorities made up 2.12 % of the population in total.7350 thousand Israelites had found themselves in Czechoslovakia established newly after the
dissolution of the Austrian-Hungarian Monarchy. 136 thousand of them lived on the
territory of what is Slovakia today8. In his study, Attila Simon underlined that the Jews
in the new republic could not be regarded a homogenous community because they
were highly different socially, by religion and by their mother tongue.9The Jews who
had been forced to live in the new state had quite complicated forms of identity that
could also be seen from the statistics of the censuses and that prove the malleability
of the national identity of Jews. The majority of the 130 thousand Jewish population in Slovakia had mostly assimilated to the Hungarians in their language
and identity. While most of them (106 thousand) reported to speak Hungarian
as their mother tongue at the time of the 1910 census, at the time of the 1921
census - which had created the category of Jewish national minority 54% reported to belong to the Jewish national minority, 22.4% Czechoslovak and only
16.6% reported to be Hungarians. This meant a decline of over 80 thousand
in the number of Hungarians at the time of the 1921 census as Attila Simon
underlined the part played by Jews in the large-scale reduction of the number of
Hungarians in Czechoslovakia.10
6 About that, cf.: Lszl Szarka: A multietnikus nemzetllam. [A multi-ethnic national state.] Ksrletek, kudarcok
s kompromisszumok Csehszlovkia nemzetisgi politikjban 1918-1992. [Efforts, failures and compromises in the minority policy of Czechoslovakia 1918-1992.] Kalligram Knyvkiad. Pozsony, 2016.
7 Bla Angyal: rdekvdelem s nszervezds. Fejezetek a csehszlovkiai magyar prtpolitika trtnetbl
1918-1938 [Interest representation and self-organisation. Chapters from the history of Hungarian party politics
in Czechoslovakia 1918-1938]. Frum Intzet. Lilium Aurum Knyvkiad. Galnta-Dunaszerdahely. 2002. 21.
8 According to the 1921 census, 355 thousand people of the Israelite denomination lived in the Czechoslovak Republic. 126 thousand of them lived in the Czech parts, 136 thousands in Slovakia and 93 thousand in
Sub-Carpathia. Quoted by Attila Simon based on research by Cermkov. ermkov, Radka: eskoslovensk
republika Nov tt ve stedn evrop a id. In: Soukupov, Blanka Zahradnkov, Marie (ed.): idovsk
menina v eskoslovensku ve dvactych letech. idovsk mzeum v Prahe, Praha, 2003. Attila Simon: Ketts
szortsban, id. m. [In a double grip.] 3.
9 Op.cit.
10 Attila Simon: Egy rvid esztend krnikja. A szlovkiai magyarok 1938-ban. [The chronicle of a short year.
Hungarians in Slovakia in 1938.] Frum Kisebbsgkutat Intzet. Somorja, 2010. 13. The calculations of the
Czechoslovak politicians have come true, but the Jewish community did not respond to the opportunity
in a uniform manner, because the Orthodox communities making up of about 70% of Jews in Slovakia
rejected on theological grounds to take Jewry as a nation in the modern sense of the world. So, about half
of the Jews in Slovakia used the opportunity offered and reported to belong to the Jewish national minority at the times of censuses in the period, while the rest were recorded in the statistics as Czechoslovaks,
CEC_konyv.indd 271
271
2016.06.10. 8:37:15
Churches Holocaust
Although the Jews already had to face political anti-Semitism in Hungary in the
1880s, all that was raised to the level of official politics in the counter-revolutionary
era of the Horthy regime. In Hungary the anti-Jewish discrimination became stronger beginning from the 1920s.11 As opposed to that, the first Czechoslovak Republic
did not discriminate the Jews and did not engage in open assimilation politics either
contrary to the contemporary anti-Semitic attitude in Hungary. In the First Republic
established democratically a Jewish issue similar to that in Hungary did not exist, on
the other hand, Hungarian and German issues did exist. So granting national minority rights to the Jews in the state mainly served the goal of reducing the number of
Hungarian national minorities.12 In addition, you should not forget the liberal forces
and the effects of a Jewish revival.
The above facts may explain that the Jews and their open discrimination was
much less in the focus in Czechoslovakia, while the Jewish issue and anti-Semitism
was continuously present in the public discourse in Hungary and the contemporary
press made efforts to deal with the topic. Despite this, an antipathy towards the
Jews was covertly present, and there were major differences between Checks and
the more conservative mostly Catholic Slovaks in this regard: As Czechoslovakia
was established, the Jews living in Southern Slovakia found themselves in new circumstances, since there was no anti-Semitism in the First Republic either in legislation or in public discourse and it could not be found in the programme of any relevant parties. However, several researchers including va Kovcs indicate that the
Slovak public life was not totally free of anti-Jewish attitudes. Attila Simon wrote
indicating the ambivalent attitude that was present in multi-ethnic Czechoslovakia
not only towards the Hungarian minority but also towards the Jewish community, in
which the artificial connection of the Check and Slovak parts of the country with a
Hungarians, Germans, etc. Op.cit.: Ketts szortsban, [In a double grip.] opacity. 7. Regarding the Hungarian
identity of Jews living in Southern Slovakia, the concept of the so-termed assimilation social contract can be
used for an explanation before 1918, which meant a kind of agreement entered into by the Hungarian elite and
the Jews in Hungary at the time of the Austro-Hungarian Monarchy. In return for becoming Hungarians, they
had become active players in business life. This had led to a large-scale assimilation of the Jews. More on the
concept, cf. Viktor Kardy: Zsidsg, modernizci, asszimilci. [Jewry, modernisation and assimilation.]
Tanulmnyok. Cserpfalvi. Budapest, 1997. Attila Simon:A dl-szlovkiai zsidsg Trianon s Auschwitz kzt.
[The Jewish community of Southern Slovakia from Trianon to Auschwitz]. j Sz. 12 July 2014 http://ujszo.
com/napilap/szalon/2014/07/12/a-del-szlovakiai-zsidosag-trianontol-auschwitzig.
11 More on that cf.: Krisztin Ungvry: A Horthy-rendszer mrlege. Diszkriminci, szocilpolitika s antiszemitizmus Magyarorszgon. [The balance of the Horthy regime. Discrimination, social policy and anti-Semitism in
Hungary.] PcsBudapest. Jelenkor, Pcs-Budapest, 2013.
12 Endre Kovcs Czechoslovak literary historian underlined in his memoirs the different strategies of identity the
Jewish community took in the inter-war period: What was the path taken by the Jewish community allowed
by the democratic state to make use of his rights? You have to say that it was highly divided among different national minorities at the time of the censuses. Quite many of them reported to be German because
their traditions had been there, Vienna was close. Some of them joined the Slovaks. A relatively low number took sides with the Hungarian national minority (as reflected by the census), but it would be a mistake
to draw the conclusions from this that they had broken with Hungarian culture. Endre Kovcs: Korszakvlts. [A turning point of history.] Magvet Knyvkiad, Budapest, 1981. 105.
272
CEC_konyv.indd 272
2016.06.10. 8:37:15
by Ildik Bajcsi
different historical past did have a part.13 The problem is indicated by anti-Jewish
riots occurring in the Slovak part of the country in 1918-19.
The attitude of Slovakia towards the Jews -although cannot be regarded directly antagonistic or openly anti-Semitic - did not mean complete tolerance and acceptance. Regarding the attitude of the Slovak part of the country towards the Jews,
Attila Simon pointed at nationalism as one of the important roots of the problems: It
was a well-known fact that the Slovak society, the Slovak elite but even the Check
elite [] looked at the Jews living in Southern Slovakia as Hungarians intending to
forcefully magyarize them. Therefore, they were just as mistrustful of them as of the
Hungarians, while they looked at luring away the Jews as a means of weakening
the basis of the Hungarians.14
On the relationship between Jews and Protestants, we have to discuss the situation of the (Hungarian) Protestants in Czechoslovakia. The 1921 census found the
number of Hungarians in (Czecho)Slovakia to be 637,183 (21.48 %), most of whom
reported to be Roman Catholics. 24.17 % of the minority were Protestants mainly
belonging to the Reformed Church and a lower number to the Lutheran Church.
According to the 1930 figures, which provided accurate data on the number of the
Protestants, 126 thousand people, that is 21.4% of the Hungarians in Slovakia said
they belonged to the Protestant Church.15
Imre Narancsik, an emblematic figure of the Hungarian Protestant Church in
Czechoslovakia in the inter-war period wrote the following in a summary publication
Re-annexed Upper Hungary published in 1937 regarding the statistics of Protestants in Czechoslovakia: The 1930 Czechoslovak census found 219,108 Protestants on the territory of the Republic. Of them 145,829 lived in Slovakia and 70,833
13 Attila Simon: Budapest, 1997. Attila Simon: A dl-szlovkiai zsidsg Trianon s Auschwitz kzt. [The Jewish
community of Southern Slovakia from Trianon to Auschwitz]. j Sz. 12 July 2014 http://ujszo.com/napilap/
szalon/2014/07/12/a-del-szlovakiai-zsidosag-trianontol-auschwitzig. More on that cf.: Op.cit: Ketts szortsban, [In a double grip.] opacity.
14 Attila Simon: A dl-szlovkiai zsidsg, [The Jewish community of Southern Slovakia] opacity. Cf. also: As:
Ketts szortsban, [In a double grip.] op. cit. p. 4.
15 By religion, in 1921, 70.33% of the Hungarians in Slovakia were Roman Catholics, 24.17% mainly Protestant, some of them Lutheran, 3.41% Israelites and most of the others mainly Greek Catholics. According to
the 1930 data, 71.29% of Hungarians reported to be Catholics. At that time, the two Protestant denominations were registered separately, and accordingly 21.35% of Hungarians belonged to the Reformed and
3.45% to the Lutheran Church. The ratio of Israelites was reduced to 1.64%. Most Protestants lived in the
districts of Kirlyhelmec and Nagykapos as well as in Gmr around the villages of Feled and Tornalja.
A significant Lutheran community of Hungarians also lived in Gmr. In the western part of the country,
mainly in the districts of Komrom, gyalla, Prkny and Vgsellye significant number of Protestant population lived constituting the wealthier peasant stratum of the Hungarian villages. Bla Angyal: rdekvdelem
s nszervezds, [Interest representation and self-organisation] opacity. 35. On the organisation of the (Hungarian) Protestant Church in Southern Slovakia in the inter-war period, more in: Ferenc Tmskzi: A komromi
reformtus egyhzmegye trtnete 1918-1938 kztt [The history of the Protestant diocese of Komrom
1918-1938]. Doctoral thesis. University Selye Jnos. Faculty of Protestant Theology. Komrno, 2015.
CEC_konyv.indd 273
273
2016.06.10. 8:37:15
Churches Holocaust
in Sub-Carpathia. [...] About 90% of the Church is Hungarian; its behaviour, past
and labours are identified by its national identity. About 20,000 Slovak Protestants
living in Zempln and Sros joined the 90% Hungarian Protestants according to the
Czechoslovak census.16
On the other hand you have to emphasise the political stands of Hungarian
Jews in Czechoslovakia to shed light on the relationship of Protestants and Jews.
As opposed to Hungary, Czechoslovakia provided new opportunities for the political
representation of Jews. The Jewish Party ensured political participation on national
minority basis. However, the Jewish Party never became the political mouthpiece
of Jews in Slovakia, but it found its place with smaller or larger weight in local governments in the 1920s.17
In addition to the Czechoslovak Communist Party, the Hungarian National Party - which was much more liberal in its spirit than the conservative National Christian
Socialist Party with its voting base mainly constituted by Catholics - represented an
important political playing field for the Jews living in Southern Slovakia. The Jews
of Hungarian identity living in Czechoslovakia also took part in the organisational
structure and leadership of the Hungarian National Party.18
In addition, you should notice the novelties in the mentality of minority Hungarians as a result of their different socialisation in the new state, which differed from the
conservative identity in Hungary termed neo-baroque by Gyula Szekf.19 Due to their
minority position, the Hungarians in Czechoslovakia were much more tolerant to other
16 Imre Narancsik: Reformtusok. [Protestants.] In: Istvn Borsody Istvn Csatr (ed.): A visszatrt Felvidk
adattra. [Statistics of the re-annexed Upper Hungary] Budapest, 1939. 145. Imre Narancsik (1904-1948)
was a Protestant pastor born at Losonc. Later acted as an editor of periodicals and scholarly historian. He
edited the periodicals Barti Sz [Friendly Words] and Reformtus let [Protestant Life]. He took part in the
Protestant youth movements, in the Bethlen Gbor Movement. Zoltn Fnod: A cseh/szlovkiai magyar irodalom lexikona 1918-1995 [bibliography of the Hungarian literature in Czecho/Slovakia 1918-1995] MadchPosonium, Pozsony, 1995. 229-230.
17 va Kovcs: Felems asszimilci [Lopsided assimilation], opacity. http://mek.oszk.hu/02300/02384/
02384.pdf Cf.: The official government politics did not provide equal treatment to different groups among
the Jews in Slovakia, and mainly supported the Orthodox communities. The result of this was that those
communities voted mostly for the government parties while few supporters remained for the Jewish Party.
Attila Simon: Ketts szortsban, [In a double grip.] op. cit. p. 6.
18 This is well-reflected in the voting ratios of Kassa Jews in 1925. The Jewish Party received only 42% at the
elections, while the leftist parties and the Hungarian National Party received the other votes. It should be noted
regarding its influence that the two Vice Chairmen of the Party Ignc Herz and Bla Halmi - were also members of the Kassa religious community. Op.cit. 6-7.
19 About that, cf.: Ildik Bajcsi: A kisebbsgi magyar elitek szervezdse s az ifjsgi mozgalmak a kt vilghbor kztti Csehszlovkiban. (Vzlat a kisebbsgtrtnet genercis s biogrfiai interpretcis
lehetsgeirl) [The organisations of minority Hungarian elites and youth movements in Czechoslovakia in
the inter-war period. (Draft on the generational and biographical interpretation opportunities of minority history)] lovek a spolonos. 2014/2. http://www.clovekaspolocnost.sk/sk/rocnik-17-rok-2014/2/studie-aclanky/a-kisebbsegi-magyar-elitek-szervezodese-es-az-ifjusagi-mozgalmak-a-ket-vilaghaboru-kozotti-csehszlovakiaban-vazlat-a-kisebbsegtortenet-generacios-es-biografiai-interpretacios-lehetosegeirol/
274
CEC_konyv.indd 274
2016.06.10. 8:37:15
by Ildik Bajcsi
national minorities (and other religions) than most Hungarians in the parent country.
va Kovcs also underlined the new features of the common fate of Jews and Hungarians organising themselves among similar minority conditions in the Czechoslovak
Republic: When the Czechoslovak Republic was established, the power relations of
national minorities changed in the former Upper Hungary. The Check and the Slovak
nationalities had become majority ethnic groups while the Hungarians who had been
dominant previously became the strongest national minority by their number and political weight compared to the other (German, Rusyn and Polish) minorities. The Jewish
community - most of them Hungarian speaking - also belonged among those minorities as an independent national minority distinct from the Hungarian national minority.
On the other hand, identical minority conditions applied to Hungarians, Germans,
Rusyns and Jews alike could be envisaged as a common fate.20
CEC_konyv.indd 275
275
2016.06.10. 8:37:15
Churches Holocaust
the first Vienna Award. So my research involved the attitudes of the Hungarian
Protestant Church in the period of the First Czechoslovak Republic from 1918 to
1938. Most articles were published in the religious weekly Reformtus Egyhz s
Iskola [Protestant Church and School] published from 1921 to 1938, which was
the most important religious publication of the Hungarian Protestant Church in Slovakia. In addition, articles were published in a bi-weekly Szeretet [Love] published
from 1923 to 1938 which was edited by Bla Bertk. Writings related to the Jewish
community also appeared in the church and cultural journal Barti Sz [Friendly
Word] published in Munkcs (Mukacevo) then in Komrom (Komarno) from 1928
to 1931 by Imre Varga and Imre Narancsik. And a bi-weekly sszefogs [Union]
published from 1937 and 1938 edited by Imre Varga also had articles on the Jewish community.
276
CEC_konyv.indd 276
2016.06.10. 8:37:15
by Ildik Bajcsi
Titus Caesar in a siege in seven books.23 The book dealt with the Zealots who were
defined as robbers of Jerusalem and considered forerunners of the Bolsheviks. We
learn from this old book that at the time of the siege of Jerusalem in 72 A.D. Bolsheviks were called Zealots; the army of the Zealots consisted of the most abject rabble
of Jerusalem and of robbers escaped to Jerusalem from the country. as Zajd
wrote of the group of people who after coming into power in Jerusalem introduced
a system of terrorism.24
As a continuation of that article, a book by Kroly Sareloea university professor in Edinburgh published in 1926 was introduced with the title Soviet Russia, i.e.,
experiences in Soviet Russia. While this book also emphasised the similarities of
Bolsheviks and Zealots, it was critical of the representatives of Russian communism
described as merciless dictators. He said The leaders of the Russian Bolsheviks
are blood descendants of the Zealots of Jerusalem. Driven by thirst for blood
and power they did not have mercy on their own compatriots so how could their
descendants of a similar mind have mercy on people of alien nations?!25 At the
same time, it turned out from the article that the author thought the greatest problem of Bolshevism was its adversity to religion, which he linked to the Empire of the
Antichrist, i.e., Russia: The Christian religion is a forbidden thing in Russia; in the
republic of the Antichrist, even school children are demanded to publicly commit
themselves to atheism (Godlessness).26The book, however, did not only write about
Bolsheviks but the Jews also appeared. It underlined that Jews played a big part
in the most cruel appearances of Bolshevism and the majority of Bolshevik leaders
are Jews, then he advised that the leaders of all Bolshevik revolutions - whether in
Budapest or in Bavaria were Jews everywhere and every time, i.e., the leaders of
the world revolution are also Jews.27The book also warned that Bolshevism is not
the conspiracy of the Jewry and proposed to separate the majority of Jews from
Bolshevism and its crimes and only a negligible minority of Jews should be regarded
as drivers of the world revolution.28
A prophecy Zajd thought important to underline in his article reflected the
international tensions against the Jews. According to it, in his book Kroly Sarolea
prophesied the vast spread of anti-Semitism and that pogroms fatal to the Jews
will come across unless a Jewish state is established under the protection of the
League of Nations somewhere in Central Asia where the Jewish masses can be
23
24
25
26
27
28
Lszl Zajd: Kt knyv a bolsevizmusrl. Szeretet. [Two books on Bolshevism.] 10 May 1926 / 5
Op.cit.
Lszl Zajd: Kt knyv a bolsevizmusrl. Szeretet. [Two books on Bolshevism.] 25 May 1926. 3.
Op.cit.
Op.cit.
Op.cit.
CEC_konyv.indd 277
277
2016.06.10. 8:37:16
Churches Holocaust
settled to escape the unavoidable pogroms.29So the author only released his stereotypes against the Jews partially, because he did not refute that a minority of Jews
are the labourers of Antichrist and enemies of the Christian Church as drivers of the
world revolution by connecting themselves to Bolshevism.
29
30
31
32
278
CEC_konyv.indd 278
Op.cit.
Imre Narancsik: Zsidk ttrse. [Jewish conversion] Barti Sz. 1930. Vol. 1, October, 14.
Op.cit.
Op.cit.
2016.06.10. 8:37:16
by Ildik Bajcsi
In 1937 the Protestant papers published six articles on the Jews in total. The
increase of the number of writings must have been related to the so-termed national
union and with international, political and social processes including anti-Jewish
actions and the spread of anti-Semitism. The majority of articles in 1937 were published in the official paper of the Protestant Church, i.e., in the weekly Reformtus
Egyhz s Iskola [Protestant Church and School] published from 1921 to 1938.
Most articles touched upon the conversion of Jews and the Jewish mission, in addition, several writings were published related to the racial ideology of Germany, and
the authors also discussed the issue of the ideological stands of Jews and related
problems. Most writings discussed the Jewish issue not from a racial perspective
but as a religious issue as opposed to the Christian faith.
The first article was published by Lajos Nagy in 1937 with the title Szektk s
az ellenk val kzdelem [Sects and the fight against them].33 The writing dealt with
the Millenist (Jehovahs witnesses) movement established in the United States of
America.34 He believed the Jews provided the funds for the establishment of this
new religious sect: It is a peculiar thing that while the Millenists hate and despise
the Christian churches and disparage them all the time, they especially like, what
is more, praise the Jews particularly the Zionists. So it is understandable that the
Jews provide significant funds for the movement. In 1924, a Swiss physician Dr
Fehrman publicly said at a meeting held in St. Gallen that the Millenists are financed
by the Jews. The Millenists sued Dr Fehrman, but the court acquitted him since he
could prove his statement. he wrote in the article.35 With regard to assumptions
related to Zionist Jews, it has already been hinted that Zionism was strongly present
among the Jewish community in Czechoslovakia in the inter-war period. Zionist organisations were less loyal either to the system or to the Hungarian parties and they
could be placed more on the left side of politics.36 This fact could also contribute to
the negative prejudices against Zionist Jews appearing in the Hungarian Protestant
press in Czechoslovakia.
33 Sz. n. : c. n. Reformtus Egyhz s Iskola [Protestant Church and School]. 1937, Vol. 17 issue 13, 2.
34 The Millenists or by their other name Jehovahs Witnesses is a sect based on Adventist traditions established
by Charles Taze Russel (1852-1916) in Philadelphia in the 1870s. He believed nobody before him had interpreted the Holy Book correctly. More on the topic: Magyar Katolikus Lexikon. [Hungarian Catholic Encyclopaedia] http://lexikon.katolikus.hu/J/Jehova%20tan%C3%BAi.html
35 Sz. n. : c. n. Reformtus Egyhz s Iskola [Protestant Church and School]. 1937, Vol. 17 issue 13, 2.
36 va Kovcs remarks the following in this regard: If the Jewish Party was unable to materially shape the identity of Jews because of its political failures and narrow inactive actions, the Zionist movement could do
so much better. Teaching the Hebrew language, the self-education of Jewish youth and re-training them
for instance to farming positions, the scout movements organised to create an independent Jewish state,
which were often quite militant, were all aimed to shape a basically new Jewish identity in which Jews were
not only regarded as a denomination or national minority but as a nation. va Kovcs: Disszimilci, zsid
azonossgtudat, regionlis identits Szlovkiban [Dissimilation, Jewish identity, regional identity in Slovakia ]
(1920-1938) Regio Kisebbsgtudomnyi Szemle. 1991/2. http://epa.oszk.hu/00000/00036/00006/
pdf/03.pdf Cf.: Attila Simon: Ketts szortsban, [In a double grip.] op. cit. pp. 7-8.
CEC_konyv.indd 279
279
2016.06.10. 8:37:16
Churches Holocaust
The next writing is linked to the consequences of the racial ideology of contemporary Germany. The article pointed to the establishment of a new - racially
based - religious movement and advised that not only the Jews but Christians and
Christianity were also in danger because it had been built on the religion of Semitic
peoples - i.e., the Jewish faith. It is a fact that as nationalistic ideals gain momentum, a great spiritual movement started, which wants to create a new and separate
German popular religion based on the new ideology of blood and race. [...] The
attacks launched by Hauer the spiritual leader of the new German religious movement are even more dangerous due to his scholarly stance. He believes Christianity
is a spiritual product of Semitic peoples and it does not match northern peoples
so the German race does not need Christ. 37 The same question was discussed in
an article on the establishment of a pagan religion by Ludendorff, which was published under the title Ludendorff and Christianity in the paper Reformtus Egyhz
s iskola [Protestant Church and School]: As it is reported by German church papers, Ludendorff - under the influence of his second wife - has established a philosophical religious-pagan league to pursue his anti-Semitism freely. He has rejected
the Old Testament and he has rejected the New Testament to feel free from the
influence of pastors and he is announcing total paganism. In his journal, he cannot
find sufficiently condemnatory terms to describe Christianity. He says that it is an
alien religion that kills racial characteristics and damages the union of the people.
He believes the Bible serves the Jews goals.38Both articles called attention to the
common roots of Jewry and Christianity which may render them a common enemy
against Nazi ideology. This recognition called attention to the dangers of the new
type religious lines in Germany rather than that of Jews. Such processes might have
promoted an understanding of the two religions.
The conversion of the Jews and the Jewish mission in the period were particularly important parts of the Jewish issue within the church, therefore, they appeared
in several articles. Robert Smith, a Scottish pastor in Prague and Gyrgy Knight,
Scottish pastor in Pest as appointed Jewish missionaries of the Scottish Church, in
addition to speaking about the local problems of the Protestant Church witnessed in
the course of their travels in Czechoslovakia, touched upon the issue of the Jewish
mission as well. Gyrgy Knight believed it was only worth establishing specific Jewish missions in cities such as Budapest and Prague. He said, the experience of the
Scottish Church both in Budapest and in Prague is that you do not need to go out
and collect the Jews in such cities as they are coming on their own initiative and ask
for education. But where Jews live in Orthodox communities they have been used
37 Sz. n.: A keresztnysg nmetorszgi helyzete. [The position of Christianity in Germany.] Reformtus Egyhz
s Iskola [Protestant Church and School]. 1937. Vol. 17, issue 16, 5.
38 Sz.n.: Ludendorff s a keresztynsg. [Ludendorff and Christianity] Reformtus Egyhz s Iskola [Protestant
Church and School]. 1937. Vol. 17, issue 22,7.
280
CEC_konyv.indd 280
2016.06.10. 8:37:16
by Ildik Bajcsi
to for several hundred years, such as in Slovakia and Ruthenia, both of us believe it
would not be wise to organise a specific Jewish mission, on the contrary, it would
be incorrect.39 The article underlined the different position of Jews in Slovakia and
Ruthenia emphasising the presence of traditional Orthodox Jews in Sub-Carpathia,
who have rejected assimilation. He also called attention to ignorance that - in his
opinion - is one of the sources of the adverse feelings of Jews towards Christians.
At the same time, he called upon Christians to exercise self-reflection and correct
behaviour towards Jews: It is probable that a Christian he will meet in everyday
life in trade and other areas does not sufficiently present the Masters character
and therefore, is unable to break down the wall of ignorance and suspicion. In the
course of our visits, we have seen with pleasure in many places excellent relationships between Protestants and Jews where there were no traces of anti-Semitism.
But how many times this good relationship is the common feeling of two minorities
in overcoming the same difficulties. I wonder if there is any of the Christian feeling
toward a fellowman or whether it is a polite tolerance of each others religious beliefs
characterising 20th century - Gyrgy Knight emphasised in his writing. He closed
it with encouragement to exercise tolerance, Christian spirit and love.40 Gyrgy
Knight also discussed the issue of the Jewish mission in his writing Why is the Scottish Christian school attractive to the Jewish people? In it he rejected anti-Semitism.
He underlined free will, free of any constraints as the secret of the success of the
Scottish mission school he led, which can by no means be reconciled with antiSemitism: Why is the Scottish Christian school so attractive to the Jewish people?
The answer is that they know the school is fully based on Christian principles and
anti-Semitism is banned from it. They also know that in this school nobody would be
forced to convert. Many grateful parents have already said thank you to the school
for the good religious education provided for their children, which was beneficial to
their character.41
The next article has the most negative approach of all press materials reviewed
dealing with the Jewish issue again in a political-ideological context. Lszl Keresz39 Gyrgy Knight: Csehszlovkiai utazsunk nhny benyomsa. [Some impressions from our travels in Czechoslovakia.] Reformtus Egyhz s Iskola [Protestant Church and School]. 1937. Vol. 17, issue 21, 4.
40 To close the writing he called for tolerance, Christian spirit and love to be exercised by Protestants towards the
Jews: This was the question we asked ourselves when we were among you. And therefore, we decided
to ask the Church to approach its Jewish neighbours in the name of Jesus in their loving spirit and with
the devotion given to us in Jesus. We would not like to see a separate mission in Ruthenia but we would
like if each Christian were the mirror image of Christ in the eyes of his Jewish neighbours. Gyrgy Knight:
Csehszlovkiai utazsunk nhny benyomsa. [Some impressions from our travels in Czechoslovakia.] Reformtus Egyhz s Iskola [Protestant Church and School] 1937. Vol. 17, issue 21, 5. At the same time, he
called attention to facing the difficulties of the future and to presenting a proper stance by the Protestant Church
in the Republic: Should God give courage and wisdom to the Protestant Church to face all the specific
challenges it will face and I wish the Good should have the strongest power in the Republic. Op.cit. p. 5
41 Gyrgy Knight, Scottish pastor: A Skt Misszi ma. [The Scottish Mission today.] Reformtus Egyhz s
Iskola [Protestant Church and School]. 1937. Vol. 17, issue 30, 2.
CEC_konyv.indd 281
281
2016.06.10. 8:37:16
Churches Holocaust
tury in his article on Dr. brahm Kuyper, Protestant theologian also spoke about
Dr Kuypers article Liberals and Jews, which work clearly placed Christianity above
Jewry and made it appear in the context of liberal ideology.42 Kuyper represented a
radical view in his writing saying that the current danger is not in the Jews embracing liberalism but in the liberals becoming fully Jewish. In addition, he also emphasised that isolation is one of the main problems of Jews: [] Despite reform efforts and different existing religious lines, the Jewish community is a strictly closed
group, which - as a result of its spiritual impact on liberalism - provides the groups
efforts with a kind of fanatic character fully antagonistic to Christ.43 He pointed out
at the same time that Christians have an obligation to show an example to Jews and
to prove that spiritually they are above them: We have no possibility to drive the
Jews into some better direction. [] The only behaviour appropriate to a Christian
vis-a-vis the Jewish community is to compete with them in ethical earnestness; to
show that spiritually we are above them; to missionize them with our love, words
and help. said Kuyper. The author (Keresztury) - despite the above - defended Dr
brahm Kuyper at the end of the article saying Kuyper was a Protestant Christian
and could not be anti-Semitic. He believed the Jews will have a part to play in building Gods country in the future.44
In 1938, several articles related to Jews were published in the Protestant
press. In them the so-termed Jewish issue and the related problems were present
with more and more emphasis.45 The first article by Kroly Garamvlgyi on a text
by R. H. Markham was launched with a different topic with the title How do foreign
papers write about us.46 The article described the position of the Jews in Munkcs
(Mukacevo) in an extremely negative attitude. The ironic writing emphasised the
conservative behaviour and habits of the Jews in Sub-Carpathia: In Munkcs our
guide said there were 24 synagogues. They and the Jews visiting them provide
the city with an oriental touch. There, in the heart of Europe you can feel being in
Baghdad or in Jerusalem. Thousands and thousands of boys and youth wear earlocks, foreign wide-brimmed hats and ugly black suits while countless priests wear
caftans, fur hats and other characteristic paraphernalia.47 The article also under-
42 Keresztury: Dr. brahm Kuyper. 1837-1920. Reformtus Egyhz s Iskola [Protestant Church and School].
1937. Vol. 17, issue 48, 3.
43 Op.cit. 3.
44 Op.cit. 3
45 The origin of the Jewish issue goes back to the destruction of the Jewish state (A.D. 70). Since the Jewish
community got dispersed in the world, the lack of their connecting into the normal business life often gave rise
to enmity against them. Pogroms occurred against them among others in Spain then in Russia, etc. In Hungary,
anti-Semitism advanced from the end of the 1800s, when Jews started to be discriminated also politically. More
on the topic, cf.: Kislexikon. [Small Encyclopaedia] http://www.kislexikon.hu/zsidokerdes.html
46 Kroly Garamvlgyi: Hogyan rnak rlunk a klfldi lapok? [How do foreign papers write about us?] Reformtus
Egyhz s Iskola [Protestant Church and School]. 1938, Vol. 18 issue 2, 5.
47 Op.cit.
282
CEC_konyv.indd 282
2016.06.10. 8:37:16
by Ildik Bajcsi
lined that the Jewish religion cannot be popular and attractive to people because
it fails to adapt to the reality of everyday life with its Orthodox behaviour: But the
holy places are not really spectacular. They are dirty, neglected, crumbling and
old. In most synagogues there are very old books written in a language not spoken
any longer. There is very little connection of those texts and the grey events of everyday life. They are the most fanatic Jews, they stick painfully to their ceremonies
but they are highly different from their forefather: Jacob. The religion of Munkcs
makes life smooth but it kills progress.48 On the other hand, it should be noted
that the article did not only emphasise the negative features of Jewry but it also
condemned the Roman Catholic and the Orthodox churches as opposed to the
Protestant Church.49 So - similarly to previous articles also discussed above - this
article also advertised the superiority of the Protestant Christian Church compared
to other religions including the Jewish religion.
The next article published in 1938 carried the title Is there a Jewish issue? in
the paper Reformtus Egyhz s Iskola [Protestant Church and School], in which
it spoke about the negative attitude towards Jews in a neighbouring country - probably in Hungary. Regarding the church papers of the country, it criticised that he
could not read even one article in them discussing the Jewish issue from a Christian perspective and displaying the stance of Protestants clearly. At the same time,
with regard to the Christian attitude towards Jews, the article presented the Dutch
Protestants as an example, who did not force their Jewish fellowmen to convert
but testified of Christ with their life: The Dutch never force them to become Christians, still they had become ones because they had noticed in the Dutch that they
had had something in their faith that had been more than theirs. The life of Protestant Dutch men could become a guiding light for them and so they recognised the
path to salvation, they recognised Christ.50 Next, the article criticised the attitude
of Hungarian Protestants towards the Jews and called upon the Protestant Church
to exercise self-criticism. He said Hungarian Protestants had never done much for
a real conversion of the Jews: We also have members of our church who used to
be Jews. And if we complain about them saying that many of them are not true Protestants and true Christians, then we should place our hands on our hearts and ask
ourselves whether we have been examples for them with our God-fearing life with
a strong light; whether they are the only reasons why they have not yet learnt Christ
truly. Did they have to see that the life of Protestant Christians is a life higher than
48 Op.cit.
49 These churches in fact cannot lead their followers who are struggling for a better life. And if the people in
their misery look for leaders, they have to find them outside the church. This is a terrible reality of Europe.
If the churches want to overcome dictators they have to serve the masses more faithfully. That is the only
way. Op.cit.
50 Sndor goston: Van-e zsidkrds. [Is there a Jewish issue.] Reformtus Egyhz s Iskola [Protestant
Church and School]. 1938. Vol. 18, issue 21, 1.
CEC_konyv.indd 283
283
2016.06.10. 8:37:16
Churches Holocaust
theirs in spirit?51 The article also emphasised that the discrimination of converted
Jews is present inside the Protestant Church. He also underlined that making such
difference is not correct and called for tolerance and total acceptance of Jews: If
we could have a census counting how many of original Protestants are truly Christs
children and how many of the converted Jews are Christs children, whether this
figure would shift the balance to the benefit of original Protestants? Now, let us raise
the question again: is there truly a Jewish issue you have to face and you have to
solve? All Protestant people should raise the question: how many fellowmen I have
gained from Christ with my God-fearing life? That is the question [].52
The next article also published in Reformtus Egyhz s Iskola [Protestant
Church and School] discussed in a similar tone that as for the conversion of Jews,
it is not the efforts for assimilation that is important but the command of the Gospel.
The article discussing the address given by bishop Dr Lszl Ravasz at the Upper
House said the Christian Church can never give up its mission towards the Jewry
and that command. [] The Christian Church will never give up its missionary command for the sake of any popular racial theories. At the same time, the Christian
Church must emphasise that it is not led by the laws of assimilation in its struggle
to win over the souls but by the command of the eternal Gospel. We do not baptise
a soul to let him assimilate to a club but to encourage him to assimilate to Christ.53
Next he discussed the motivation of the Jews conversion is very important. Here,
he most probably made reference to the high rate of Jews converting at the time,
which often did not happen out of religious belief but in the interest of assimilation.
In the end, he suggested the Christian churches should show wise moderation in
accepting the Jews. We do have a sufficient number of bad Christians from among
our own members, why should we import a large number from among our Jewish
fellowmen?54
The next article was published under the title Community Work. The ORLE
Conference in Debrecen. Again, you should quote the address given by bishop
Lszl Ravasz from the writing in which he again emphasised the importance of the
Jewish mission.55 In his address promoting self-reflexion and quite strict with regard
to Protestants, he advised Jesus said: Go and render all peoples your disciples
[] on that basis we cannot exclude any people from that task. Therefore, the Prot-
51 Op.cit.
52 Op.cit.
53 Keresztynysg s a zsid krds. [Christianity and the Jewish issue.] Reformtus Egyhz s Iskola [Protestant Church and School]. 1938, Vol. 18 issue 24, 7.
54 Op.cit.
55 Zoltn Csomr: GYLEKEZETI MUNKA. A debreceni ORLE konferencia. [COMMUNITY WORK. The ORLE
Conference in Debrecen.] Reformtus Egyhz s Iskola [Protestant Church and School]. 1938, Vol. 18 issue 39, 5.
284
CEC_konyv.indd 284
2016.06.10. 8:37:16
by Ildik Bajcsi
estant Church would never give up the Jewish mission. Anyway, the Jews would not
be such a problem seeming to be insolvable if we had been such Christians as we
should have been.56 He closed his address as follows: You cannot deny there is a
Jewish issue, but you need clear vision and love to solve it.57
An article connecting the topic of Jews with the issue of minority Hungarians
was published in February 1938 under the title The interest of the world in the paper sszefogs [Unity].58 The writing mentioning the political changes in Romania
expresses worry regarding the new leadership. What happened was that the King
had appointed the head of the Romanian National Christian Party Goga Octavian
to lead the country. The new Prime Minister was known of his friendship with Italy
and Germany. The article expressed the worry felt by the Protestant Church with
regard to the Jews following the new local leadership of a national line in Romania.
However, the worry was mostly focused on fears felt for minority Hungarians: The
decree on servants is worrying, because it will not only hit the Jews but its effects
will be felt by Hungarians as well. It has been forbidden that Jewish families employ
Christian servant girls younger than 40 years of age. The measure is especially
harmful for the Sekler Land where the soil is quite poor. Sekler servant girls going
to faraway lands to serve could make up for the income missing from the yield of
the land. Now, this decree on servants will suddenly deprive Seklers from this safe
source of income. The new Romanian government announced national elections
will be held at the end of March and so we can only expect the current disturbing
and uncertain Romanian situation to be clarified after them.59
Summary
In the Czechoslovak Republic, discriminative type solutions and open anti-Semitism
similar to those in Hungary could not be found in public life. This, however, does not
mean that the society was characterised by full tolerance towards the Jewish community. It was not possible simply because Slovakia seceded from the Kingdom of
56 Op.cit.
57 Op.cit.
58 Sz. n.: A vilg rdekldse. [The interest of the world.] sszefogs, [Unity] February 1938 1. 2.
59 In this regard the situation is quite confusing today and we do not know what the future will bring. The
Hungarian national minority is looking at the new Romanian government torn between worries and confidence. We cannot know today the Transylvanian paper Magyar Np (Hungarian People) is writing - what
the future will bring. Anyway there are some symptoms causing worry to Hungarians, but there are some
signs offering confidence. Sz. n.: A vilg rdekldse. [The interest of the world.] sszefogs, [Unity] February 1938 1. 2.
CEC_konyv.indd 285
285
2016.06.10. 8:37:17
Churches Holocaust
Hungary in 1918, where political anti-Semitism had been present already from the
early 1800s. This is proved by the anti-Jewish riots happening in the Slovak areas
immediately after the establishment of the Republic. The picture is further tainted
because multi-ethnic Czechoslovakia considered providing the Jews with different
rights mainly in order to reduce the number of minorities; so from this point of view,
the Jewish issue was subordinate to the German and Hungarian issue in Czechoslovakia.
Nevertheless, we have to emphasise the positive impact of the minority fate of
Hungarians and Jews in Czechoslovakia after 1918 as well as a more liberal line of
the Protestant Church towards the Jews, which contributed to the popularity of the
Hungarian National Party mostly consisting of Protestants among the Jews living in
Southern Slovakia. All the above explains why there were no openly anti-Semitic
articles in the Hungarian Protestant press in Czechoslovakia in the inter-war period.
On the other hand, the low number of such articles reveals a neutral attitude towards the topic.
While in articles published in the 1920s the Jews mostly appeared in connection with Bolshevism in an ideological-political context, in the 1930s they were
mentioned in quite different contexts. Most articles spoke about the problems of the
conversion of Jews becoming more and more topical. Although the articles were
not antagonistic to Jews and they condemned forceful assimilation, they pointed out
several times that they considered Christian ideology and their own church superior
to Jews. Later articles also emphasised the negative aspects of the conversion of
Jews, questioning their sincere faith in Christianity.
So, an open and unambiguous discrimination of Jews was not present in
the Hungarian Protestant press in Czechoslovakia in the inter-war period, nevertheless a kind of ambivalence was prevalent all the time and latent anti-Semitism can be
discovered in some writings to a certain extent.
In the second half of the 1930s, as a result of political events, the number of
articles increased and they dealt with the Jewish issue in an international context.
However, the main grounds for their worries were the problems of Christianity and
those of the minority Hungarians and the fate of the Jews were considered secondary in that respect.
286
CEC_konyv.indd 286
2016.06.10. 8:37:17
by Ildik Bajcsi
Bibliography
Bla Angyal: rdekvdelem s nszervezds. Fejezetek a csehszlovkiai magyar
prtpolitika trtnetbl 1918-1938 [Interest representation and self-organisation. Chapters from the history of Hungarian party politics in Czechoslovakia
1918-1938]. Frum Intzet. Lilium Aurum Knyvkiad. Galnta-Dunaszerdahely.
Ildik Bajcsi: A kisebbsgi magyar elitek szervezdse s az ifjsgi mozgalmak a kt
vilghbor kztti Csehszlovkiban. (Vzlat a kisebbsgtrtnet genercis
s biogrfiai interpretcis lehetsgeirl) [The organisations of minority Hungarian elites and youth movements in Czechoslovakia in the inter-war period.
(Draft on the generational and biographical interpretation opportunities of minority history)]
Ildik Bajcsi: lovek a spolonos. 2014/2. http://www.clovekaspolocnost.sk/
sk/rocnik-17-rok-2014/2/studie-a-clanky/a-kisebbsegi-magyar-elitek-szervezodese-es-az-ifjusagi-mozgalmak-a-ket-vilaghaboru-kozotti-csehszlovakiaban-vazlat-a-kisebbsegtortenet-generacios-es-biografiai-interpretacios-lehetosegeirol/
ermkov, Radka: eskoslovensk republika Nov tt ve stedn evrop a
id. In: Soukupov, Blanka Zahradnkov, Marie (ed.): idovsk menina v
eskoslovensku ve dvactych letech. idovsk mzeum v Prahe. Praha, 2003.
Zoltn Fnod: A cseh/szlovkiai magyar irodalom lexikona 1918-1995 [bibliography of the Hungarian literature in Czecho/Slovakia 1918-1995] Madch-Posonium, Pozsony, 1995.
Small Encyclopaedia: http://www.kislexikon.hu/
Endre Kovcs: Korszakvlts. [A turning point of history.] Magvet Knyvkiad, Budapest, 1981.
va Kovcs: Disszimilci, zsid azonossgtudat, regionlis identits Szlovkiban
[Dissimilation, Jewish identity, regional identity in Slovakia ] (19201938) Regio Kisebbsgtudomnyi Szemle. 1991/2. http://epa.oszk.
hu/00000/00036/00006/pdf/03.pdf
va Kovcs: Felems asszimilci. A kassai zsidsg a kt vilghbor kztt
[Lopsided assimilation. The Jewry of Kassa between the two World Wars]
(1918-1938). Lilium Aurum. Somorja Dunaszerdahely. 2004. http://mek.
oszk.hu/02300/02384/02384.pdf
CEC_konyv.indd 287
287
2016.06.10. 8:37:17
Churches Holocaust
288
CEC_konyv.indd 288
2016.06.10. 8:37:17
by Ildik Bajcsi
Krisztin Ungvry: A Horthy-rendszer mrlege. Diszkriminci, szocilpolitika s antiszemitizmus Magyarorszgon. [The balance of the Horthy regime. Discrimination,
social policy and anti-Semitism in Hungary.] Jelenkor, Pcs-Budapest, 2013.
Magazine articles
Lszl Zajd: Kt knyv a bolsevizmusrl. Szeretet. [Two books on Bolshevism.] 10
May 1926, 5-6.
Lszl Zajd: Kt knyv a bolsevizmusrl. Szeretet. [Two books on Bolshevism.] 25
May 1926, 3 - 4.
Imre Narancsik: Zsidk ttrse. [Jewish conversion] Barti Sz. 1930. Vol. 1, October, 14.
Sz. n.: c. n. Reformtus Egyhz s Iskola [Protestant Church and School]. 1937,
Vol. 17 issue 13, 2.
Sz. n.: A keresztnysg nmetorszgi helyzete. [The position of Christianity in Germany.] Reformtus Egyhz s Iskola [Protestant Church and School]. 1937.
Vol. 17, issue 16, 4-5.
Gyrgy Knight: Csehszlovkiai utazsunk nhny benyomsa. [Some impressions
from our travels in Czechoslovakia.] Reformtus Egyhz s Iskola [Protestant
Church and School]. 1937. Vol. 17, issue 21, 4-5.
Ludendorff s a keresztynsg. [Ludendorff and Christianity] Reformtus Egyhz
s Iskola [Protestant Church and School]. 1937. Vol. 17, issue 22, 7.
Gyrgy Knight, Scottish pastor: A Skt Misszi ma. [The Scottish Mission today.]
Reformtus Egyhz s Iskola [Protestant Church and School]. 1937. Vol. 17,
issue 30, 2.
Keresztury: Dr. Kuyper brahm.1837-1920.Reformtus Egyhz s Iskola [Protestant Church and School]. 1937. Vol. 17, issue 48, 2-3.
Kroly Garamvlgyi: Hogyan rnak rlunk a klfldi lapok? [How do foreign papers
write about us?] Reformtus Egyhz s Iskola [Protestant Church and School].
1938, Vol. 18 issue 2, 5.
CEC_konyv.indd 289
289
2016.06.10. 8:37:17
Churches Holocaust
Sz. n.: A vilg rdekldse. [The interest of the world.] sszefogs, [Unity] February 1938, 1. 2.
Sndor goston: Van-e zsidkrds? [Is there a Jewish issue?]Reformtus Egyhz
s Iskola. [Protestant Church and School] 1938. Vol. 18, issue 21, 1.
Keresztynysg s a zsid krds. [Christianity and the Jewish issue.] Reformtus
Egyhz s Iskola [Protestant Church and School]. 1938. Vol. 18, issue 24 7.
Zoltn Csomr: GYLEKEZETI MUNKA. A debreceni ORLE konferencia. [COMMUNITY WORK. The ORLE Conference in Debrecen.] Reformtus Egyhz s
Iskola [Protestant Church and School]. 1938. Vol. 18, issue 39, p. 5.
290
CEC_konyv.indd 290
2016.06.10. 8:37:17
Andrs Kovcs:
What has anti-Judaism of a religious origin got to do with modern anti-Semitism?
The relationship is far from being unambiguous. In the 19th century following the
Enlightening most writings dealing with the position of Jews and anti-Semitism expected that medieval anti-Judaist prejudices would disappear through emancipation, secularisation, modernisation and urbanisation, because both the religions
and the different denominations would lose the influence they had earlier in the
pre-modern period. And it was partly true. It is quite certain the churches in the
second half of the 19th century did not have a position to define an attitude, a view
on the world that was overall mandatory for the given society, the European societies. Nevertheless, different authors of essays called attention quite early to the
fact that the structure providing the background for medieval anti-Judaism had not
disappeared from politics and society completely, due to several simple reasons.
France had got to the furthest in that regard but only in the early 1900s. It had not
CEC_konyv.indd 291
291
2016.06.10. 8:37:17
Churches Holocaust
happened at all in other places. So, the church institutions and the high clergy
continued to have a major impact.
Another factor was that the ethical principles of modern nation states established in the 19th century were automatically identified with those of the Christian
morals even if it was not taken in a strictly religious but a universal sense. Still,
Christian morals and the categories of modern nation states had been intertwined.
In addition, the traditional medieval and or even older anti-Jewish stereotypes survived. The Jews contrasted with Christianity had become the cosmopolitan Jews
contrasted with the nation. So, the other one was identified in denominational
terms in the Christian Middle Ages, while in the modern age the national terminology
was used. However, its position as the other had remained against which the modern nation or the Christian universalist church existing in symbiosis with the state
identified itself. The former stereotypes also had survived in the everyday life; albeit
in a more secularised sense than before. So, there was a certain type of continuity
between anti-Judaism before the modern age and that in the modern age; however,
it should not follow that the modern anti-Semitism or even modern political antiSemitism should come into being. And it is an important question why it came into
being and how it operated in the different countries. But I do not want to talk about
that, historians did talk a lot about it, but what I want to discuss is how it is today.
How much are the old type anti-Judaist religious prejudices live in society and how
it relates to the modern anti-Semitism we can see today.
In the course of a number of sociological studies from 1995 till 2013 I always
asked the representative sample of the Hungarian adult population two questions.
The questions started: Do you agree or do you disagree and I listed a number of
statements. Two of the questions were clearly related to religion-based anti-Judaism.
One of them asked? Do you agree or disagree with the statement that the crucifixion
of Jesus is the Jews unforgivable sin? and the other: Do you agree or disagree with
the statement that the sufferings of the Jewry were Gods punishment for it?
It is really interesting how the distribution of the answers was stable practically from
1995 to 2013. 15-20% of the Hungarian adult population about one fifth - agreed with
the first statement, i.e. the crucifixion of Jesus is the Jews unforgivable sin. And practically the same was the answer to the second question, i.e. the suffering of the Jewry
was Gods punishment. So, that means that about 20 percent of the adult population of
Hungary today still have quite traditional religion-based anti-Judaist prejudices,
It is also quite telling to investigate who are those that accept the prejudices
more. Here, naturally, certain characteristic features as to social position, age and
place of residence can be found.
292
CEC_konyv.indd 292
2016.06.10. 8:37:17
It is also quite interesting how this is related to statements of modern antiSemitism. For instance, there were statements in the studies, Intellectuals of Jewish descent have control over the press and culture - and about 30 percent agreed
with that. There is a secret Jewish collaboration that identifies the political and
economic processes again agreement was over 30 percent in 2013. About 8-14
percent agreed with the hardest statement, It would be best if the Jews emigrated
from this country. But they were not necessarily the same who had accepted the
anti-Judaist statements. You have to imagine it as two triangles, one standing with its
peak down and the other with its peak up. And then lets say the triangle covering those in agreement with the different anti-Judaist statements is the triangle with
its peak up and the other one, with its peak down, comprises of all in agreement
with the secular, political or secular anti-Semitism, and the two triangles will of
course - have a common set.
Andrs Kovcs:
Well, I might have said a pyramid then, because it is in space anyway. So, there is a
common set where those asked mostly agree with both types of questions and it is
part of both types of statements. We can say there are about 10 percent of people
in Hungary today in whose minds the two types of anti-Semitism that of the religion
based and the secular are strongly related.
Who are those people? It has been an interesting finding of our research that
not mainly the strictly religious ones. Among them the number of those agreeing with
such statements is not significantly higher. But it is among those who say of themselves they are not very religious, or they are not religious but they attend church
quite regularly. So, our findings indicate that the acceptance of such statements is
not so much dependent on the intensity of religious belief but on the frequency of
attending church service, which on the other hand indicates that something is
happening there that should happen differently.
CEC_konyv.indd 293
293
2016.06.10. 8:37:18
Churches Holocaust
Andrs Kovcs:
It depends. Do you mean what it means to us or what is usually meant by it?
What I mean by it is historically well defined. In fact, something termed the
Jewish issue arose in the 19th century after the emancipation. It started from stating
the Jews had been accepted in the majority societies, but the Jews abused this
and took hold of positions they had not been entitled to, that could not be legitimate
or accepted morally. And the actual Jewish issue is how the Jews opportunities
should be limited hindering them from holding those positions, say, with legislation, i.e. numerus clausus. That was termed the Jewish issue. Later on the process
started to develop linguistically in every direction, so a lot of things are meant by it
nowadays. But that was the historical Jewish issue.
And to solve the Jewish issue means the Jews must be pushed out of the
positions they had taken abusing the emancipation in their pushy and immoral way.
Tams Kodcsy:
For me, the relationship of anti-Judaism and anti-Semitism is expressed from a theological point of what is the relationship of the Church and Israel. It is an extremely
exciting topic which is indicated by us not speaking about it at all. It is, we can say,
a taboo. How the Christian church or the Reformed church relates to the state of
Israel also defines our identity.
In his doctoral thesis, Istvn Tatai1 introduces theology before and after the
Holocaust. The model as the church identified itself through its relationship with Israel. I am quoting from that now, which is also a sign of the ambiguity of this historical
situation. What I am quoting is no other than the 1990 declaration by the Synod, the
highest clerical organisation of the Hungarian Reformed Church on its relationship
1 Tatai, Istvn: Az Egyhz s Izrael. Korrelcis modellkeress a posztholokauszt-teolgiban. (The Church
and Israel. Doctoral thesis. (Missziolgiai tanulmnyok), Harmat Klvin KMTI, Budapest, 2010.
294
CEC_konyv.indd 294
2016.06.10. 8:37:18
with the Jewry. The document repeats the apologies of the 1949 Reformed Free
Council saying, Under the burden of responsibility because of the negligence and
sins committed against the Jewry, albeit late, we ask the Jewry of Hungary to forgive
us before God. It is an official document and what I want to quote is not the ...
Remark:
What Bishop Ravasz immediately banned and withdrew...
Tams Kodcsy:
Yes, that was in 1949 and the Reformed Synod brought it up again in 1990. I want
to open my contribution with that apology. Let me add that the part played by Bishop
Ravasz shows the odd situation we are struggling with. He voted for the first and the
second anti-Jewish Acts but rejected the third. And it is also telling how he voted
for them. He practically took sides with the first while he criticised the second and
voted for it saying you cannot do otherwise due to foreign political reasons. There
you can feel how the church had been made prisoner and what his personality was,
i.e. he could not say no to it that is how I understand it at least, but he did say no
to the third one.
In addition, you can list people and communities such as Gza Soos or Jzsef
lis or the Good Pastor community or the Scottish Mission who were actively saving Jews. For instance, the Auschwitz protocol we learnt what was happening in
Auschwitz from had got out of Poland via Gza Soos.
But those will not exempt us. I can only repeat that belated apology and ask
what is it that most hinders us, why is it a taboo.
In his book Istvn Tatai describes the models that in my opinion are more exciting and more powerful from a theological point of view. I believe we have not taken
account of how much that theology had played a part in the anti-Semitism leading
up to where those things could happen. So, I think the part played by anti-Judaism
and the theological models arising out of anti-Judaism were key in the evolution of
anti-Semitism. The decisive model as Istvn Tatai says is a model of substitution, which means the Church regards itself as the heir of Israel. Israel is declining,
Israel has been destroyed, and all the promises given to Israel have been inherited
CEC_konyv.indd 295
295
2016.06.10. 8:37:18
Churches Holocaust
by one entity: the Christian church. In that sense, the church has substituted itself
as the people of the Old Testament and has created its own image of Israel. In that,
the federation or covenant-theology model advertised by Calvin and the Protestant
tradition is that the Church had been present much longer than Israel, and God had
called upon the Church before the beginning of time and had called upon the chosen people. But there had been a little time from Abraham till Jesus when the inheritance had been in the hands of the Jewry. That was the model of the covenant.
And it depicted an idea in which not only anti-Jewishness was really dangerous but
also as Ive put it jealousy. The kind of jealousy saying that something has been
given to us and there must be something which means the people chosen is the
only one. I am emphasising this, because it is one of the most powerful motivations
of anti-Semitism today. So, we substitute ourselves; there is a God of Hungarians,
a God of a people, of a nation, and it grants us the feeling of being the only chosen one. No other nation can find a place there, so the God of Hungarians is just
for the Hungarians. And let us add another image Gyula Lszl has discovered
this in Hungarian myths the myth of the youngest son, i.e. this land has been
given us and we do have a legend to go with it. We do not notice that every nation
around us also have their own white horses. That kind of a national God is a very
powerful image carrying the idea of being the only one chosen. And although that
substitutional model has collapsed Tatais book also speaks about that it is still
alive latently. By the way, a German theologian of the Reformed Church Karl Barth
played the greatest role in its collapse. He - before the war was using the substitutional model. But after the Holocaust and mainly after the state of Israel was
established he said the substitution did not work any longer. So, he lifted Israel out
of the substitution and said it had its own right to salvation. Israel has a road to salvation, which is presented in a powerful Protestant doctrine of predestination. The
essence of it is that there is no reason for being chosen, it will not happen through
acts or merit, and that is why we emphasise Gods sovereign power in it, as Calvin
did. So, we cannot influence Him, He is beyond influencing and in that, in His omnipotence, Israel has its peculiar well defined place in salvation. Barth is the first to
say no to the Jewish mission.
The Jewish mission is an exciting question, because if we have our own religion and ours is the only one leading to salvation, then we must lead everybody to
Christ. This, in fact, means the total negation of a Jewish identity. Barth is the first to
say the Jewish mission makes no sense. He says it out of humility, because there is
nothing we can say to them. What is possible is what we can learn from them.
The last two things are the model of separation dividing the two. It is important
because the idea of two separate paths is currently quite strong in the USA.
296
CEC_konyv.indd 296
2016.06.10. 8:37:18
Istvn Tatai, on the other hand, has a nice model built on paradoxes. It is the
model of the olive tree, where he does not want to decide the question and I agree
with him. We do not only have to look at this from the past but also from the direction
of the end of times. How Israel achieves bliss, how we all will be together in the new
Jerusalem of the Heavens, how we get in there, who will allow whom to go in front
and how that whole thing will be erected is a secret it is difficult to speak of; and he
describes it in paradoxes based on the Epistle to the Romans.
Lszl Donth:
I am extremely grateful to Tams Kodcsy for having said all that, because I would
have said with eyes downcast that it is a brutal story beginning from Saint John Golden mouth, Saint Augustin or even from the Apostle Paul. Not so long ago I had to
preach on a text by the Apostle Paul, which had me cornered. But, fortunately, there
is a category called the self-loathing Jew. And I would rather join Andrs Kovcs and
would not go back two thousand years, not even five hundred years although I do
feel satisfaction that the Lutheran Church in Hungary of mostly minority i.e. Slovak
and German origin is celebrating the five hundredth anniversary of the beginning
of the Reformation in 1517 by publishing a number of sources including writings
by Luther never translated from the Latin or German that leave no doubt as to what
kind of mentality and way of thinking characterised the Reformer. I, who consider
myself partly a Transylvanian Saxon, acknowledge with pleasure that although my
minority has disappeared from Transylvania and has never got to the point of being
reconciled with either the Hungarians or the Jews not to mention the Romanians
now so, all in all, it does have a peculiar dimension that the late descendants of
the German minority in Hungary, if they are Lutherans at all, are trying to face all that
at least five hundred years after. It is bizarre, really bizarre. Professor Kardy has a
number of texts on the history of the Fasori Grammar School vis a vis the Budapest
Jews; they belong together.
But what I have been referring to recently is not simply what is happening today, but the composition of the pericope order. So, if I slap a child a lot, he will
become aggressive after a time. And he is right; he should become aggressive,
he should not allow his idiotic father or another adult to hit him. If I always find texts
with which I can incite my followers who are otherwise meek and good against
the Jews, they will be made anti-Semites in time. There is something creepy in that.
Tams Kodcsy is wrong when he is trying to defend poor Lszl Ravasz. I am
quite happy to have known the elderly bishop at an age of mine when I could not
CEC_konyv.indd 297
297
2016.06.10. 8:37:18
Churches Holocaust
have asked him why he felt the need to justify himself again in his memoirs written in
the early 1960s. Remorse is a serious thing. Through those memoirs published in
Hungarian in Basle by the European Protestant Hungarian Open University Lszl
Ravasz had to face again and again the dread linked to his name and his congregation. Furthermore, I must think we are speaking here of a person of such weight no
Lutheran could come up to. Because what we are speaking about here is the filth
canonized by the most significant thinker of Hungarian Protestants in the 20th century. Things of much heavier weight had to be happening here.
And now, let me respond to the Barth issue in a brief sentence. Whenever I
was in Basle, I always passed by the prison. Actually, I went inside once, since I
could as a MP. Karl Barth must also have been forced by remorse so that he did not
want to preach to any other men but to prisoners after 1945. I think it was a symbolic, almost prophetic gesture by one of the most significant Protestant thinkers of
the 20th century, since the Shoa has proved that the Christian sermons of two thousand years have failed. They have failed completely; there is no more to be done.
My answer to the question what is the Jewish issue? is I have to do all I can to
encourage the remains of the Jewry I can find about to be Jewish while fully respecting individual freedom rights, the choice of identity, ideology, etc. Because as long
as they exist as Jews I can more or less imagine what it means to be a Christian. If
there is no Jewry, I am finished - measuring myself against pagan Christianity and I
will get to where so many Christians did with Karl Barth and Lszl Ravasz in the
lead i.e. they were aware of what is good, what they should have done and still
they did not do it.
My last sentence should be linked to the memory of a Lutheran pastor. Gbor
Sztehlo was a gentle man of a benign soul. He did not argue with bishops or teachings or anything. He did what his job was, he saved children. Well then, the war ended. And he had to look into the eyes of those who made him do what he did. They
also looked him in the eye. And contrary to the statement, they did not apologise either to him or to the Jews or to anybody. On the contrary, as he had been witness to
their sin and shame, they tried to segregate him as much as possible. This can now
be proved easily. I think it was one of the greatest sins of Bishop Lajos Ordass who
was celebrated by the Hungarian Lutheran Church as a martyr for a long time not
so much any longer but even in the early 1990s. In a theological sense, not politically or morally. In a theological sense. For while he changed his name from Wolf to
Ordass (wolf in Hungarian) in 1944, he did not apologise to Gbor Sztehlo. Since
he did not commit any actual crimes, he simply approved the operation of the set
of church institutions that had led to where it did. So much about the Jewish issue.
298
CEC_konyv.indd 298
2016.06.10. 8:37:18
Viktor Kardy:
I would like to continue the train of thought commenced by the two theologians, i.e.
the peculiar position of the Protestant churches in the ideological space in which
the anti-Semitism of the modern age had grown leading to the Holocaust in the end.
It is difficult to generalise but I think it is still possible to a certain extent. Of
course, I should list a huge amount of historical and church-historical facts and patterns, but I will be brief. I have to say in the history of the modern age the secular
type of anti-Semitism appeared earlier, as Andrs Kovcs accurately remarked. It
has a concrete date. The concept of anti-Semitism has been with us since 1879.
Although it had turned up earlier as well, it found its place in the public discourse in
1879.
When that happened, the fundamental stance of the different churches on the
Jews in the contemporary European space was different everywhere, and I daresay
there was a certain order in their differences. The main question there was how
much secularisation and related to it modernisation was accepted in every field,
namely in a spiritual field.
The response given to the question by the Catholic Church was at first militant
refusal, later refusal but less militant, still, a negative one, never accepting.
The Protestant churches although to different degrees in the different countries were more willing to accept.
Behind that, or in that acceptance, there was a factor related to the Jewry.
The integration and acceptance of Jews in the Protestant countries was in general
easier and smoother it is difficult to speak in generalities in this regard since Germany was the big exception.
France was a borderline case, because Protestantism in France had traditionally been pro-Jewish. It is so much well known that in the 20th century the antiJudaist ideologies usually also attacked the Reformed, i.e. the Protestants. Both
the Protestants, the Jews and the Freemasons were regarded as globally despised
and stigmatised aliens.
In Central Europe the separation, i.e. the differences of attitude between Catholics, the Catholic clergy and the Protestants and the Protestant clergy were not so
expressed, although we can find examples when they had become obvious. Such
was, for instance, when the Hungarian church policy laws were being voted on at
CEC_konyv.indd 299
299
2016.06.10. 8:37:18
Churches Holocaust
the end of the 19th century: the Catholic clergy and the Catholic members of the Upper House clearly rejected them while the Protestants accepted them. So, you can
find here quasi-borderline cases when the two attitudes were opposed. This is in
strong correlation with anti-Semitism. It does not mean there was no anti-Semitism
in the Protestant churches, but it was more carefully hidden and explained away,
and there were a number of non-anti-Semitic acts even institutionally. A good example of that is that more Jewish children attended Protestant schools, they were
admitted as a rule and it had continued right until the Holocaust.
On the other hand, the Catholic secondary schools in the inter-war period
rejected Jews almost completely. I have counted; altogether four Jewish students
were admitted in all the Catholic schools of Budapest after 1920 except for the
Piarist Grammar School that had always had a few (two-three-four) Jewish students.
In essence, segregation was complete, which did not exist with the Protestants.
Naturally, it is a complex issue as all systems are. If you study the school system, you have to make a difference between local school markets where there was
a range of offers, i.e. you could attend a Protestant, a Catholic or a state school or
at least two kinds of schools, and those where there was not like at Kaposvr, Pannonhalma or Ppa, where no segregation could be exercised.
Nevertheless, and that is why I cited Budapest figures, hard segregation was
evident at places where there was a choice. It was much less evident in the case of
Protestants. So much so and let us speak about hard facts when a ministerial
decree introduced numerus clausus in secondary education as well in 1939, the
Lutheran grammar school simply neglected it for years. Then in around 1943-1944
it started to observe it.
It should be justified to study the relationship to modernity and a marked carrier of that modernity, the Jewry, in more detail where you can find actual facts. For
instance, what was said in sermons or what was voiced in clerical discourse related
to the Jewry.
Another form of modernity was ideological in which Freemasonry had a part
to play. The question here is ideological modernisation which had become a major topic of anti-Semitism saying that the Jews, the Communists and the Socialists
were the carriers of subversive ideas. What is the truth and what is its relation to the
churches? It also raises the issue of secularisation as well and you should consider
several things here. One is what differences were there in the different churches
related to secularisation or how much they accepted it? There are a lot of issues to
be studied beginning from the schools: how much the schools, the school curricula
300
CEC_konyv.indd 300
2016.06.10. 8:37:18
or the different types of schools had become modernised; another issue was mixed
marriages, how those were treated. We do have quite accurate statistical figures
of that now. For instance, how much a preliminary marriage contract, termed the
reversal, was required? There were major differences between Catholic and Protestant mixed marriages particularly related to mixed marriages with Jews.
Another topic that could be discussed is suicide and its treatment.
There are quite concrete documents in different areas of social history indicating that Catholicism accepted the signs of secularisation slower and with more difficulties than the Protestants. It is, of course, a generalisation, and you should look
into the facts both in terms of localities and circumstances.
And then we have a topic here that I think has been a taboo in Hungary,
never explicitly mentioned but you can find traces of it in clerical texts: i.e. Catholicism was the ruling church. It was clearly so in France where the Protestant
churches were minority ones persecuted in the age of the counter-reformation.
Their fate could be interpreted as a kind of Jewish fate, at least in a certain historical
period. So, there are here some hidden analogies and hidden relationships proving
the Protestant Church had a different attitude towards the Jews than the Catholic
Church.
Finally, you should study the behaviour of Unitarians before and during the Holocaust. As far as I know, the Unitarian Church never voted for the anti-Jewish laws.
CEC_konyv.indd 301
301
2016.06.10. 8:37:18
Churches Holocaust
It seems to me nobody has even mentioned that Hitler was a pagan not only
anti-church and a racist but anti-religion as well.
Attila Jakab has said the Catholic Church went hand in hand with the antiSemitic government politics. It voted against the third act on racial protection (which
was, in fact, the fourth), but it voted for all the rest of twenty-one laws. Particularly
the Act on land ownership and let me give an example from Pannonhalma again
which had rendered the appropriation of Jewish land not only possible but obligatory. In the course of my studies of churches I have not found any officers, priests
or high clergy of the Catholic Church that did not take part in the redistribution of
property taken away from the Jews and let me mention Veszprm in this regard.
However, they did take action against the racial idea, against the Arrow Cross
party followers. They followed the thoughts of Pope Pius XI expressed in his letter
addressed to the German bishops at Easter 1937 in which he strongly criticised
nationalism, anti-Semitism and the racial theory.
I was quite happy with the criticism of Professor Robert Paxton3. Not so long
ago, last year if I remember well, he insisted in another article that Vichy had made
the situation of French Jews worse. He has never written a word on how come
75 percent of French Jews survived the Holocaust with the help of the Catholic
Church, the bishops, arch-bishops and everybody else, while over 60 percent of
the Hungarian Jews were killed. Lszl Ravasz, by the way, became one of the pioneers of actions to save Jews in 1944, but how much had he done to make a significant part of Hungarians anti-Semitic. Still, his role in 1944 was not ambiguous, it
was clearly positive. But that of Cardinal Serdi was clearly negative.
Viktor Kardy:
A few sentences on that symbolically important issue whether or not the numerus clausus was indeed the first anti-Jewish act. I think it was at least for two obvious reasons.
On the one hand, because it qualified the Jewry, a religious community, as a race. And
the other, even more important reason is that the second anti-Jewish act in 1939 set
exactly the same quota restricting the Jewish intellectuals progress in society and the
economy that had been set by the numerus clausus in its time restricting the reproduction of the intelligentsia and the middle classes. Exactly the same: six percent.
3 Marrus, Michael R. Paxton, Robert O.: Vichy France and the Jews. With a new Foreword by Stanley
Hoffmann, Stanford University Press, Stanford (California), 1995. French edition: Vichy et les Juifs, CalmannLvy, Paris, 2015.
302
CEC_konyv.indd 302
2016.06.10. 8:37:19
4 Romsics, Ignc: A 20. szzadi Magyarorszg, (Hungary in the 20th century) in ibid (ed.): Magyarorszg
trtnete, (The history of Hungary) Akadmiai Kiad, Budapest, 20102, pp. 773-958.
CEC_konyv.indd 303
303
2016.06.10. 8:37:19
Churches Holocaust
To end, I would like to say another thing: there is huge difference between theology and history. History has nothing to do with salvation, redemption or God. History can only investigate what part was played by the religions socially, institutionally,
historically, what mechanisms were driving them, how they were embedded into the
society, how they influenced the society. That is termed the study of religions, which
is a complex branch, and it has no players or playing field in Hungary.
Let us just imagine that the theology of substitution was practically the invention of Paul transformed from Saul. It was an existential, identity seeking, unavoidable invention of Pauls out of necessity. If you read the Epistles of Paul and they
had been written 20-30 years earlier than the synoptic Gospels you can see the
name of Jesus of Nazareth is never mentioned in them. Paul is speaking and writing
about Christ, the Jesus Christ who is the Lord. That attitude was a bit put in order in
the Gospels saying Christ was the historical Jesus of Nazareth. So, the substitution
theology is, in fact, identity building. That identity building with respect to Christianity - had been an internal Jewish problem in the first fifty-seventy years. Jews
believing in Christ defined their own identity vis a vis Jews not believing in Christ
while the number of non-Jewish (i.e. pagan) believers in Christ started to increase
and then became the majority in the different communities.
304
CEC_konyv.indd 304
2016.06.10. 8:37:19
Conclusions
The studies in the book clearly prove that after World War I it was a decisive factor
whether a country had been at the losing (Hungary) or winning (Czechoslovakia,
Romania) edge of it. The perspectives and the priorities were quite different both
socially and politically. All that had an evident impact on the position of the churches
and on their attitude to the Jewry. One should also recall that the issue of the
Hungarian national minority had further complicated the situation in Czechoslovakia
and Romania. In those countries the so termed Jewish issue also appeared in a
different context. A clear proof for that is the appearance of the Jewry as a national
minority and not simply a religion with the purpose of alienating the Hungarianspeaking Jewish community consuming Hungarian culture from the Hungarian
national minority (particularly in Transylvania and Slovakia) to reduce its numbers
in that way too.
The comparison of the dominant churches (the Orthodox in Romania, the
Roman Catholic in the Slovak part of Czechoslovakia and also the Roman Catholic
in Hungary) leaves no doubt that their relationship with the Jewry was affected by
their own social position.
The 1920s meant a period of institutional revival for the Romanian Orthodox
Church. It was at that time that the Romanian Orthodox patriarchate was established
(1925) as a result of which the Romanian Orthodox Church had become a decisive
factor and a national institution of the majority population in Greater Romania. In
its position its (anti-Semitic) attitude towards the Jewish community organically
matched the aggressive and militant behaviour it generally showed towards any
others Protestants, Atheists, Freemasons or Greek Catholics. So the so termed
Jewish issue only appeared marginally in the Romanian Orthodox press in the
interwar period. An exception was Telegraful romn [The Romanian Telegraph]
published in Transylvania, particularly in the period when its editor-in-chief was
Dumitru Stniloae, a well-known Orthodox theologian (19341944). However,
even in that decade its anti-Semitism was an organic part of the inimical attitude
expressed in the paper against any non-Romanian and non-Orthodox national or
religious communities.
In (Czecho)Slovakia the Roman Catholic church could be regarded to be the
religious power with a decisive impact on the society. So it is important to declare
that contrary to the Romanian Orthodox press but similarly to the Hungarian one
the Slovak Roman Catholic press dealt with the Jewish issue regularly - usually
CEC_konyv.indd 305
305
2016.06.10. 8:37:19
Churches Holocaust
in a hostile style. The two countries were also similar in that the institutions of the
Roman Catholic Church were nestled in the political power and followed the same
trends in their press.
In Hungary the Roman Catholic Church was dominant. It had already enforced
the right to influence the public opinion both nationally and regionally by means of
its press since 1919 with the aim of building a national-Christian society. This could
be successful partially only since the non-denominational - particularly the liberal
- press had presented major competition till World War II. Then the political and
the clerical press found a markedly similar tone best caught out in their attitude to
the Jewish community and the handling of the Jewish issue. It was then that the
Jewish community became the enemy and the scapegoat.
You can say with regard to the minority churches of the different countries
in a religious sense (the Hungarian Reformed church in Czechoslovakia, the
Czechoslovak Lutheran church, the Hungarian Roman Catholic, Reformed and
Unitarian churches in Romania, the Romanian Greek Catholic church and the
Hungarian Reformed and Lutheran churches), that their social position defined
their attitude towards the Jewry. It was a fact they were in a defensive position
vis a vis the majority, dominant national church that had a politically privileged
position. Therefore the so termed Jewish issue was secondary for them even
though some kind of ambiguous and latent anti-Semitism can be observed in
their press.
To sum up the lesson of these studies, the history and social processes of the
Central-Eastern European region in the 20th century were deeply rooted in the 19th
century. The dissolution of previous empires after World War I did not only fail to solve
any problems, on the contrary, it had made them even more complex and serious.
This can be best observed in relation to the so termed Jewish issue. The basic
attitude of the churches had already been shaped in the 19th century in response to
the spread of liberalism, political pluralism and secularisation. According to the selfassessment of the churches, they embodied the traditions and the nation while the
Jewry were for them a symbol of condemnable modernisation and a cosmopolitan
spirit. All that had been latently present in the 1920s and surfaced violently in all
the three countries investigated around 1938 as social problems accumulated as
a result of the global economic crisis, the weight of Hitlers Germany increased in
Europe and the world started to drift towards World War II. The churches did not
only fail to counter-balance and mitigate the discriminative attitude of the societies
and political lites towards the Jewry enacted into laws, on the contrary, they
encouraged and legitimised it. There are some counter-examples but they came
from isolated members of the clergy who did not represent the institution itself
306
CEC_konyv.indd 306
2016.06.10. 8:37:19
Conclusions
in any form. Furthermore, the local church press in the parts of Czechoslovakia
and Romania re-annexed to Hungary (Upper Hungary, the Lower Carpathians or
Transylvania) soon toed the line of the press of the mother country significantly
and open anti-Semitism had become much more marked than in the preceding two
decades.
CEC_konyv.indd 307
307
2016.06.10. 8:37:19
CEC_konyv.indd 308
2016.06.10. 8:37:19
Contents
Preface . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 3
Attila Jakab: The perception of Jews in the Hungarian Catholic
and Reformed churches press and their attitude towards the Jewish
community between 1919 and 1944. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 7
Conditions of the clerical press . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 8
Consolidation of the Christian course (19191921) . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .14
The era of Prime Minister Istvn Bethlen (19211931) . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 20
The era of Prime Minister Gyula Gmbs (19321936). . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 23
The era of the anti-Jewish laws (19381942) . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 25
The issue of the baptised Jews . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 36
Deportations and the Holocaust (1944) . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 39
Conclusion . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 48
Dr. Zsolt Lszl Mzes: Analysis of the articles on Jews published
in Hungarys Lutheran press between 1920 and 1945 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 51
Overview. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .51
The Lutheran Church (19201945) . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 53
The Press Materials . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 59
Conclusion . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .74
gnes Szllssy: The part played by the press of religious orders
in how anti-Semitic opinion was formed and public discourse evolved
in Hungary from 1920 to 1945 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 77
Rome and the Jews in the 19-20th centuries . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 78
The Hungarian Catholic society and the Jews in the 19-20th centuries . . . 81
The religious orders in Hungary . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 85
The teaching orders. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 86
Orders established for the dissemination of the Gospel
and the teaching of the Church . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 97
The religious orders of welfare activities . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .115
Zoltn Erds: The Jewry as reflected by the ecclesiastical press
of Southern Transdanubia (1919-1944) . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 119
1. The situation of the Jewry in Southern Transdanubia during
the World Wars . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 119
CEC_konyv.indd 309
309
2016.06.10. 8:37:19
Churches Holocaust
310
CEC_konyv.indd 310
2016.06.10. 8:37:19
Contents
Summary . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 243
Bibliography . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 245
Attila Simon: The relationship of the Catholic and Lutheran press to
the Jewish issue in Slovakia from 1919 to 1944 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .249
The scope of the study . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 249
Periodization . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 252
Content of the articles . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 256
The accusations against the Jewish community in Slovakia . . . . . . . . . . . 258
The Lutheran press and the Jewish issue . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 264
Summary . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 266
Ildik Bajcsi: The Jewish issue in the press of the Protestant Church
of the Hungarian national minority in (Czecho)Slovakia in the
inter-war period . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .269
Introduction. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 269
The historical background of the study - Jews and Protestants
in the First Czechoslovak Republic. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 270
Methodology and concepts: . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 275
Ideological aspects in the 1920s - Jewry and Bolshevism . . . . . . . . . . . 276
The Jewish issue as a religious topic in the 1930s . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 278
Summary . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 285
Bibliography . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 287
Magazine articles . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 289
Conference (17 March 2016): Round table discussion of
The historical churches and the Holocaust in Czechoslovakia,
Hungary and Romania 1920-1945 . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .291
Conclusions . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .305
CEC_konyv.indd 311
311
2016.06.10. 8:37:20
CEC_konyv.indd 312
2016.06.10. 8:37:20
The CEC has been engaged in an international comparative research since 2013 on
the role played by the historical churches
in the anti-Semitism of the interwar period
and the Holocaust with particular attention to the increase of nationalism and the
revival of the denial of the Holocaust in the
region.
Analysing the clerical press and the archive
documents in the interwar period you can
get a clear view of the state of the societies in the different countries (Hungary,
Slovakia and Romania) in the given age, the
position of and the part played by different religions and as country borders kept
shifting the response given by the clergy
to the processes and political changes of
the era.
The results of the research indicate to us,
people living today, that terrible mistakes
can be committed and the consequences
can be abysmal when morals want to meet
the alleged requirements of real politics
(I. Bib). History, unfortunately, can repeat
itself. Because the societies of CentralEastern Europe have failed to acknowledge
their past, the consequences are grave
indeed. The actors of today have started to
behave eerily like those in the interwar period. The churches in our region are silent
in the best of cases. Pope Franciss words
arrive here in a much dampened form.
So we believe our research is more and
more topical with every day. Looking into
the eye of the phenomena revealed may
help to provide a humane answer to the
challenges of the present time.
Erika Trzsk